9935 lines
587 KiB
Plaintext
9935 lines
587 KiB
Plaintext
PREFACE
|
|
|
|
|
|
SUPPOSING that Truth is a woman--what then? Is there not ground
|
|
for suspecting that all philosophers, in so far as they have been
|
|
dogmatists, have failed to understand women--that the terrible
|
|
seriousness and clumsy importunity with which they have usually paid
|
|
their addresses to Truth, have been unskilled and unseemly methods for
|
|
winning a woman? Certainly she has never allowed herself to be won; and
|
|
at present every kind of dogma stands with sad and discouraged mien--IF,
|
|
indeed, it stands at all! For there are scoffers who maintain that it
|
|
has fallen, that all dogma lies on the ground--nay more, that it is at
|
|
its last gasp. But to speak seriously, there are good grounds for hoping
|
|
that all dogmatizing in philosophy, whatever solemn, whatever conclusive
|
|
and decided airs it has assumed, may have been only a noble puerilism
|
|
and tyronism; and probably the time is at hand when it will be once
|
|
and again understood WHAT has actually sufficed for the basis of such
|
|
imposing and absolute philosophical edifices as the dogmatists have
|
|
hitherto reared: perhaps some popular superstition of immemorial time
|
|
(such as the soul-superstition, which, in the form of subject- and
|
|
ego-superstition, has not yet ceased doing mischief): perhaps some
|
|
play upon words, a deception on the part of grammar, or an
|
|
audacious generalization of very restricted, very personal, very
|
|
human--all-too-human facts. The philosophy of the dogmatists, it is to
|
|
be hoped, was only a promise for thousands of years afterwards, as was
|
|
astrology in still earlier times, in the service of which probably more
|
|
labour, gold, acuteness, and patience have been spent than on any
|
|
actual science hitherto: we owe to it, and to its "super-terrestrial"
|
|
pretensions in Asia and Egypt, the grand style of architecture. It seems
|
|
that in order to inscribe themselves upon the heart of humanity with
|
|
everlasting claims, all great things have first to wander about the
|
|
earth as enormous and awe-inspiring caricatures: dogmatic philosophy has
|
|
been a caricature of this kind--for instance, the Vedanta doctrine in
|
|
Asia, and Platonism in Europe. Let us not be ungrateful to it, although
|
|
it must certainly be confessed that the worst, the most tiresome,
|
|
and the most dangerous of errors hitherto has been a dogmatist
|
|
error--namely, Plato's invention of Pure Spirit and the Good in Itself.
|
|
But now when it has been surmounted, when Europe, rid of this nightmare,
|
|
can again draw breath freely and at least enjoy a healthier--sleep,
|
|
we, WHOSE DUTY IS WAKEFULNESS ITSELF, are the heirs of all the strength
|
|
which the struggle against this error has fostered. It amounted to
|
|
the very inversion of truth, and the denial of the PERSPECTIVE--the
|
|
fundamental condition--of life, to speak of Spirit and the Good as Plato
|
|
spoke of them; indeed one might ask, as a physician: "How did such a
|
|
malady attack that finest product of antiquity, Plato? Had the wicked
|
|
Socrates really corrupted him? Was Socrates after all a corrupter of
|
|
youths, and deserved his hemlock?" But the struggle against Plato,
|
|
or--to speak plainer, and for the "people"--the struggle against
|
|
the ecclesiastical oppression of millenniums of Christianity (FOR
|
|
CHRISTIANITY IS PLATONISM FOR THE "PEOPLE"), produced in Europe
|
|
a magnificent tension of soul, such as had not existed anywhere
|
|
previously; with such a tensely strained bow one can now aim at the
|
|
furthest goals. As a matter of fact, the European feels this tension as
|
|
a state of distress, and twice attempts have been made in grand style to
|
|
unbend the bow: once by means of Jesuitism, and the second time by means
|
|
of democratic enlightenment--which, with the aid of liberty of the press
|
|
and newspaper-reading, might, in fact, bring it about that the spirit
|
|
would not so easily find itself in "distress"! (The Germans invented
|
|
gunpowder--all credit to them! but they again made things square--they
|
|
invented printing.) But we, who are neither Jesuits, nor democrats,
|
|
nor even sufficiently Germans, we GOOD EUROPEANS, and free, VERY free
|
|
spirits--we have it still, all the distress of spirit and all the
|
|
tension of its bow! And perhaps also the arrow, the duty, and, who
|
|
knows? THE GOAL TO AIM AT....
|
|
|
|
Sils Maria Upper Engadine, JUNE, 1885.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. PREJUDICES OF PHILOSOPHERS
|
|
|
|
|
|
1. The Will to Truth, which is to tempt us to many a hazardous
|
|
enterprise, the famous Truthfulness of which all philosophers have
|
|
hitherto spoken with respect, what questions has this Will to Truth not
|
|
laid before us! What strange, perplexing, questionable questions! It is
|
|
already a long story; yet it seems as if it were hardly commenced. Is
|
|
it any wonder if we at last grow distrustful, lose patience, and turn
|
|
impatiently away? That this Sphinx teaches us at last to ask questions
|
|
ourselves? WHO is it really that puts questions to us here? WHAT really
|
|
is this "Will to Truth" in us? In fact we made a long halt at the
|
|
question as to the origin of this Will--until at last we came to an
|
|
absolute standstill before a yet more fundamental question. We inquired
|
|
about the VALUE of this Will. Granted that we want the truth: WHY NOT
|
|
RATHER untruth? And uncertainty? Even ignorance? The problem of the
|
|
value of truth presented itself before us--or was it we who presented
|
|
ourselves before the problem? Which of us is the Oedipus here? Which
|
|
the Sphinx? It would seem to be a rendezvous of questions and notes of
|
|
interrogation. And could it be believed that it at last seems to us as
|
|
if the problem had never been propounded before, as if we were the first
|
|
to discern it, get a sight of it, and RISK RAISING it? For there is risk
|
|
in raising it, perhaps there is no greater risk.
|
|
|
|
2. "HOW COULD anything originate out of its opposite? For example, truth
|
|
out of error? or the Will to Truth out of the will to deception? or the
|
|
generous deed out of selfishness? or the pure sun-bright vision of the
|
|
wise man out of covetousness? Such genesis is impossible; whoever dreams
|
|
of it is a fool, nay, worse than a fool; things of the highest
|
|
value must have a different origin, an origin of THEIR own--in this
|
|
transitory, seductive, illusory, paltry world, in this turmoil of
|
|
delusion and cupidity, they cannot have their source. But rather in
|
|
the lap of Being, in the intransitory, in the concealed God, in the
|
|
'Thing-in-itself--THERE must be their source, and nowhere else!"--This
|
|
mode of reasoning discloses the typical prejudice by which
|
|
metaphysicians of all times can be recognized, this mode of valuation
|
|
is at the back of all their logical procedure; through this "belief" of
|
|
theirs, they exert themselves for their "knowledge," for something that
|
|
is in the end solemnly christened "the Truth." The fundamental belief of
|
|
metaphysicians is THE BELIEF IN ANTITHESES OF VALUES. It never occurred
|
|
even to the wariest of them to doubt here on the very threshold (where
|
|
doubt, however, was most necessary); though they had made a solemn
|
|
vow, "DE OMNIBUS DUBITANDUM." For it may be doubted, firstly, whether
|
|
antitheses exist at all; and secondly, whether the popular valuations
|
|
and antitheses of value upon which metaphysicians have set their
|
|
seal, are not perhaps merely superficial estimates, merely provisional
|
|
perspectives, besides being probably made from some corner, perhaps from
|
|
below--"frog perspectives," as it were, to borrow an expression current
|
|
among painters. In spite of all the value which may belong to the true,
|
|
the positive, and the unselfish, it might be possible that a higher
|
|
and more fundamental value for life generally should be assigned to
|
|
pretence, to the will to delusion, to selfishness, and cupidity. It
|
|
might even be possible that WHAT constitutes the value of those good and
|
|
respected things, consists precisely in their being insidiously
|
|
related, knotted, and crocheted to these evil and apparently opposed
|
|
things--perhaps even in being essentially identical with them. Perhaps!
|
|
But who wishes to concern himself with such dangerous "Perhapses"!
|
|
For that investigation one must await the advent of a new order of
|
|
philosophers, such as will have other tastes and inclinations, the
|
|
reverse of those hitherto prevalent--philosophers of the dangerous
|
|
"Perhaps" in every sense of the term. And to speak in all seriousness, I
|
|
see such new philosophers beginning to appear.
|
|
|
|
3. Having kept a sharp eye on philosophers, and having read between
|
|
their lines long enough, I now say to myself that the greater part of
|
|
conscious thinking must be counted among the instinctive functions, and
|
|
it is so even in the case of philosophical thinking; one has here to
|
|
learn anew, as one learned anew about heredity and "innateness." As
|
|
little as the act of birth comes into consideration in the whole process
|
|
and procedure of heredity, just as little is "being-conscious" OPPOSED
|
|
to the instinctive in any decisive sense; the greater part of the
|
|
conscious thinking of a philosopher is secretly influenced by his
|
|
instincts, and forced into definite channels. And behind all logic and
|
|
its seeming sovereignty of movement, there are valuations, or to speak
|
|
more plainly, physiological demands, for the maintenance of a definite
|
|
mode of life For example, that the certain is worth more than the
|
|
uncertain, that illusion is less valuable than "truth" such valuations,
|
|
in spite of their regulative importance for US, might notwithstanding be
|
|
only superficial valuations, special kinds of _niaiserie_, such as may
|
|
be necessary for the maintenance of beings such as ourselves. Supposing,
|
|
in effect, that man is not just the "measure of things."
|
|
|
|
4. The falseness of an opinion is not for us any objection to it: it is
|
|
here, perhaps, that our new language sounds most strangely. The
|
|
question is, how far an opinion is life-furthering, life-preserving,
|
|
species-preserving, perhaps species-rearing, and we are fundamentally
|
|
inclined to maintain that the falsest opinions (to which the synthetic
|
|
judgments a priori belong), are the most indispensable to us, that
|
|
without a recognition of logical fictions, without a comparison of
|
|
reality with the purely IMAGINED world of the absolute and immutable,
|
|
without a constant counterfeiting of the world by means of numbers,
|
|
man could not live--that the renunciation of false opinions would be
|
|
a renunciation of life, a negation of life. TO RECOGNISE UNTRUTH AS A
|
|
CONDITION OF LIFE; that is certainly to impugn the traditional ideas of
|
|
value in a dangerous manner, and a philosophy which ventures to do so,
|
|
has thereby alone placed itself beyond good and evil.
|
|
|
|
5. That which causes philosophers to be regarded half-distrustfully
|
|
and half-mockingly, is not the oft-repeated discovery how innocent they
|
|
are--how often and easily they make mistakes and lose their way, in
|
|
short, how childish and childlike they are,--but that there is not
|
|
enough honest dealing with them, whereas they all raise a loud and
|
|
virtuous outcry when the problem of truthfulness is even hinted at in
|
|
the remotest manner. They all pose as though their real opinions had
|
|
been discovered and attained through the self-evolving of a cold, pure,
|
|
divinely indifferent dialectic (in contrast to all sorts of mystics,
|
|
who, fairer and foolisher, talk of "inspiration"), whereas, in fact, a
|
|
prejudiced proposition, idea, or "suggestion," which is generally
|
|
their heart's desire abstracted and refined, is defended by them with
|
|
arguments sought out after the event. They are all advocates who do not
|
|
wish to be regarded as such, generally astute defenders, also, of their
|
|
prejudices, which they dub "truths,"--and VERY far from having the
|
|
conscience which bravely admits this to itself, very far from having
|
|
the good taste of the courage which goes so far as to let this be
|
|
understood, perhaps to warn friend or foe, or in cheerful confidence
|
|
and self-ridicule. The spectacle of the Tartuffery of old Kant, equally
|
|
stiff and decent, with which he entices us into the dialectic
|
|
by-ways that lead (more correctly mislead) to his "categorical
|
|
imperative"--makes us fastidious ones smile, we who find no small
|
|
amusement in spying out the subtle tricks of old moralists and ethical
|
|
preachers. Or, still more so, the hocus-pocus in mathematical form, by
|
|
means of which Spinoza has, as it were, clad his philosophy in mail and
|
|
mask--in fact, the "love of HIS wisdom," to translate the term fairly
|
|
and squarely--in order thereby to strike terror at once into the heart
|
|
of the assailant who should dare to cast a glance on that invincible
|
|
maiden, that Pallas Athene:--how much of personal timidity and
|
|
vulnerability does this masquerade of a sickly recluse betray!
|
|
|
|
6. It has gradually become clear to me what every great philosophy up
|
|
till now has consisted of--namely, the confession of its originator, and
|
|
a species of involuntary and unconscious auto-biography; and moreover
|
|
that the moral (or immoral) purpose in every philosophy has constituted
|
|
the true vital germ out of which the entire plant has always grown.
|
|
Indeed, to understand how the abstrusest metaphysical assertions of a
|
|
philosopher have been arrived at, it is always well (and wise) to first
|
|
ask oneself: "What morality do they (or does he) aim at?" Accordingly,
|
|
I do not believe that an "impulse to knowledge" is the father of
|
|
philosophy; but that another impulse, here as elsewhere, has only made
|
|
use of knowledge (and mistaken knowledge!) as an instrument. But whoever
|
|
considers the fundamental impulses of man with a view to determining
|
|
how far they may have here acted as INSPIRING GENII (or as demons and
|
|
cobolds), will find that they have all practiced philosophy at one time
|
|
or another, and that each one of them would have been only too glad to
|
|
look upon itself as the ultimate end of existence and the legitimate
|
|
LORD over all the other impulses. For every impulse is imperious, and as
|
|
SUCH, attempts to philosophize. To be sure, in the case of scholars, in
|
|
the case of really scientific men, it may be otherwise--"better," if
|
|
you will; there there may really be such a thing as an "impulse to
|
|
knowledge," some kind of small, independent clock-work, which, when well
|
|
wound up, works away industriously to that end, WITHOUT the rest of
|
|
the scholarly impulses taking any material part therein. The actual
|
|
"interests" of the scholar, therefore, are generally in quite another
|
|
direction--in the family, perhaps, or in money-making, or in politics;
|
|
it is, in fact, almost indifferent at what point of research his little
|
|
machine is placed, and whether the hopeful young worker becomes a
|
|
good philologist, a mushroom specialist, or a chemist; he is not
|
|
CHARACTERISED by becoming this or that. In the philosopher, on the
|
|
contrary, there is absolutely nothing impersonal; and above all,
|
|
his morality furnishes a decided and decisive testimony as to WHO HE
|
|
IS,--that is to say, in what order the deepest impulses of his nature
|
|
stand to each other.
|
|
|
|
7. How malicious philosophers can be! I know of nothing more stinging
|
|
than the joke Epicurus took the liberty of making on Plato and the
|
|
Platonists; he called them Dionysiokolakes. In its original sense,
|
|
and on the face of it, the word signifies "Flatterers of
|
|
Dionysius"--consequently, tyrants' accessories and lick-spittles;
|
|
besides this, however, it is as much as to say, "They are all ACTORS,
|
|
there is nothing genuine about them" (for Dionysiokolax was a popular
|
|
name for an actor). And the latter is really the malignant reproach that
|
|
Epicurus cast upon Plato: he was annoyed by the grandiose manner, the
|
|
mise en scene style of which Plato and his scholars were masters--of
|
|
which Epicurus was not a master! He, the old school-teacher of Samos,
|
|
who sat concealed in his little garden at Athens, and wrote three
|
|
hundred books, perhaps out of rage and ambitious envy of Plato, who
|
|
knows! Greece took a hundred years to find out who the garden-god
|
|
Epicurus really was. Did she ever find out?
|
|
|
|
8. There is a point in every philosophy at which the "conviction" of
|
|
the philosopher appears on the scene; or, to put it in the words of an
|
|
ancient mystery:
|
|
|
|
Adventavit asinus, Pulcher et fortissimus.
|
|
|
|
9. You desire to LIVE "according to Nature"? Oh, you noble Stoics, what
|
|
fraud of words! Imagine to yourselves a being like Nature, boundlessly
|
|
extravagant, boundlessly indifferent, without purpose or consideration,
|
|
without pity or justice, at once fruitful and barren and uncertain:
|
|
imagine to yourselves INDIFFERENCE as a power--how COULD you live
|
|
in accordance with such indifference? To live--is not that just
|
|
endeavouring to be otherwise than this Nature? Is not living valuing,
|
|
preferring, being unjust, being limited, endeavouring to be different?
|
|
And granted that your imperative, "living according to Nature," means
|
|
actually the same as "living according to life"--how could you do
|
|
DIFFERENTLY? Why should you make a principle out of what you yourselves
|
|
are, and must be? In reality, however, it is quite otherwise with you:
|
|
while you pretend to read with rapture the canon of your law in Nature,
|
|
you want something quite the contrary, you extraordinary stage-players
|
|
and self-deluders! In your pride you wish to dictate your morals and
|
|
ideals to Nature, to Nature herself, and to incorporate them therein;
|
|
you insist that it shall be Nature "according to the Stoa," and would
|
|
like everything to be made after your own image, as a vast, eternal
|
|
glorification and generalism of Stoicism! With all your love for truth,
|
|
you have forced yourselves so long, so persistently, and with such
|
|
hypnotic rigidity to see Nature FALSELY, that is to say, Stoically,
|
|
that you are no longer able to see it otherwise--and to crown all, some
|
|
unfathomable superciliousness gives you the Bedlamite hope that
|
|
BECAUSE you are able to tyrannize over yourselves--Stoicism is
|
|
self-tyranny--Nature will also allow herself to be tyrannized over: is
|
|
not the Stoic a PART of Nature?... But this is an old and everlasting
|
|
story: what happened in old times with the Stoics still happens today,
|
|
as soon as ever a philosophy begins to believe in itself. It always
|
|
creates the world in its own image; it cannot do otherwise; philosophy
|
|
is this tyrannical impulse itself, the most spiritual Will to Power, the
|
|
will to "creation of the world," the will to the causa prima.
|
|
|
|
10. The eagerness and subtlety, I should even say craftiness, with
|
|
which the problem of "the real and the apparent world" is dealt with at
|
|
present throughout Europe, furnishes food for thought and attention; and
|
|
he who hears only a "Will to Truth" in the background, and nothing else,
|
|
cannot certainly boast of the sharpest ears. In rare and isolated
|
|
cases, it may really have happened that such a Will to Truth--a certain
|
|
extravagant and adventurous pluck, a metaphysician's ambition of the
|
|
forlorn hope--has participated therein: that which in the end always
|
|
prefers a handful of "certainty" to a whole cartload of beautiful
|
|
possibilities; there may even be puritanical fanatics of conscience,
|
|
who prefer to put their last trust in a sure nothing, rather than in an
|
|
uncertain something. But that is Nihilism, and the sign of a despairing,
|
|
mortally wearied soul, notwithstanding the courageous bearing such a
|
|
virtue may display. It seems, however, to be otherwise with stronger
|
|
and livelier thinkers who are still eager for life. In that they side
|
|
AGAINST appearance, and speak superciliously of "perspective," in
|
|
that they rank the credibility of their own bodies about as low as the
|
|
credibility of the ocular evidence that "the earth stands still," and
|
|
thus, apparently, allowing with complacency their securest possession
|
|
to escape (for what does one at present believe in more firmly than
|
|
in one's body?),--who knows if they are not really trying to win back
|
|
something which was formerly an even securer possession, something
|
|
of the old domain of the faith of former times, perhaps the "immortal
|
|
soul," perhaps "the old God," in short, ideas by which they could live
|
|
better, that is to say, more vigorously and more joyously, than by
|
|
"modern ideas"? There is DISTRUST of these modern ideas in this mode
|
|
of looking at things, a disbelief in all that has been constructed
|
|
yesterday and today; there is perhaps some slight admixture of satiety
|
|
and scorn, which can no longer endure the BRIC-A-BRAC of ideas of the
|
|
most varied origin, such as so-called Positivism at present throws on
|
|
the market; a disgust of the more refined taste at the village-fair
|
|
motleyness and patchiness of all these reality-philosophasters, in whom
|
|
there is nothing either new or true, except this motleyness. Therein it
|
|
seems to me that we should agree with those skeptical anti-realists and
|
|
knowledge-microscopists of the present day; their instinct, which repels
|
|
them from MODERN reality, is unrefuted... what do their retrograde
|
|
by-paths concern us! The main thing about them is NOT that they wish
|
|
to go "back," but that they wish to get AWAY therefrom. A little MORE
|
|
strength, swing, courage, and artistic power, and they would be OFF--and
|
|
not back!
|
|
|
|
11. It seems to me that there is everywhere an attempt at present to
|
|
divert attention from the actual influence which Kant exercised on
|
|
German philosophy, and especially to ignore prudently the value which
|
|
he set upon himself. Kant was first and foremost proud of his Table of
|
|
Categories; with it in his hand he said: "This is the most difficult
|
|
thing that could ever be undertaken on behalf of metaphysics." Let us
|
|
only understand this "could be"! He was proud of having DISCOVERED a
|
|
new faculty in man, the faculty of synthetic judgment a priori. Granting
|
|
that he deceived himself in this matter; the development and rapid
|
|
flourishing of German philosophy depended nevertheless on his pride, and
|
|
on the eager rivalry of the younger generation to discover if possible
|
|
something--at all events "new faculties"--of which to be still
|
|
prouder!--But let us reflect for a moment--it is high time to do so.
|
|
"How are synthetic judgments a priori POSSIBLE?" Kant asks himself--and
|
|
what is really his answer? "BY MEANS OF A MEANS (faculty)"--but
|
|
unfortunately not in five words, but so circumstantially, imposingly,
|
|
and with such display of German profundity and verbal flourishes, that
|
|
one altogether loses sight of the comical niaiserie allemande involved
|
|
in such an answer. People were beside themselves with delight over this
|
|
new faculty, and the jubilation reached its climax when Kant further
|
|
discovered a moral faculty in man--for at that time Germans were still
|
|
moral, not yet dabbling in the "Politics of hard fact." Then came
|
|
the honeymoon of German philosophy. All the young theologians of the
|
|
Tubingen institution went immediately into the groves--all seeking for
|
|
"faculties." And what did they not find--in that innocent, rich, and
|
|
still youthful period of the German spirit, to which Romanticism, the
|
|
malicious fairy, piped and sang, when one could not yet distinguish
|
|
between "finding" and "inventing"! Above all a faculty for the
|
|
"transcendental"; Schelling christened it, intellectual intuition,
|
|
and thereby gratified the most earnest longings of the naturally
|
|
pious-inclined Germans. One can do no greater wrong to the whole of
|
|
this exuberant and eccentric movement (which was really youthfulness,
|
|
notwithstanding that it disguised itself so boldly, in hoary and senile
|
|
conceptions), than to take it seriously, or even treat it with moral
|
|
indignation. Enough, however--the world grew older, and the dream
|
|
vanished. A time came when people rubbed their foreheads, and they still
|
|
rub them today. People had been dreaming, and first and foremost--old
|
|
Kant. "By means of a means (faculty)"--he had said, or at least meant to
|
|
say. But, is that--an answer? An explanation? Or is it not rather merely
|
|
a repetition of the question? How does opium induce sleep? "By means of
|
|
a means (faculty)," namely the virtus dormitiva, replies the doctor in
|
|
Moliere,
|
|
|
|
Quia est in eo virtus dormitiva,
|
|
Cujus est natura sensus assoupire.
|
|
|
|
But such replies belong to the realm of comedy, and it is high time
|
|
to replace the Kantian question, "How are synthetic judgments a PRIORI
|
|
possible?" by another question, "Why is belief in such judgments
|
|
necessary?"--in effect, it is high time that we should understand
|
|
that such judgments must be believed to be true, for the sake of the
|
|
preservation of creatures like ourselves; though they still might
|
|
naturally be false judgments! Or, more plainly spoken, and roughly and
|
|
readily--synthetic judgments a priori should not "be possible" at all;
|
|
we have no right to them; in our mouths they are nothing but false
|
|
judgments. Only, of course, the belief in their truth is necessary, as
|
|
plausible belief and ocular evidence belonging to the perspective view
|
|
of life. And finally, to call to mind the enormous influence which
|
|
"German philosophy"--I hope you understand its right to inverted commas
|
|
(goosefeet)?--has exercised throughout the whole of Europe, there is
|
|
no doubt that a certain VIRTUS DORMITIVA had a share in it; thanks to
|
|
German philosophy, it was a delight to the noble idlers, the virtuous,
|
|
the mystics, the artiste, the three-fourths Christians, and the
|
|
political obscurantists of all nations, to find an antidote to the still
|
|
overwhelming sensualism which overflowed from the last century into
|
|
this, in short--"sensus assoupire."...
|
|
|
|
12. As regards materialistic atomism, it is one of the best-refuted
|
|
theories that have been advanced, and in Europe there is now perhaps
|
|
no one in the learned world so unscholarly as to attach serious
|
|
signification to it, except for convenient everyday use (as an
|
|
abbreviation of the means of expression)--thanks chiefly to the Pole
|
|
Boscovich: he and the Pole Copernicus have hitherto been the greatest
|
|
and most successful opponents of ocular evidence. For while Copernicus
|
|
has persuaded us to believe, contrary to all the senses, that the earth
|
|
does NOT stand fast, Boscovich has taught us to abjure the belief in the
|
|
last thing that "stood fast" of the earth--the belief in "substance," in
|
|
"matter," in the earth-residuum, and particle-atom: it is the greatest
|
|
triumph over the senses that has hitherto been gained on earth. One
|
|
must, however, go still further, and also declare war, relentless war
|
|
to the knife, against the "atomistic requirements" which still lead a
|
|
dangerous after-life in places where no one suspects them, like the more
|
|
celebrated "metaphysical requirements": one must also above all give
|
|
the finishing stroke to that other and more portentous atomism which
|
|
Christianity has taught best and longest, the SOUL-ATOMISM. Let it be
|
|
permitted to designate by this expression the belief which regards the
|
|
soul as something indestructible, eternal, indivisible, as a monad,
|
|
as an atomon: this belief ought to be expelled from science! Between
|
|
ourselves, it is not at all necessary to get rid of "the soul" thereby,
|
|
and thus renounce one of the oldest and most venerated hypotheses--as
|
|
happens frequently to the clumsiness of naturalists, who can hardly
|
|
touch on the soul without immediately losing it. But the way is open
|
|
for new acceptations and refinements of the soul-hypothesis; and such
|
|
conceptions as "mortal soul," and "soul of subjective multiplicity,"
|
|
and "soul as social structure of the instincts and passions," want
|
|
henceforth to have legitimate rights in science. In that the NEW
|
|
psychologist is about to put an end to the superstitions which have
|
|
hitherto flourished with almost tropical luxuriance around the idea of
|
|
the soul, he is really, as it were, thrusting himself into a new desert
|
|
and a new distrust--it is possible that the older psychologists had a
|
|
merrier and more comfortable time of it; eventually, however, he finds
|
|
that precisely thereby he is also condemned to INVENT--and, who knows?
|
|
perhaps to DISCOVER the new.
|
|
|
|
13. Psychologists should bethink themselves before putting down the
|
|
instinct of self-preservation as the cardinal instinct of an organic
|
|
being. A living thing seeks above all to DISCHARGE its strength--life
|
|
itself is WILL TO POWER; self-preservation is only one of the indirect
|
|
and most frequent RESULTS thereof. In short, here, as everywhere else,
|
|
let us beware of SUPERFLUOUS teleological principles!--one of which
|
|
is the instinct of self-preservation (we owe it to Spinoza's
|
|
inconsistency). It is thus, in effect, that method ordains, which must
|
|
be essentially economy of principles.
|
|
|
|
14. It is perhaps just dawning on five or six minds that natural
|
|
philosophy is only a world-exposition and world-arrangement (according
|
|
to us, if I may say so!) and NOT a world-explanation; but in so far as
|
|
it is based on belief in the senses, it is regarded as more, and for a
|
|
long time to come must be regarded as more--namely, as an explanation.
|
|
It has eyes and fingers of its own, it has ocular evidence and
|
|
palpableness of its own: this operates fascinatingly, persuasively, and
|
|
CONVINCINGLY upon an age with fundamentally plebeian tastes--in fact, it
|
|
follows instinctively the canon of truth of eternal popular sensualism.
|
|
What is clear, what is "explained"? Only that which can be seen and
|
|
felt--one must pursue every problem thus far. Obversely, however, the
|
|
charm of the Platonic mode of thought, which was an ARISTOCRATIC mode,
|
|
consisted precisely in RESISTANCE to obvious sense-evidence--perhaps
|
|
among men who enjoyed even stronger and more fastidious senses than our
|
|
contemporaries, but who knew how to find a higher triumph in remaining
|
|
masters of them: and this by means of pale, cold, grey conceptional
|
|
networks which they threw over the motley whirl of the senses--the
|
|
mob of the senses, as Plato said. In this overcoming of the world, and
|
|
interpreting of the world in the manner of Plato, there was an ENJOYMENT
|
|
different from that which the physicists of today offer us--and likewise
|
|
the Darwinists and anti-teleologists among the physiological workers,
|
|
with their principle of the "smallest possible effort," and the greatest
|
|
possible blunder. "Where there is nothing more to see or to grasp, there
|
|
is also nothing more for men to do"--that is certainly an imperative
|
|
different from the Platonic one, but it may notwithstanding be the right
|
|
imperative for a hardy, laborious race of machinists and bridge-builders
|
|
of the future, who have nothing but ROUGH work to perform.
|
|
|
|
15. To study physiology with a clear conscience, one must insist on
|
|
the fact that the sense-organs are not phenomena in the sense of the
|
|
idealistic philosophy; as such they certainly could not be causes!
|
|
Sensualism, therefore, at least as regulative hypothesis, if not as
|
|
heuristic principle. What? And others say even that the external world
|
|
is the work of our organs? But then our body, as a part of this external
|
|
world, would be the work of our organs! But then our organs themselves
|
|
would be the work of our organs! It seems to me that this is a
|
|
complete REDUCTIO AD ABSURDUM, if the conception CAUSA SUI is something
|
|
fundamentally absurd. Consequently, the external world is NOT the work
|
|
of our organs--?
|
|
|
|
16. There are still harmless self-observers who believe that there are
|
|
"immediate certainties"; for instance, "I think," or as the superstition
|
|
of Schopenhauer puts it, "I will"; as though cognition here got hold
|
|
of its object purely and simply as "the thing in itself," without any
|
|
falsification taking place either on the part of the subject or the
|
|
object. I would repeat it, however, a hundred times, that "immediate
|
|
certainty," as well as "absolute knowledge" and the "thing in itself,"
|
|
involve a CONTRADICTIO IN ADJECTO; we really ought to free ourselves
|
|
from the misleading significance of words! The people on their part may
|
|
think that cognition is knowing all about things, but the philosopher
|
|
must say to himself: "When I analyze the process that is expressed in
|
|
the sentence, 'I think,' I find a whole series of daring assertions, the
|
|
argumentative proof of which would be difficult, perhaps impossible:
|
|
for instance, that it is _I_ who think, that there must necessarily be
|
|
something that thinks, that thinking is an activity and operation on the
|
|
part of a being who is thought of as a cause, that there is an 'ego,'
|
|
and finally, that it is already determined what is to be designated by
|
|
thinking--that I KNOW what thinking is. For if I had not already decided
|
|
within myself what it is, by what standard could I determine whether
|
|
that which is just happening is not perhaps 'willing' or 'feeling'? In
|
|
short, the assertion 'I think,' assumes that I COMPARE my state at the
|
|
present moment with other states of myself which I know, in order to
|
|
determine what it is; on account of this retrospective connection with
|
|
further 'knowledge,' it has, at any rate, no immediate certainty for
|
|
me."--In place of the "immediate certainty" in which the people may
|
|
believe in the special case, the philosopher thus finds a series of
|
|
metaphysical questions presented to him, veritable conscience questions
|
|
of the intellect, to wit: "Whence did I get the notion of 'thinking'?
|
|
Why do I believe in cause and effect? What gives me the right to speak
|
|
of an 'ego,' and even of an 'ego' as cause, and finally of an 'ego'
|
|
as cause of thought?" He who ventures to answer these metaphysical
|
|
questions at once by an appeal to a sort of INTUITIVE perception, like
|
|
the person who says, "I think, and know that this, at least, is
|
|
true, actual, and certain"--will encounter a smile and two notes of
|
|
interrogation in a philosopher nowadays. "Sir," the philosopher will
|
|
perhaps give him to understand, "it is improbable that you are not
|
|
mistaken, but why should it be the truth?"
|
|
|
|
17. With regard to the superstitions of logicians, I shall never tire
|
|
of emphasizing a small, terse fact, which is unwillingly recognized by
|
|
these credulous minds--namely, that a thought comes when "it" wishes,
|
|
and not when "I" wish; so that it is a PERVERSION of the facts of the
|
|
case to say that the subject "I" is the condition of the predicate
|
|
"think." ONE thinks; but that this "one" is precisely the famous old
|
|
"ego," is, to put it mildly, only a supposition, an assertion, and
|
|
assuredly not an "immediate certainty." After all, one has even gone too
|
|
far with this "one thinks"--even the "one" contains an INTERPRETATION of
|
|
the process, and does not belong to the process itself. One infers here
|
|
according to the usual grammatical formula--"To think is an activity;
|
|
every activity requires an agency that is active; consequently"... It
|
|
was pretty much on the same lines that the older atomism sought, besides
|
|
the operating "power," the material particle wherein it resides and out
|
|
of which it operates--the atom. More rigorous minds, however, learnt at
|
|
last to get along without this "earth-residuum," and perhaps some day we
|
|
shall accustom ourselves, even from the logician's point of view, to
|
|
get along without the little "one" (to which the worthy old "ego" has
|
|
refined itself).
|
|
|
|
18. It is certainly not the least charm of a theory that it is
|
|
refutable; it is precisely thereby that it attracts the more subtle
|
|
minds. It seems that the hundred-times-refuted theory of the "free will"
|
|
owes its persistence to this charm alone; some one is always appearing
|
|
who feels himself strong enough to refute it.
|
|
|
|
19. Philosophers are accustomed to speak of the will as though it were
|
|
the best-known thing in the world; indeed, Schopenhauer has given us
|
|
to understand that the will alone is really known to us, absolutely and
|
|
completely known, without deduction or addition. But it again and
|
|
again seems to me that in this case Schopenhauer also only did what
|
|
philosophers are in the habit of doing--he seems to have adopted a
|
|
POPULAR PREJUDICE and exaggerated it. Willing seems to me to be above
|
|
all something COMPLICATED, something that is a unity only in name--and
|
|
it is precisely in a name that popular prejudice lurks, which has got
|
|
the mastery over the inadequate precautions of philosophers in all ages.
|
|
So let us for once be more cautious, let us be "unphilosophical": let
|
|
us say that in all willing there is firstly a plurality of sensations,
|
|
namely, the sensation of the condition "AWAY FROM WHICH we go," the
|
|
sensation of the condition "TOWARDS WHICH we go," the sensation of this
|
|
"FROM" and "TOWARDS" itself, and then besides, an accompanying muscular
|
|
sensation, which, even without our putting in motion "arms and legs,"
|
|
commences its action by force of habit, directly we "will" anything.
|
|
Therefore, just as sensations (and indeed many kinds of sensations) are
|
|
to be recognized as ingredients of the will, so, in the second place,
|
|
thinking is also to be recognized; in every act of the will there is
|
|
a ruling thought;--and let us not imagine it possible to sever this
|
|
thought from the "willing," as if the will would then remain over!
|
|
In the third place, the will is not only a complex of sensation and
|
|
thinking, but it is above all an EMOTION, and in fact the emotion of the
|
|
command. That which is termed "freedom of the will" is essentially the
|
|
emotion of supremacy in respect to him who must obey: "I am free, 'he'
|
|
must obey"--this consciousness is inherent in every will; and equally
|
|
so the straining of the attention, the straight look which fixes itself
|
|
exclusively on one thing, the unconditional judgment that "this and
|
|
nothing else is necessary now," the inward certainty that obedience
|
|
will be rendered--and whatever else pertains to the position of the
|
|
commander. A man who WILLS commands something within himself which
|
|
renders obedience, or which he believes renders obedience. But now let
|
|
us notice what is the strangest thing about the will,--this affair so
|
|
extremely complex, for which the people have only one name. Inasmuch as
|
|
in the given circumstances we are at the same time the commanding AND
|
|
the obeying parties, and as the obeying party we know the sensations of
|
|
constraint, impulsion, pressure, resistance, and motion, which usually
|
|
commence immediately after the act of will; inasmuch as, on the other
|
|
hand, we are accustomed to disregard this duality, and to deceive
|
|
ourselves about it by means of the synthetic term "I": a whole series
|
|
of erroneous conclusions, and consequently of false judgments about the
|
|
will itself, has become attached to the act of willing--to such a degree
|
|
that he who wills believes firmly that willing SUFFICES for action.
|
|
Since in the majority of cases there has only been exercise of will
|
|
when the effect of the command--consequently obedience, and therefore
|
|
action--was to be EXPECTED, the APPEARANCE has translated itself into
|
|
the sentiment, as if there were a NECESSITY OF EFFECT; in a word, he who
|
|
wills believes with a fair amount of certainty that will and action are
|
|
somehow one; he ascribes the success, the carrying out of the willing,
|
|
to the will itself, and thereby enjoys an increase of the sensation
|
|
of power which accompanies all success. "Freedom of Will"--that is the
|
|
expression for the complex state of delight of the person exercising
|
|
volition, who commands and at the same time identifies himself with
|
|
the executor of the order--who, as such, enjoys also the triumph over
|
|
obstacles, but thinks within himself that it was really his own will
|
|
that overcame them. In this way the person exercising volition adds the
|
|
feelings of delight of his successful executive instruments, the useful
|
|
"underwills" or under-souls--indeed, our body is but a social structure
|
|
composed of many souls--to his feelings of delight as commander. L'EFFET
|
|
C'EST MOI. what happens here is what happens in every well-constructed
|
|
and happy commonwealth, namely, that the governing class identifies
|
|
itself with the successes of the commonwealth. In all willing it is
|
|
absolutely a question of commanding and obeying, on the basis, as
|
|
already said, of a social structure composed of many "souls", on which
|
|
account a philosopher should claim the right to include willing-as-such
|
|
within the sphere of morals--regarded as the doctrine of the relations
|
|
of supremacy under which the phenomenon of "life" manifests itself.
|
|
|
|
20. That the separate philosophical ideas are not anything optional or
|
|
autonomously evolving, but grow up in connection and relationship with
|
|
each other, that, however suddenly and arbitrarily they seem to appear
|
|
in the history of thought, they nevertheless belong just as much to
|
|
a system as the collective members of the fauna of a Continent--is
|
|
betrayed in the end by the circumstance: how unfailingly the most
|
|
diverse philosophers always fill in again a definite fundamental scheme
|
|
of POSSIBLE philosophies. Under an invisible spell, they always revolve
|
|
once more in the same orbit, however independent of each other they
|
|
may feel themselves with their critical or systematic wills, something
|
|
within them leads them, something impels them in definite order the
|
|
one after the other--to wit, the innate methodology and relationship
|
|
of their ideas. Their thinking is, in fact, far less a discovery than a
|
|
re-recognizing, a remembering, a return and a home-coming to a far-off,
|
|
ancient common-household of the soul, out of which those ideas formerly
|
|
grew: philosophizing is so far a kind of atavism of the highest order.
|
|
The wonderful family resemblance of all Indian, Greek, and German
|
|
philosophizing is easily enough explained. In fact, where there is
|
|
affinity of language, owing to the common philosophy of grammar--I mean
|
|
owing to the unconscious domination and guidance of similar grammatical
|
|
functions--it cannot but be that everything is prepared at the outset
|
|
for a similar development and succession of philosophical systems,
|
|
just as the way seems barred against certain other possibilities of
|
|
world-interpretation. It is highly probable that philosophers within the
|
|
domain of the Ural-Altaic languages (where the conception of the subject
|
|
is least developed) look otherwise "into the world," and will be
|
|
found on paths of thought different from those of the Indo-Germans and
|
|
Mussulmans, the spell of certain grammatical functions is ultimately
|
|
also the spell of PHYSIOLOGICAL valuations and racial conditions.--So
|
|
much by way of rejecting Locke's superficiality with regard to the
|
|
origin of ideas.
|
|
|
|
21. The CAUSA SUI is the best self-contradiction that has yet been
|
|
conceived, it is a sort of logical violation and unnaturalness; but the
|
|
extravagant pride of man has managed to entangle itself profoundly and
|
|
frightfully with this very folly. The desire for "freedom of will"
|
|
in the superlative, metaphysical sense, such as still holds sway,
|
|
unfortunately, in the minds of the half-educated, the desire to bear
|
|
the entire and ultimate responsibility for one's actions oneself, and
|
|
to absolve God, the world, ancestors, chance, and society therefrom,
|
|
involves nothing less than to be precisely this CAUSA SUI, and, with
|
|
more than Munchausen daring, to pull oneself up into existence by the
|
|
hair, out of the slough of nothingness. If any one should find out in
|
|
this manner the crass stupidity of the celebrated conception of "free
|
|
will" and put it out of his head altogether, I beg of him to carry
|
|
his "enlightenment" a step further, and also put out of his head the
|
|
contrary of this monstrous conception of "free will": I mean "non-free
|
|
will," which is tantamount to a misuse of cause and effect. One
|
|
should not wrongly MATERIALISE "cause" and "effect," as the natural
|
|
philosophers do (and whoever like them naturalize in thinking at
|
|
present), according to the prevailing mechanical doltishness which makes
|
|
the cause press and push until it "effects" its end; one should use
|
|
"cause" and "effect" only as pure CONCEPTIONS, that is to say, as
|
|
conventional fictions for the purpose of designation and mutual
|
|
understanding,--NOT for explanation. In "being-in-itself" there is
|
|
nothing of "casual-connection," of "necessity," or of "psychological
|
|
non-freedom"; there the effect does NOT follow the cause, there "law"
|
|
does not obtain. It is WE alone who have devised cause, sequence,
|
|
reciprocity, relativity, constraint, number, law, freedom, motive,
|
|
and purpose; and when we interpret and intermix this symbol-world,
|
|
as "being-in-itself," with things, we act once more as we have always
|
|
acted--MYTHOLOGICALLY. The "non-free will" is mythology; in real life
|
|
it is only a question of STRONG and WEAK wills.--It is almost always
|
|
a symptom of what is lacking in himself, when a thinker, in every
|
|
"causal-connection" and "psychological necessity," manifests something
|
|
of compulsion, indigence, obsequiousness, oppression, and non-freedom;
|
|
it is suspicious to have such feelings--the person betrays himself. And
|
|
in general, if I have observed correctly, the "non-freedom of the will"
|
|
is regarded as a problem from two entirely opposite standpoints, but
|
|
always in a profoundly PERSONAL manner: some will not give up their
|
|
"responsibility," their belief in THEMSELVES, the personal right to
|
|
THEIR merits, at any price (the vain races belong to this class); others
|
|
on the contrary, do not wish to be answerable for anything, or blamed
|
|
for anything, and owing to an inward self-contempt, seek to GET OUT OF
|
|
THE BUSINESS, no matter how. The latter, when they write books, are
|
|
in the habit at present of taking the side of criminals; a sort of
|
|
socialistic sympathy is their favourite disguise. And as a matter of
|
|
fact, the fatalism of the weak-willed embellishes itself surprisingly
|
|
when it can pose as "la religion de la souffrance humaine"; that is ITS
|
|
"good taste."
|
|
|
|
22. Let me be pardoned, as an old philologist who cannot desist from
|
|
the mischief of putting his finger on bad modes of interpretation, but
|
|
"Nature's conformity to law," of which you physicists talk so proudly,
|
|
as though--why, it exists only owing to your interpretation and bad
|
|
"philology." It is no matter of fact, no "text," but rather just a
|
|
naively humanitarian adjustment and perversion of meaning, with which
|
|
you make abundant concessions to the democratic instincts of the modern
|
|
soul! "Everywhere equality before the law--Nature is not different in
|
|
that respect, nor better than we": a fine instance of secret motive,
|
|
in which the vulgar antagonism to everything privileged and
|
|
autocratic--likewise a second and more refined atheism--is once more
|
|
disguised. "Ni dieu, ni maitre"--that, also, is what you want; and
|
|
therefore "Cheers for natural law!"--is it not so? But, as has been
|
|
said, that is interpretation, not text; and somebody might come along,
|
|
who, with opposite intentions and modes of interpretation, could read
|
|
out of the same "Nature," and with regard to the same phenomena, just
|
|
the tyrannically inconsiderate and relentless enforcement of the claims
|
|
of power--an interpreter who should so place the unexceptionalness and
|
|
unconditionalness of all "Will to Power" before your eyes, that almost
|
|
every word, and the word "tyranny" itself, would eventually seem
|
|
unsuitable, or like a weakening and softening metaphor--as being too
|
|
human; and who should, nevertheless, end by asserting the same about
|
|
this world as you do, namely, that it has a "necessary" and "calculable"
|
|
course, NOT, however, because laws obtain in it, but because they are
|
|
absolutely LACKING, and every power effects its ultimate consequences
|
|
every moment. Granted that this also is only interpretation--and you
|
|
will be eager enough to make this objection?--well, so much the better.
|
|
|
|
23. All psychology hitherto has run aground on moral prejudices and
|
|
timidities, it has not dared to launch out into the depths. In so far
|
|
as it is allowable to recognize in that which has hitherto been written,
|
|
evidence of that which has hitherto been kept silent, it seems as if
|
|
nobody had yet harboured the notion of psychology as the Morphology
|
|
and DEVELOPMENT-DOCTRINE OF THE WILL TO POWER, as I conceive of it.
|
|
The power of moral prejudices has penetrated deeply into the most
|
|
intellectual world, the world apparently most indifferent and
|
|
unprejudiced, and has obviously operated in an injurious, obstructive,
|
|
blinding, and distorting manner. A proper physio-psychology has to
|
|
contend with unconscious antagonism in the heart of the investigator,
|
|
it has "the heart" against it even a doctrine of the reciprocal
|
|
conditionalness of the "good" and the "bad" impulses, causes (as
|
|
refined immorality) distress and aversion in a still strong and manly
|
|
conscience--still more so, a doctrine of the derivation of all good
|
|
impulses from bad ones. If, however, a person should regard even
|
|
the emotions of hatred, envy, covetousness, and imperiousness
|
|
as life-conditioning emotions, as factors which must be present,
|
|
fundamentally and essentially, in the general economy of life (which
|
|
must, therefore, be further developed if life is to be further
|
|
developed), he will suffer from such a view of things as from
|
|
sea-sickness. And yet this hypothesis is far from being the strangest
|
|
and most painful in this immense and almost new domain of dangerous
|
|
knowledge, and there are in fact a hundred good reasons why every one
|
|
should keep away from it who CAN do so! On the other hand, if one has
|
|
once drifted hither with one's bark, well! very good! now let us set our
|
|
teeth firmly! let us open our eyes and keep our hand fast on the helm!
|
|
We sail away right OVER morality, we crush out, we destroy perhaps the
|
|
remains of our own morality by daring to make our voyage thither--but
|
|
what do WE matter. Never yet did a PROFOUNDER world of insight reveal
|
|
itself to daring travelers and adventurers, and the psychologist who
|
|
thus "makes a sacrifice"--it is not the sacrifizio dell' intelletto,
|
|
on the contrary!--will at least be entitled to demand in return that
|
|
psychology shall once more be recognized as the queen of the sciences,
|
|
for whose service and equipment the other sciences exist. For psychology
|
|
is once more the path to the fundamental problems.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II. THE FREE SPIRIT
|
|
|
|
|
|
24. O sancta simplicitiatas! In what strange simplification and
|
|
falsification man lives! One can never cease wondering when once one has
|
|
got eyes for beholding this marvel! How we have made everything around
|
|
us clear and free and easy and simple! how we have been able to give
|
|
our senses a passport to everything superficial, our thoughts a godlike
|
|
desire for wanton pranks and wrong inferences!--how from the beginning,
|
|
we have contrived to retain our ignorance in order to enjoy an almost
|
|
inconceivable freedom, thoughtlessness, imprudence, heartiness,
|
|
and gaiety--in order to enjoy life! And only on this solidified,
|
|
granite-like foundation of ignorance could knowledge rear itself
|
|
hitherto, the will to knowledge on the foundation of a far more powerful
|
|
will, the will to ignorance, to the uncertain, to the untrue! Not as
|
|
its opposite, but--as its refinement! It is to be hoped, indeed, that
|
|
LANGUAGE, here as elsewhere, will not get over its awkwardness, and that
|
|
it will continue to talk of opposites where there are only degrees
|
|
and many refinements of gradation; it is equally to be hoped that the
|
|
incarnated Tartuffery of morals, which now belongs to our unconquerable
|
|
"flesh and blood," will turn the words round in the mouths of us
|
|
discerning ones. Here and there we understand it, and laugh at the way
|
|
in which precisely the best knowledge seeks most to retain us in this
|
|
SIMPLIFIED, thoroughly artificial, suitably imagined, and suitably
|
|
falsified world: at the way in which, whether it will or not, it loves
|
|
error, because, as living itself, it loves life!
|
|
|
|
25. After such a cheerful commencement, a serious word would fain be
|
|
heard; it appeals to the most serious minds. Take care, ye philosophers
|
|
and friends of knowledge, and beware of martyrdom! Of suffering "for the
|
|
truth's sake"! even in your own defense! It spoils all the innocence
|
|
and fine neutrality of your conscience; it makes you headstrong against
|
|
objections and red rags; it stupefies, animalizes, and brutalizes, when
|
|
in the struggle with danger, slander, suspicion, expulsion, and even
|
|
worse consequences of enmity, ye have at last to play your last card
|
|
as protectors of truth upon earth--as though "the Truth" were such an
|
|
innocent and incompetent creature as to require protectors! and you of
|
|
all people, ye knights of the sorrowful countenance, Messrs Loafers and
|
|
Cobweb-spinners of the spirit! Finally, ye know sufficiently well that
|
|
it cannot be of any consequence if YE just carry your point; ye know
|
|
that hitherto no philosopher has carried his point, and that there might
|
|
be a more laudable truthfulness in every little interrogative mark
|
|
which you place after your special words and favourite doctrines (and
|
|
occasionally after yourselves) than in all the solemn pantomime and
|
|
trumping games before accusers and law-courts! Rather go out of the way!
|
|
Flee into concealment! And have your masks and your ruses, that ye may
|
|
be mistaken for what you are, or somewhat feared! And pray, don't forget
|
|
the garden, the garden with golden trellis-work! And have people around
|
|
you who are as a garden--or as music on the waters at eventide, when
|
|
already the day becomes a memory. Choose the GOOD solitude, the free,
|
|
wanton, lightsome solitude, which also gives you the right still to
|
|
remain good in any sense whatsoever! How poisonous, how crafty, how bad,
|
|
does every long war make one, which cannot be waged openly by means
|
|
of force! How PERSONAL does a long fear make one, a long watching
|
|
of enemies, of possible enemies! These pariahs of society, these
|
|
long-pursued, badly-persecuted ones--also the compulsory recluses, the
|
|
Spinozas or Giordano Brunos--always become in the end, even under the
|
|
most intellectual masquerade, and perhaps without being themselves aware
|
|
of it, refined vengeance-seekers and poison-Brewers (just lay bare
|
|
the foundation of Spinoza's ethics and theology!), not to speak of
|
|
the stupidity of moral indignation, which is the unfailing sign in a
|
|
philosopher that the sense of philosophical humour has left him. The
|
|
martyrdom of the philosopher, his "sacrifice for the sake of truth,"
|
|
forces into the light whatever of the agitator and actor lurks in him;
|
|
and if one has hitherto contemplated him only with artistic curiosity,
|
|
with regard to many a philosopher it is easy to understand the dangerous
|
|
desire to see him also in his deterioration (deteriorated into a
|
|
"martyr," into a stage-and-tribune-bawler). Only, that it is necessary
|
|
with such a desire to be clear WHAT spectacle one will see in any
|
|
case--merely a satyric play, merely an epilogue farce, merely the
|
|
continued proof that the long, real tragedy IS AT AN END, supposing that
|
|
every philosophy has been a long tragedy in its origin.
|
|
|
|
26. Every select man strives instinctively for a citadel and a privacy,
|
|
where he is FREE from the crowd, the many, the majority--where he may
|
|
forget "men who are the rule," as their exception;--exclusive only of
|
|
the case in which he is pushed straight to such men by a still stronger
|
|
instinct, as a discerner in the great and exceptional sense. Whoever, in
|
|
intercourse with men, does not occasionally glisten in all the green
|
|
and grey colours of distress, owing to disgust, satiety, sympathy,
|
|
gloominess, and solitariness, is assuredly not a man of elevated tastes;
|
|
supposing, however, that he does not voluntarily take all this burden
|
|
and disgust upon himself, that he persistently avoids it, and remains,
|
|
as I said, quietly and proudly hidden in his citadel, one thing is then
|
|
certain: he was not made, he was not predestined for knowledge. For as
|
|
such, he would one day have to say to himself: "The devil take my good
|
|
taste! but 'the rule' is more interesting than the exception--than
|
|
myself, the exception!" And he would go DOWN, and above all, he would
|
|
go "inside." The long and serious study of the AVERAGE man--and
|
|
consequently much disguise, self-overcoming, familiarity, and bad
|
|
intercourse (all intercourse is bad intercourse except with one's
|
|
equals):--that constitutes a necessary part of the life-history of every
|
|
philosopher; perhaps the most disagreeable, odious, and disappointing
|
|
part. If he is fortunate, however, as a favourite child of knowledge
|
|
should be, he will meet with suitable auxiliaries who will shorten and
|
|
lighten his task; I mean so-called cynics, those who simply recognize
|
|
the animal, the commonplace and "the rule" in themselves, and at the
|
|
same time have so much spirituality and ticklishness as to make them
|
|
talk of themselves and their like BEFORE WITNESSES--sometimes they
|
|
wallow, even in books, as on their own dung-hill. Cynicism is the only
|
|
form in which base souls approach what is called honesty; and the
|
|
higher man must open his ears to all the coarser or finer cynicism, and
|
|
congratulate himself when the clown becomes shameless right before
|
|
him, or the scientific satyr speaks out. There are even cases where
|
|
enchantment mixes with the disgust--namely, where by a freak of nature,
|
|
genius is bound to some such indiscreet billy-goat and ape, as in the
|
|
case of the Abbe Galiani, the profoundest, acutest, and perhaps also
|
|
filthiest man of his century--he was far profounder than Voltaire, and
|
|
consequently also, a good deal more silent. It happens more frequently,
|
|
as has been hinted, that a scientific head is placed on an ape's body, a
|
|
fine exceptional understanding in a base soul, an occurrence by no means
|
|
rare, especially among doctors and moral physiologists. And whenever
|
|
anyone speaks without bitterness, or rather quite innocently, of man
|
|
as a belly with two requirements, and a head with one; whenever any one
|
|
sees, seeks, and WANTS to see only hunger, sexual instinct, and vanity
|
|
as the real and only motives of human actions; in short, when any one
|
|
speaks "badly"--and not even "ill"--of man, then ought the lover of
|
|
knowledge to hearken attentively and diligently; he ought, in general,
|
|
to have an open ear wherever there is talk without indignation. For the
|
|
indignant man, and he who perpetually tears and lacerates himself with
|
|
his own teeth (or, in place of himself, the world, God, or society),
|
|
may indeed, morally speaking, stand higher than the laughing and
|
|
self-satisfied satyr, but in every other sense he is the more ordinary,
|
|
more indifferent, and less instructive case. And no one is such a LIAR
|
|
as the indignant man.
|
|
|
|
27. It is difficult to be understood, especially when one thinks and
|
|
lives gangasrotogati [Footnote: Like the river Ganges: presto.] among
|
|
those only who think and live otherwise--namely, kurmagati [Footnote:
|
|
Like the tortoise: lento.], or at best "froglike," mandeikagati
|
|
[Footnote: Like the frog: staccato.] (I do everything to be "difficultly
|
|
understood" myself!)--and one should be heartily grateful for the
|
|
good will to some refinement of interpretation. As regards "the good
|
|
friends," however, who are always too easy-going, and think that as
|
|
friends they have a right to ease, one does well at the very first to
|
|
grant them a play-ground and romping-place for misunderstanding--one can
|
|
thus laugh still; or get rid of them altogether, these good friends--and
|
|
laugh then also!
|
|
|
|
28. What is most difficult to render from one language into another
|
|
is the TEMPO of its style, which has its basis in the character of the
|
|
race, or to speak more physiologically, in the average TEMPO of the
|
|
assimilation of its nutriment. There are honestly meant translations,
|
|
which, as involuntary vulgarizations, are almost falsifications of the
|
|
original, merely because its lively and merry TEMPO (which overleaps and
|
|
obviates all dangers in word and expression) could not also be
|
|
rendered. A German is almost incapacitated for PRESTO in his language;
|
|
consequently also, as may be reasonably inferred, for many of the most
|
|
delightful and daring NUANCES of free, free-spirited thought. And just
|
|
as the buffoon and satyr are foreign to him in body and conscience,
|
|
so Aristophanes and Petronius are untranslatable for him. Everything
|
|
ponderous, viscous, and pompously clumsy, all long-winded and wearying
|
|
species of style, are developed in profuse variety among Germans--pardon
|
|
me for stating the fact that even Goethe's prose, in its mixture of
|
|
stiffness and elegance, is no exception, as a reflection of the "good
|
|
old time" to which it belongs, and as an expression of German taste at a
|
|
time when there was still a "German taste," which was a rococo-taste
|
|
in moribus et artibus. Lessing is an exception, owing to his histrionic
|
|
nature, which understood much, and was versed in many things; he who was
|
|
not the translator of Bayle to no purpose, who took refuge willingly in
|
|
the shadow of Diderot and Voltaire, and still more willingly among the
|
|
Roman comedy-writers--Lessing loved also free-spiritism in the TEMPO,
|
|
and flight out of Germany. But how could the German language, even
|
|
in the prose of Lessing, imitate the TEMPO of Machiavelli, who in his
|
|
"Principe" makes us breathe the dry, fine air of Florence, and cannot
|
|
help presenting the most serious events in a boisterous allegrissimo,
|
|
perhaps not without a malicious artistic sense of the contrast he
|
|
ventures to present--long, heavy, difficult, dangerous thoughts, and
|
|
a TEMPO of the gallop, and of the best, wantonest humour? Finally, who
|
|
would venture on a German translation of Petronius, who, more than any
|
|
great musician hitherto, was a master of PRESTO in invention, ideas, and
|
|
words? What matter in the end about the swamps of the sick, evil world,
|
|
or of the "ancient world," when like him, one has the feet of a wind,
|
|
the rush, the breath, the emancipating scorn of a wind, which makes
|
|
everything healthy, by making everything RUN! And with regard to
|
|
Aristophanes--that transfiguring, complementary genius, for whose
|
|
sake one PARDONS all Hellenism for having existed, provided one has
|
|
understood in its full profundity ALL that there requires pardon and
|
|
transfiguration; there is nothing that has caused me to meditate more on
|
|
PLATO'S secrecy and sphinx-like nature, than the happily preserved petit
|
|
fait that under the pillow of his death-bed there was found no
|
|
"Bible," nor anything Egyptian, Pythagorean, or Platonic--but a book of
|
|
Aristophanes. How could even Plato have endured life--a Greek life which
|
|
he repudiated--without an Aristophanes!
|
|
|
|
29. It is the business of the very few to be independent; it is a
|
|
privilege of the strong. And whoever attempts it, even with the best
|
|
right, but without being OBLIGED to do so, proves that he is probably
|
|
not only strong, but also daring beyond measure. He enters into a
|
|
labyrinth, he multiplies a thousandfold the dangers which life in itself
|
|
already brings with it; not the least of which is that no one can see
|
|
how and where he loses his way, becomes isolated, and is torn piecemeal
|
|
by some minotaur of conscience. Supposing such a one comes to grief, it
|
|
is so far from the comprehension of men that they neither feel it, nor
|
|
sympathize with it. And he cannot any longer go back! He cannot even go
|
|
back again to the sympathy of men!
|
|
|
|
30. Our deepest insights must--and should--appear as follies, and under
|
|
certain circumstances as crimes, when they come unauthorizedly to
|
|
the ears of those who are not disposed and predestined for them. The
|
|
exoteric and the esoteric, as they were formerly distinguished by
|
|
philosophers--among the Indians, as among the Greeks, Persians, and
|
|
Mussulmans, in short, wherever people believed in gradations of rank and
|
|
NOT in equality and equal rights--are not so much in contradistinction
|
|
to one another in respect to the exoteric class, standing without, and
|
|
viewing, estimating, measuring, and judging from the outside, and not
|
|
from the inside; the more essential distinction is that the class in
|
|
question views things from below upwards--while the esoteric class views
|
|
things FROM ABOVE DOWNWARDS. There are heights of the soul from which
|
|
tragedy itself no longer appears to operate tragically; and if all the
|
|
woe in the world were taken together, who would dare to decide whether
|
|
the sight of it would NECESSARILY seduce and constrain to sympathy, and
|
|
thus to a doubling of the woe?... That which serves the higher class of
|
|
men for nourishment or refreshment, must be almost poison to an entirely
|
|
different and lower order of human beings. The virtues of the common
|
|
man would perhaps mean vice and weakness in a philosopher; it might be
|
|
possible for a highly developed man, supposing him to degenerate and go
|
|
to ruin, to acquire qualities thereby alone, for the sake of which he
|
|
would have to be honoured as a saint in the lower world into which he
|
|
had sunk. There are books which have an inverse value for the soul and
|
|
the health according as the inferior soul and the lower vitality, or the
|
|
higher and more powerful, make use of them. In the former case they are
|
|
dangerous, disturbing, unsettling books, in the latter case they are
|
|
herald-calls which summon the bravest to THEIR bravery. Books for the
|
|
general reader are always ill-smelling books, the odour of paltry people
|
|
clings to them. Where the populace eat and drink, and even where they
|
|
reverence, it is accustomed to stink. One should not go into churches if
|
|
one wishes to breathe PURE air.
|
|
|
|
31. In our youthful years we still venerate and despise without the art
|
|
of NUANCE, which is the best gain of life, and we have rightly to do
|
|
hard penance for having fallen upon men and things with Yea and Nay.
|
|
Everything is so arranged that the worst of all tastes, THE TASTE FOR
|
|
THE UNCONDITIONAL, is cruelly befooled and abused, until a man learns
|
|
to introduce a little art into his sentiments, and prefers to try
|
|
conclusions with the artificial, as do the real artists of life. The
|
|
angry and reverent spirit peculiar to youth appears to allow itself no
|
|
peace, until it has suitably falsified men and things, to be able
|
|
to vent its passion upon them: youth in itself even, is something
|
|
falsifying and deceptive. Later on, when the young soul, tortured by
|
|
continual disillusions, finally turns suspiciously against itself--still
|
|
ardent and savage even in its suspicion and remorse of conscience: how
|
|
it upbraids itself, how impatiently it tears itself, how it revenges
|
|
itself for its long self-blinding, as though it had been a voluntary
|
|
blindness! In this transition one punishes oneself by distrust of one's
|
|
sentiments; one tortures one's enthusiasm with doubt, one feels even the
|
|
good conscience to be a danger, as if it were the self-concealment and
|
|
lassitude of a more refined uprightness; and above all, one espouses
|
|
upon principle the cause AGAINST "youth."--A decade later, and one
|
|
comprehends that all this was also still--youth!
|
|
|
|
32. Throughout the longest period of human history--one calls it the
|
|
prehistoric period--the value or non-value of an action was inferred
|
|
from its CONSEQUENCES; the action in itself was not taken into
|
|
consideration, any more than its origin; but pretty much as in China at
|
|
present, where the distinction or disgrace of a child redounds to
|
|
its parents, the retro-operating power of success or failure was what
|
|
induced men to think well or ill of an action. Let us call this period
|
|
the PRE-MORAL period of mankind; the imperative, "Know thyself!" was
|
|
then still unknown.--In the last ten thousand years, on the other hand,
|
|
on certain large portions of the earth, one has gradually got so far,
|
|
that one no longer lets the consequences of an action, but its origin,
|
|
decide with regard to its worth: a great achievement as a whole, an
|
|
important refinement of vision and of criterion, the unconscious effect
|
|
of the supremacy of aristocratic values and of the belief in "origin,"
|
|
the mark of a period which may be designated in the narrower sense as
|
|
the MORAL one: the first attempt at self-knowledge is thereby
|
|
made. Instead of the consequences, the origin--what an inversion
|
|
of perspective! And assuredly an inversion effected only after long
|
|
struggle and wavering! To be sure, an ominous new superstition, a
|
|
peculiar narrowness of interpretation, attained supremacy precisely
|
|
thereby: the origin of an action was interpreted in the most definite
|
|
sense possible, as origin out of an INTENTION; people were agreed in the
|
|
belief that the value of an action lay in the value of its intention.
|
|
The intention as the sole origin and antecedent history of an action:
|
|
under the influence of this prejudice moral praise and blame have been
|
|
bestowed, and men have judged and even philosophized almost up to the
|
|
present day.--Is it not possible, however, that the necessity may now
|
|
have arisen of again making up our minds with regard to the reversing
|
|
and fundamental shifting of values, owing to a new self-consciousness
|
|
and acuteness in man--is it not possible that we may be standing on
|
|
the threshold of a period which to begin with, would be distinguished
|
|
negatively as ULTRA-MORAL: nowadays when, at least among us immoralists,
|
|
the suspicion arises that the decisive value of an action lies precisely
|
|
in that which is NOT INTENTIONAL, and that all its intentionalness, all
|
|
that is seen, sensible, or "sensed" in it, belongs to its surface or
|
|
skin--which, like every skin, betrays something, but CONCEALS still
|
|
more? In short, we believe that the intention is only a sign or symptom,
|
|
which first requires an explanation--a sign, moreover, which has too
|
|
many interpretations, and consequently hardly any meaning in itself
|
|
alone: that morality, in the sense in which it has been understood
|
|
hitherto, as intention-morality, has been a prejudice, perhaps a
|
|
prematureness or preliminariness, probably something of the same rank
|
|
as astrology and alchemy, but in any case something which must be
|
|
surmounted. The surmounting of morality, in a certain sense even the
|
|
self-mounting of morality--let that be the name for the long-secret
|
|
labour which has been reserved for the most refined, the most upright,
|
|
and also the most wicked consciences of today, as the living touchstones
|
|
of the soul.
|
|
|
|
33. It cannot be helped: the sentiment of surrender, of sacrifice for
|
|
one's neighbour, and all self-renunciation-morality, must be mercilessly
|
|
called to account, and brought to judgment; just as the aesthetics
|
|
of "disinterested contemplation," under which the emasculation of art
|
|
nowadays seeks insidiously enough to create itself a good conscience.
|
|
There is far too much witchery and sugar in the sentiments "for others"
|
|
and "NOT for myself," for one not needing to be doubly distrustful here,
|
|
and for one asking promptly: "Are they not perhaps--DECEPTIONS?"--That
|
|
they PLEASE--him who has them, and him who enjoys their fruit, and also
|
|
the mere spectator--that is still no argument in their FAVOUR, but just
|
|
calls for caution. Let us therefore be cautious!
|
|
|
|
34. At whatever standpoint of philosophy one may place oneself nowadays,
|
|
seen from every position, the ERRONEOUSNESS of the world in which we
|
|
think we live is the surest and most certain thing our eyes can light
|
|
upon: we find proof after proof thereof, which would fain allure us into
|
|
surmises concerning a deceptive principle in the "nature of things."
|
|
He, however, who makes thinking itself, and consequently "the spirit,"
|
|
responsible for the falseness of the world--an honourable exit, which
|
|
every conscious or unconscious advocatus dei avails himself of--he
|
|
who regards this world, including space, time, form, and movement, as
|
|
falsely DEDUCED, would have at least good reason in the end to become
|
|
distrustful also of all thinking; has it not hitherto been playing upon
|
|
us the worst of scurvy tricks? and what guarantee would it give that
|
|
it would not continue to do what it has always been doing? In all
|
|
seriousness, the innocence of thinkers has something touching and
|
|
respect-inspiring in it, which even nowadays permits them to wait upon
|
|
consciousness with the request that it will give them HONEST answers:
|
|
for example, whether it be "real" or not, and why it keeps the outer
|
|
world so resolutely at a distance, and other questions of the same
|
|
description. The belief in "immediate certainties" is a MORAL NAIVETE
|
|
which does honour to us philosophers; but--we have now to cease being
|
|
"MERELY moral" men! Apart from morality, such belief is a folly which
|
|
does little honour to us! If in middle-class life an ever-ready distrust
|
|
is regarded as the sign of a "bad character," and consequently as an
|
|
imprudence, here among us, beyond the middle-class world and its Yeas
|
|
and Nays, what should prevent our being imprudent and saying: the
|
|
philosopher has at length a RIGHT to "bad character," as the being who
|
|
has hitherto been most befooled on earth--he is now under OBLIGATION
|
|
to distrustfulness, to the wickedest squinting out of every abyss of
|
|
suspicion.--Forgive me the joke of this gloomy grimace and turn of
|
|
expression; for I myself have long ago learned to think and estimate
|
|
differently with regard to deceiving and being deceived, and I keep at
|
|
least a couple of pokes in the ribs ready for the blind rage with which
|
|
philosophers struggle against being deceived. Why NOT? It is nothing
|
|
more than a moral prejudice that truth is worth more than semblance; it
|
|
is, in fact, the worst proved supposition in the world. So much must be
|
|
conceded: there could have been no life at all except upon the basis
|
|
of perspective estimates and semblances; and if, with the virtuous
|
|
enthusiasm and stupidity of many philosophers, one wished to do away
|
|
altogether with the "seeming world"--well, granted that YOU could do
|
|
that,--at least nothing of your "truth" would thereby remain! Indeed,
|
|
what is it that forces us in general to the supposition that there is an
|
|
essential opposition of "true" and "false"? Is it not enough to suppose
|
|
degrees of seemingness, and as it were lighter and darker shades and
|
|
tones of semblance--different valeurs, as the painters say? Why might
|
|
not the world WHICH CONCERNS US--be a fiction? And to any one who
|
|
suggested: "But to a fiction belongs an originator?"--might it not be
|
|
bluntly replied: WHY? May not this "belong" also belong to the fiction?
|
|
Is it not at length permitted to be a little ironical towards the
|
|
subject, just as towards the predicate and object? Might not the
|
|
philosopher elevate himself above faith in grammar? All respect
|
|
to governesses, but is it not time that philosophy should renounce
|
|
governess-faith?
|
|
|
|
35. O Voltaire! O humanity! O idiocy! There is something ticklish in
|
|
"the truth," and in the SEARCH for the truth; and if man goes about it
|
|
too humanely--"il ne cherche le vrai que pour faire le bien"--I wager he
|
|
finds nothing!
|
|
|
|
36. Supposing that nothing else is "given" as real but our world of
|
|
desires and passions, that we cannot sink or rise to any other "reality"
|
|
but just that of our impulses--for thinking is only a relation of these
|
|
impulses to one another:--are we not permitted to make the attempt and
|
|
to ask the question whether this which is "given" does not SUFFICE, by
|
|
means of our counterparts, for the understanding even of the so-called
|
|
mechanical (or "material") world? I do not mean as an illusion, a
|
|
"semblance," a "representation" (in the Berkeleyan and Schopenhauerian
|
|
sense), but as possessing the same degree of reality as our emotions
|
|
themselves--as a more primitive form of the world of emotions, in
|
|
which everything still lies locked in a mighty unity, which afterwards
|
|
branches off and develops itself in organic processes (naturally also,
|
|
refines and debilitates)--as a kind of instinctive life in which all
|
|
organic functions, including self-regulation, assimilation, nutrition,
|
|
secretion, and change of matter, are still synthetically united with
|
|
one another--as a PRIMARY FORM of life?--In the end, it is not only
|
|
permitted to make this attempt, it is commanded by the conscience of
|
|
LOGICAL METHOD. Not to assume several kinds of causality, so long as
|
|
the attempt to get along with a single one has not been pushed to its
|
|
furthest extent (to absurdity, if I may be allowed to say so): that is
|
|
a morality of method which one may not repudiate nowadays--it follows
|
|
"from its definition," as mathematicians say. The question is ultimately
|
|
whether we really recognize the will as OPERATING, whether we believe in
|
|
the causality of the will; if we do so--and fundamentally our belief IN
|
|
THIS is just our belief in causality itself--we MUST make the attempt
|
|
to posit hypothetically the causality of the will as the only causality.
|
|
"Will" can naturally only operate on "will"--and not on "matter" (not
|
|
on "nerves," for instance): in short, the hypothesis must be
|
|
hazarded, whether will does not operate on will wherever "effects"
|
|
are recognized--and whether all mechanical action, inasmuch as a power
|
|
operates therein, is not just the power of will, the effect of will.
|
|
Granted, finally, that we succeeded in explaining our entire instinctive
|
|
life as the development and ramification of one fundamental form of
|
|
will--namely, the Will to Power, as my thesis puts it; granted that all
|
|
organic functions could be traced back to this Will to Power, and that
|
|
the solution of the problem of generation and nutrition--it is one
|
|
problem--could also be found therein: one would thus have acquired the
|
|
right to define ALL active force unequivocally as WILL TO POWER. The
|
|
world seen from within, the world defined and designated according to
|
|
its "intelligible character"--it would simply be "Will to Power," and
|
|
nothing else.
|
|
|
|
37. "What? Does not that mean in popular language: God is disproved, but
|
|
not the devil?"--On the contrary! On the contrary, my friends! And who
|
|
the devil also compels you to speak popularly!
|
|
|
|
38. As happened finally in all the enlightenment of modern times with
|
|
the French Revolution (that terrible farce, quite superfluous when
|
|
judged close at hand, into which, however, the noble and visionary
|
|
spectators of all Europe have interpreted from a distance their own
|
|
indignation and enthusiasm so long and passionately, UNTIL THE TEXT HAS
|
|
DISAPPEARED UNDER THE INTERPRETATION), so a noble posterity might once
|
|
more misunderstand the whole of the past, and perhaps only thereby make
|
|
ITS aspect endurable.--Or rather, has not this already happened? Have
|
|
not we ourselves been--that "noble posterity"? And, in so far as we now
|
|
comprehend this, is it not--thereby already past?
|
|
|
|
39. Nobody will very readily regard a doctrine as true merely because
|
|
it makes people happy or virtuous--excepting, perhaps, the amiable
|
|
"Idealists," who are enthusiastic about the good, true, and beautiful,
|
|
and let all kinds of motley, coarse, and good-natured desirabilities
|
|
swim about promiscuously in their pond. Happiness and virtue are no
|
|
arguments. It is willingly forgotten, however, even on the part of
|
|
thoughtful minds, that to make unhappy and to make bad are just as
|
|
little counter-arguments. A thing could be TRUE, although it were in
|
|
the highest degree injurious and dangerous; indeed, the fundamental
|
|
constitution of existence might be such that one succumbed by a full
|
|
knowledge of it--so that the strength of a mind might be measured by
|
|
the amount of "truth" it could endure--or to speak more plainly, by the
|
|
extent to which it REQUIRED truth attenuated, veiled, sweetened, damped,
|
|
and falsified. But there is no doubt that for the discovery of certain
|
|
PORTIONS of truth the wicked and unfortunate are more favourably
|
|
situated and have a greater likelihood of success; not to speak of the
|
|
wicked who are happy--a species about whom moralists are silent. Perhaps
|
|
severity and craft are more favourable conditions for the development of
|
|
strong, independent spirits and philosophers than the gentle, refined,
|
|
yielding good-nature, and habit of taking things easily, which are
|
|
prized, and rightly prized in a learned man. Presupposing always,
|
|
to begin with, that the term "philosopher" be not confined to the
|
|
philosopher who writes books, or even introduces HIS philosophy into
|
|
books!--Stendhal furnishes a last feature of the portrait of the
|
|
free-spirited philosopher, which for the sake of German taste I will
|
|
not omit to underline--for it is OPPOSED to German taste. "Pour etre
|
|
bon philosophe," says this last great psychologist, "il faut etre sec,
|
|
clair, sans illusion. Un banquier, qui a fait fortune, a une partie du
|
|
caractere requis pour faire des decouvertes en philosophie, c'est-a-dire
|
|
pour voir clair dans ce qui est."
|
|
|
|
40. Everything that is profound loves the mask: the profoundest things
|
|
have a hatred even of figure and likeness. Should not the CONTRARY only
|
|
be the right disguise for the shame of a God to go about in? A question
|
|
worth asking!--it would be strange if some mystic has not already
|
|
ventured on the same kind of thing. There are proceedings of such a
|
|
delicate nature that it is well to overwhelm them with coarseness
|
|
and make them unrecognizable; there are actions of love and of an
|
|
extravagant magnanimity after which nothing can be wiser than to take
|
|
a stick and thrash the witness soundly: one thereby obscures his
|
|
recollection. Many a one is able to obscure and abuse his own memory, in
|
|
order at least to have vengeance on this sole party in the secret:
|
|
shame is inventive. They are not the worst things of which one is
|
|
most ashamed: there is not only deceit behind a mask--there is so much
|
|
goodness in craft. I could imagine that a man with something costly and
|
|
fragile to conceal, would roll through life clumsily and rotundly like
|
|
an old, green, heavily-hooped wine-cask: the refinement of his shame
|
|
requiring it to be so. A man who has depths in his shame meets his
|
|
destiny and his delicate decisions upon paths which few ever reach,
|
|
and with regard to the existence of which his nearest and most intimate
|
|
friends may be ignorant; his mortal danger conceals itself from their
|
|
eyes, and equally so his regained security. Such a hidden nature,
|
|
which instinctively employs speech for silence and concealment, and is
|
|
inexhaustible in evasion of communication, DESIRES and insists that a
|
|
mask of himself shall occupy his place in the hearts and heads of his
|
|
friends; and supposing he does not desire it, his eyes will some day be
|
|
opened to the fact that there is nevertheless a mask of him there--and
|
|
that it is well to be so. Every profound spirit needs a mask; nay, more,
|
|
around every profound spirit there continually grows a mask, owing to
|
|
the constantly false, that is to say, SUPERFICIAL interpretation
|
|
of every word he utters, every step he takes, every sign of life he
|
|
manifests.
|
|
|
|
41. One must subject oneself to one's own tests that one is destined
|
|
for independence and command, and do so at the right time. One must not
|
|
avoid one's tests, although they constitute perhaps the most dangerous
|
|
game one can play, and are in the end tests made only before ourselves
|
|
and before no other judge. Not to cleave to any person, be it even the
|
|
dearest--every person is a prison and also a recess. Not to cleave to
|
|
a fatherland, be it even the most suffering and necessitous--it is even
|
|
less difficult to detach one's heart from a victorious fatherland. Not
|
|
to cleave to a sympathy, be it even for higher men, into whose peculiar
|
|
torture and helplessness chance has given us an insight. Not to cleave
|
|
to a science, though it tempt one with the most valuable discoveries,
|
|
apparently specially reserved for us. Not to cleave to one's own
|
|
liberation, to the voluptuous distance and remoteness of the bird, which
|
|
always flies further aloft in order always to see more under it--the
|
|
danger of the flier. Not to cleave to our own virtues, nor become as
|
|
a whole a victim to any of our specialties, to our "hospitality" for
|
|
instance, which is the danger of dangers for highly developed
|
|
and wealthy souls, who deal prodigally, almost indifferently with
|
|
themselves, and push the virtue of liberality so far that it becomes
|
|
a vice. One must know how TO CONSERVE ONESELF--the best test of
|
|
independence.
|
|
|
|
42. A new order of philosophers is appearing; I shall venture to baptize
|
|
them by a name not without danger. As far as I understand them, as far
|
|
as they allow themselves to be understood--for it is their nature to
|
|
WISH to remain something of a puzzle--these philosophers of the
|
|
future might rightly, perhaps also wrongly, claim to be designated as
|
|
"tempters." This name itself is after all only an attempt, or, if it be
|
|
preferred, a temptation.
|
|
|
|
43. Will they be new friends of "truth," these coming philosophers? Very
|
|
probably, for all philosophers hitherto have loved their truths. But
|
|
assuredly they will not be dogmatists. It must be contrary to their
|
|
pride, and also contrary to their taste, that their truth should still
|
|
be truth for every one--that which has hitherto been the secret wish
|
|
and ultimate purpose of all dogmatic efforts. "My opinion is MY opinion:
|
|
another person has not easily a right to it"--such a philosopher of the
|
|
future will say, perhaps. One must renounce the bad taste of wishing to
|
|
agree with many people. "Good" is no longer good when one's neighbour
|
|
takes it into his mouth. And how could there be a "common good"! The
|
|
expression contradicts itself; that which can be common is always of
|
|
small value. In the end things must be as they are and have always
|
|
been--the great things remain for the great, the abysses for the
|
|
profound, the delicacies and thrills for the refined, and, to sum up
|
|
shortly, everything rare for the rare.
|
|
|
|
|
|
44. Need I say expressly after all this that they will be free, VERY
|
|
free spirits, these philosophers of the future--as certainly also they
|
|
will not be merely free spirits, but something more, higher, greater,
|
|
and fundamentally different, which does not wish to be misunderstood and
|
|
mistaken? But while I say this, I feel under OBLIGATION almost as much
|
|
to them as to ourselves (we free spirits who are their heralds and
|
|
forerunners), to sweep away from ourselves altogether a stupid old
|
|
prejudice and misunderstanding, which, like a fog, has too long made the
|
|
conception of "free spirit" obscure. In every country of Europe, and the
|
|
same in America, there is at present something which makes an abuse of
|
|
this name a very narrow, prepossessed, enchained class of spirits,
|
|
who desire almost the opposite of what our intentions and instincts
|
|
prompt--not to mention that in respect to the NEW philosophers who are
|
|
appearing, they must still more be closed windows and bolted doors.
|
|
Briefly and regrettably, they belong to the LEVELLERS, these wrongly
|
|
named "free spirits"--as glib-tongued and scribe-fingered slaves of
|
|
the democratic taste and its "modern ideas" all of them men without
|
|
solitude, without personal solitude, blunt honest fellows to whom
|
|
neither courage nor honourable conduct ought to be denied, only, they
|
|
are not free, and are ludicrously superficial, especially in their
|
|
innate partiality for seeing the cause of almost ALL human misery and
|
|
failure in the old forms in which society has hitherto existed--a notion
|
|
which happily inverts the truth entirely! What they would fain attain
|
|
with all their strength, is the universal, green-meadow happiness of the
|
|
herd, together with security, safety, comfort, and alleviation of life
|
|
for every one, their two most frequently chanted songs and doctrines
|
|
are called "Equality of Rights" and "Sympathy with All Sufferers"--and
|
|
suffering itself is looked upon by them as something which must be
|
|
DONE AWAY WITH. We opposite ones, however, who have opened our eye and
|
|
conscience to the question how and where the plant "man" has hitherto
|
|
grown most vigorously, believe that this has always taken place under
|
|
the opposite conditions, that for this end the dangerousness of his
|
|
situation had to be increased enormously, his inventive faculty and
|
|
dissembling power (his "spirit") had to develop into subtlety and daring
|
|
under long oppression and compulsion, and his Will to Life had to be
|
|
increased to the unconditioned Will to Power--we believe that severity,
|
|
violence, slavery, danger in the street and in the heart, secrecy,
|
|
stoicism, tempter's art and devilry of every kind,--that everything
|
|
wicked, terrible, tyrannical, predatory, and serpentine in man, serves
|
|
as well for the elevation of the human species as its opposite--we do
|
|
not even say enough when we only say THIS MUCH, and in any case we
|
|
find ourselves here, both with our speech and our silence, at the OTHER
|
|
extreme of all modern ideology and gregarious desirability, as their
|
|
antipodes perhaps? What wonder that we "free spirits" are not exactly
|
|
the most communicative spirits? that we do not wish to betray in every
|
|
respect WHAT a spirit can free itself from, and WHERE perhaps it will
|
|
then be driven? And as to the import of the dangerous formula, "Beyond
|
|
Good and Evil," with which we at least avoid confusion, we ARE something
|
|
else than "libres-penseurs," "liben pensatori" "free-thinkers,"
|
|
and whatever these honest advocates of "modern ideas" like to call
|
|
themselves. Having been at home, or at least guests, in many realms of
|
|
the spirit, having escaped again and again from the gloomy, agreeable
|
|
nooks in which preferences and prejudices, youth, origin, the accident
|
|
of men and books, or even the weariness of travel seemed to confine us,
|
|
full of malice against the seductions of dependency which he concealed
|
|
in honours, money, positions, or exaltation of the senses, grateful even
|
|
for distress and the vicissitudes of illness, because they always free
|
|
us from some rule, and its "prejudice," grateful to the God, devil,
|
|
sheep, and worm in us, inquisitive to a fault, investigators to the
|
|
point of cruelty, with unhesitating fingers for the intangible, with
|
|
teeth and stomachs for the most indigestible, ready for any business
|
|
that requires sagacity and acute senses, ready for every adventure,
|
|
owing to an excess of "free will", with anterior and posterior souls,
|
|
into the ultimate intentions of which it is difficult to pry, with
|
|
foregrounds and backgrounds to the end of which no foot may run, hidden
|
|
ones under the mantles of light, appropriators, although we resemble
|
|
heirs and spendthrifts, arrangers and collectors from morning till
|
|
night, misers of our wealth and our full-crammed drawers, economical
|
|
in learning and forgetting, inventive in scheming, sometimes proud of
|
|
tables of categories, sometimes pedants, sometimes night-owls of
|
|
work even in full day, yea, if necessary, even scarecrows--and it is
|
|
necessary nowadays, that is to say, inasmuch as we are the born, sworn,
|
|
jealous friends of SOLITUDE, of our own profoundest midnight and midday
|
|
solitude--such kind of men are we, we free spirits! And perhaps ye are
|
|
also something of the same kind, ye coming ones? ye NEW philosophers?
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III. THE RELIGIOUS MOOD
|
|
|
|
|
|
45. The human soul and its limits, the range of man's inner experiences
|
|
hitherto attained, the heights, depths, and distances of these
|
|
experiences, the entire history of the soul UP TO THE PRESENT TIME,
|
|
and its still unexhausted possibilities: this is the preordained
|
|
hunting-domain for a born psychologist and lover of a "big hunt". But
|
|
how often must he say despairingly to himself: "A single individual!
|
|
alas, only a single individual! and this great forest, this virgin
|
|
forest!" So he would like to have some hundreds of hunting assistants,
|
|
and fine trained hounds, that he could send into the history of the
|
|
human soul, to drive HIS game together. In vain: again and again he
|
|
experiences, profoundly and bitterly, how difficult it is to find
|
|
assistants and dogs for all the things that directly excite his
|
|
curiosity. The evil of sending scholars into new and dangerous
|
|
hunting-domains, where courage, sagacity, and subtlety in every sense
|
|
are required, is that they are no longer serviceable just when the "BIG
|
|
hunt," and also the great danger commences,--it is precisely then that
|
|
they lose their keen eye and nose. In order, for instance, to divine and
|
|
determine what sort of history the problem of KNOWLEDGE AND CONSCIENCE
|
|
has hitherto had in the souls of homines religiosi, a person would
|
|
perhaps himself have to possess as profound, as bruised, as immense an
|
|
experience as the intellectual conscience of Pascal; and then he would
|
|
still require that wide-spread heaven of clear, wicked spirituality,
|
|
which, from above, would be able to oversee, arrange, and effectively
|
|
formulize this mass of dangerous and painful experiences.--But who
|
|
could do me this service! And who would have time to wait for such
|
|
servants!--they evidently appear too rarely, they are so improbable at
|
|
all times! Eventually one must do everything ONESELF in order to know
|
|
something; which means that one has MUCH to do!--But a curiosity like
|
|
mine is once for all the most agreeable of vices--pardon me! I mean to
|
|
say that the love of truth has its reward in heaven, and already upon
|
|
earth.
|
|
|
|
46. Faith, such as early Christianity desired, and not infrequently
|
|
achieved in the midst of a skeptical and southernly free-spirited world,
|
|
which had centuries of struggle between philosophical schools behind
|
|
it and in it, counting besides the education in tolerance which
|
|
the Imperium Romanum gave--this faith is NOT that sincere, austere
|
|
slave-faith by which perhaps a Luther or a Cromwell, or some other
|
|
northern barbarian of the spirit remained attached to his God and
|
|
Christianity, it is much rather the faith of Pascal, which resembles in
|
|
a terrible manner a continuous suicide of reason--a tough, long-lived,
|
|
worm-like reason, which is not to be slain at once and with a single
|
|
blow. The Christian faith from the beginning, is sacrifice the sacrifice
|
|
of all freedom, all pride, all self-confidence of spirit, it is at
|
|
the same time subjection, self-derision, and self-mutilation. There is
|
|
cruelty and religious Phoenicianism in this faith, which is adapted to a
|
|
tender, many-sided, and very fastidious conscience, it takes for granted
|
|
that the subjection of the spirit is indescribably PAINFUL, that all the
|
|
past and all the habits of such a spirit resist the absurdissimum, in
|
|
the form of which "faith" comes to it. Modern men, with their obtuseness
|
|
as regards all Christian nomenclature, have no longer the sense for the
|
|
terribly superlative conception which was implied to an antique taste by
|
|
the paradox of the formula, "God on the Cross". Hitherto there had never
|
|
and nowhere been such boldness in inversion, nor anything at once so
|
|
dreadful, questioning, and questionable as this formula: it promised a
|
|
transvaluation of all ancient values--It was the Orient, the PROFOUND
|
|
Orient, it was the Oriental slave who thus took revenge on Rome and its
|
|
noble, light-minded toleration, on the Roman "Catholicism" of non-faith,
|
|
and it was always not the faith, but the freedom from the faith, the
|
|
half-stoical and smiling indifference to the seriousness of the faith,
|
|
which made the slaves indignant at their masters and revolt against
|
|
them. "Enlightenment" causes revolt, for the slave desires the
|
|
unconditioned, he understands nothing but the tyrannous, even in morals,
|
|
he loves as he hates, without NUANCE, to the very depths, to the point
|
|
of pain, to the point of sickness--his many HIDDEN sufferings make
|
|
him revolt against the noble taste which seems to DENY suffering. The
|
|
skepticism with regard to suffering, fundamentally only an attitude of
|
|
aristocratic morality, was not the least of the causes, also, of the
|
|
last great slave-insurrection which began with the French Revolution.
|
|
|
|
47. Wherever the religious neurosis has appeared on the earth so far,
|
|
we find it connected with three dangerous prescriptions as to regimen:
|
|
solitude, fasting, and sexual abstinence--but without its being possible
|
|
to determine with certainty which is cause and which is effect, or IF
|
|
any relation at all of cause and effect exists there. This latter doubt
|
|
is justified by the fact that one of the most regular symptoms among
|
|
savage as well as among civilized peoples is the most sudden and
|
|
excessive sensuality, which then with equal suddenness transforms into
|
|
penitential paroxysms, world-renunciation, and will-renunciation, both
|
|
symptoms perhaps explainable as disguised epilepsy? But nowhere is it
|
|
MORE obligatory to put aside explanations around no other type has there
|
|
grown such a mass of absurdity and superstition, no other type seems to
|
|
have been more interesting to men and even to philosophers--perhaps it
|
|
is time to become just a little indifferent here, to learn caution, or,
|
|
better still, to look AWAY, TO GO AWAY--Yet in the background of the
|
|
most recent philosophy, that of Schopenhauer, we find almost as the
|
|
problem in itself, this terrible note of interrogation of the religious
|
|
crisis and awakening. How is the negation of will POSSIBLE? how is the
|
|
saint possible?--that seems to have been the very question with which
|
|
Schopenhauer made a start and became a philosopher. And thus it was a
|
|
genuine Schopenhauerian consequence, that his most convinced adherent
|
|
(perhaps also his last, as far as Germany is concerned), namely, Richard
|
|
Wagner, should bring his own life-work to an end just here, and should
|
|
finally put that terrible and eternal type upon the stage as Kundry,
|
|
type vecu, and as it loved and lived, at the very time that the
|
|
mad-doctors in almost all European countries had an opportunity to study
|
|
the type close at hand, wherever the religious neurosis--or as I call
|
|
it, "the religious mood"--made its latest epidemical outbreak and
|
|
display as the "Salvation Army"--If it be a question, however, as to
|
|
what has been so extremely interesting to men of all sorts in all ages,
|
|
and even to philosophers, in the whole phenomenon of the saint, it
|
|
is undoubtedly the appearance of the miraculous therein--namely, the
|
|
immediate SUCCESSION OF OPPOSITES, of states of the soul regarded as
|
|
morally antithetical: it was believed here to be self-evident that
|
|
a "bad man" was all at once turned into a "saint," a good man. The
|
|
hitherto existing psychology was wrecked at this point, is it not
|
|
possible it may have happened principally because psychology had placed
|
|
itself under the dominion of morals, because it BELIEVED in oppositions
|
|
of moral values, and saw, read, and INTERPRETED these oppositions
|
|
into the text and facts of the case? What? "Miracle" only an error of
|
|
interpretation? A lack of philology?
|
|
|
|
48. It seems that the Latin races are far more deeply attached to their
|
|
Catholicism than we Northerners are to Christianity generally, and
|
|
that consequently unbelief in Catholic countries means something quite
|
|
different from what it does among Protestants--namely, a sort of revolt
|
|
against the spirit of the race, while with us it is rather a return to
|
|
the spirit (or non-spirit) of the race.
|
|
|
|
We Northerners undoubtedly derive our origin from barbarous races, even
|
|
as regards our talents for religion--we have POOR talents for it. One
|
|
may make an exception in the case of the Celts, who have theretofore
|
|
furnished also the best soil for Christian infection in the North: the
|
|
Christian ideal blossomed forth in France as much as ever the pale sun
|
|
of the north would allow it. How strangely pious for our taste are still
|
|
these later French skeptics, whenever there is any Celtic blood in their
|
|
origin! How Catholic, how un-German does Auguste Comte's Sociology
|
|
seem to us, with the Roman logic of its instincts! How Jesuitical, that
|
|
amiable and shrewd cicerone of Port Royal, Sainte-Beuve, in spite of all
|
|
his hostility to Jesuits! And even Ernest Renan: how inaccessible to
|
|
us Northerners does the language of such a Renan appear, in whom
|
|
every instant the merest touch of religious thrill throws his refined
|
|
voluptuous and comfortably couching soul off its balance! Let us repeat
|
|
after him these fine sentences--and what wickedness and haughtiness is
|
|
immediately aroused by way of answer in our probably less beautiful but
|
|
harder souls, that is to say, in our more German souls!--"DISONS DONC
|
|
HARDIMENT QUE LA RELIGION EST UN PRODUIT DE L'HOMME NORMAL, QUE L'HOMME
|
|
EST LE PLUS DANS LE VRAI QUANT IL EST LE PLUS RELIGIEUX ET LE PLUS
|
|
ASSURE D'UNE DESTINEE INFINIE.... C'EST QUAND IL EST BON QU'IL VEUT QUE
|
|
LA VIRTU CORRESPONDE A UN ORDER ETERNAL, C'EST QUAND IL CONTEMPLE LES
|
|
CHOSES D'UNE MANIERE DESINTERESSEE QU'IL TROUVE LA MORT REVOLTANTE ET
|
|
ABSURDE. COMMENT NE PAS SUPPOSER QUE C'EST DANS CES MOMENTS-LA, QUE
|
|
L'HOMME VOIT LE MIEUX?"... These sentences are so extremely ANTIPODAL
|
|
to my ears and habits of thought, that in my first impulse of rage
|
|
on finding them, I wrote on the margin, "LA NIAISERIE RELIGIEUSE PAR
|
|
EXCELLENCE!"--until in my later rage I even took a fancy to them, these
|
|
sentences with their truth absolutely inverted! It is so nice and such a
|
|
distinction to have one's own antipodes!
|
|
|
|
49. That which is so astonishing in the religious life of the ancient
|
|
Greeks is the irrestrainable stream of GRATITUDE which it pours
|
|
forth--it is a very superior kind of man who takes SUCH an attitude
|
|
towards nature and life.--Later on, when the populace got the upper hand
|
|
in Greece, FEAR became rampant also in religion; and Christianity was
|
|
preparing itself.
|
|
|
|
50. The passion for God: there are churlish, honest-hearted, and
|
|
importunate kinds of it, like that of Luther--the whole of Protestantism
|
|
lacks the southern DELICATEZZA. There is an Oriental exaltation of the
|
|
mind in it, like that of an undeservedly favoured or elevated slave, as
|
|
in the case of St. Augustine, for instance, who lacks in an offensive
|
|
manner, all nobility in bearing and desires. There is a feminine
|
|
tenderness and sensuality in it, which modestly and unconsciously longs
|
|
for a UNIO MYSTICA ET PHYSICA, as in the case of Madame de Guyon. In
|
|
many cases it appears, curiously enough, as the disguise of a girl's
|
|
or youth's puberty; here and there even as the hysteria of an old maid,
|
|
also as her last ambition. The Church has frequently canonized the woman
|
|
in such a case.
|
|
|
|
51. The mightiest men have hitherto always bowed reverently before
|
|
the saint, as the enigma of self-subjugation and utter voluntary
|
|
privation--why did they thus bow? They divined in him--and as it were
|
|
behind the questionableness of his frail and wretched appearance--the
|
|
superior force which wished to test itself by such a subjugation; the
|
|
strength of will, in which they recognized their own strength and
|
|
love of power, and knew how to honour it: they honoured something
|
|
in themselves when they honoured the saint. In addition to this, the
|
|
contemplation of the saint suggested to them a suspicion: such an
|
|
enormity of self-negation and anti-naturalness will not have been
|
|
coveted for nothing--they have said, inquiringly. There is perhaps a
|
|
reason for it, some very great danger, about which the ascetic might
|
|
wish to be more accurately informed through his secret interlocutors and
|
|
visitors? In a word, the mighty ones of the world learned to have a new
|
|
fear before him, they divined a new power, a strange, still unconquered
|
|
enemy:--it was the "Will to Power" which obliged them to halt before the
|
|
saint. They had to question him.
|
|
|
|
52. In the Jewish "Old Testament," the book of divine justice, there are
|
|
men, things, and sayings on such an immense scale, that Greek and Indian
|
|
literature has nothing to compare with it. One stands with fear and
|
|
reverence before those stupendous remains of what man was formerly, and
|
|
one has sad thoughts about old Asia and its little out-pushed peninsula
|
|
Europe, which would like, by all means, to figure before Asia as the
|
|
"Progress of Mankind." To be sure, he who is himself only a slender,
|
|
tame house-animal, and knows only the wants of a house-animal (like
|
|
our cultured people of today, including the Christians of "cultured"
|
|
Christianity), need neither be amazed nor even sad amid those ruins--the
|
|
taste for the Old Testament is a touchstone with respect to "great" and
|
|
"small": perhaps he will find that the New Testament, the book of grace,
|
|
still appeals more to his heart (there is much of the odour of the
|
|
genuine, tender, stupid beadsman and petty soul in it). To have bound
|
|
up this New Testament (a kind of ROCOCO of taste in every respect) along
|
|
with the Old Testament into one book, as the "Bible," as "The Book in
|
|
Itself," is perhaps the greatest audacity and "sin against the Spirit"
|
|
which literary Europe has upon its conscience.
|
|
|
|
53. Why Atheism nowadays? "The father" in God is thoroughly refuted;
|
|
equally so "the judge," "the rewarder." Also his "free will": he does
|
|
not hear--and even if he did, he would not know how to help. The worst
|
|
is that he seems incapable of communicating himself clearly; is he
|
|
uncertain?--This is what I have made out (by questioning and listening
|
|
at a variety of conversations) to be the cause of the decline of
|
|
European theism; it appears to me that though the religious instinct is
|
|
in vigorous growth,--it rejects the theistic satisfaction with profound
|
|
distrust.
|
|
|
|
54. What does all modern philosophy mainly do? Since Descartes--and
|
|
indeed more in defiance of him than on the basis of his procedure--an
|
|
ATTENTAT has been made on the part of all philosophers on the old
|
|
conception of the soul, under the guise of a criticism of the subject
|
|
and predicate conception--that is to say, an ATTENTAT on the
|
|
fundamental presupposition of Christian doctrine. Modern philosophy,
|
|
as epistemological skepticism, is secretly or openly ANTI-CHRISTIAN,
|
|
although (for keener ears, be it said) by no means anti-religious.
|
|
Formerly, in effect, one believed in "the soul" as one believed in
|
|
grammar and the grammatical subject: one said, "I" is the condition,
|
|
"think" is the predicate and is conditioned--to think is an activity for
|
|
which one MUST suppose a subject as cause. The attempt was then made,
|
|
with marvelous tenacity and subtlety, to see if one could not get out
|
|
of this net,--to see if the opposite was not perhaps true: "think" the
|
|
condition, and "I" the conditioned; "I," therefore, only a synthesis
|
|
which has been MADE by thinking itself. KANT really wished to prove
|
|
that, starting from the subject, the subject could not be proved--nor
|
|
the object either: the possibility of an APPARENT EXISTENCE of the
|
|
subject, and therefore of "the soul," may not always have been strange
|
|
to him,--the thought which once had an immense power on earth as the
|
|
Vedanta philosophy.
|
|
|
|
55. There is a great ladder of religious cruelty, with many rounds; but
|
|
three of these are the most important. Once on a time men sacrificed
|
|
human beings to their God, and perhaps just those they loved the
|
|
best--to this category belong the firstling sacrifices of all primitive
|
|
religions, and also the sacrifice of the Emperor Tiberius in the
|
|
Mithra-Grotto on the Island of Capri, that most terrible of all Roman
|
|
anachronisms. Then, during the moral epoch of mankind, they sacrificed
|
|
to their God the strongest instincts they possessed, their "nature";
|
|
THIS festal joy shines in the cruel glances of ascetics and
|
|
"anti-natural" fanatics. Finally, what still remained to be sacrificed?
|
|
Was it not necessary in the end for men to sacrifice everything
|
|
comforting, holy, healing, all hope, all faith in hidden harmonies, in
|
|
future blessedness and justice? Was it not necessary to sacrifice God
|
|
himself, and out of cruelty to themselves to worship stone, stupidity,
|
|
gravity, fate, nothingness? To sacrifice God for nothingness--this
|
|
paradoxical mystery of the ultimate cruelty has been reserved for the
|
|
rising generation; we all know something thereof already.
|
|
|
|
56. Whoever, like myself, prompted by some enigmatical desire, has long
|
|
endeavoured to go to the bottom of the question of pessimism and free it
|
|
from the half-Christian, half-German narrowness and stupidity in which
|
|
it has finally presented itself to this century, namely, in the form of
|
|
Schopenhauer's philosophy; whoever, with an Asiatic and super-Asiatic
|
|
eye, has actually looked inside, and into the most world-renouncing of
|
|
all possible modes of thought--beyond good and evil, and no longer
|
|
like Buddha and Schopenhauer, under the dominion and delusion of
|
|
morality,--whoever has done this, has perhaps just thereby, without
|
|
really desiring it, opened his eyes to behold the opposite ideal: the
|
|
ideal of the most world-approving, exuberant, and vivacious man, who has
|
|
not only learnt to compromise and arrange with that which was and
|
|
is, but wishes to have it again AS IT WAS AND IS, for all eternity,
|
|
insatiably calling out da capo, not only to himself, but to the whole
|
|
piece and play; and not only the play, but actually to him who requires
|
|
the play--and makes it necessary; because he always requires
|
|
himself anew--and makes himself necessary.--What? And this would not
|
|
be--circulus vitiosus deus?
|
|
|
|
57. The distance, and as it were the space around man, grows with the
|
|
strength of his intellectual vision and insight: his world becomes
|
|
profounder; new stars, new enigmas, and notions are ever coming into
|
|
view. Perhaps everything on which the intellectual eye has exercised
|
|
its acuteness and profundity has just been an occasion for its exercise,
|
|
something of a game, something for children and childish minds. Perhaps
|
|
the most solemn conceptions that have caused the most fighting and
|
|
suffering, the conceptions "God" and "sin," will one day seem to us of
|
|
no more importance than a child's plaything or a child's pain seems to
|
|
an old man;--and perhaps another plaything and another pain will then
|
|
be necessary once more for "the old man"--always childish enough, an
|
|
eternal child!
|
|
|
|
58. Has it been observed to what extent outward idleness, or
|
|
semi-idleness, is necessary to a real religious life (alike for its
|
|
favourite microscopic labour of self-examination, and for its soft
|
|
placidity called "prayer," the state of perpetual readiness for the
|
|
"coming of God"), I mean the idleness with a good conscience, the
|
|
idleness of olden times and of blood, to which the aristocratic
|
|
sentiment that work is DISHONOURING--that it vulgarizes body and
|
|
soul--is not quite unfamiliar? And that consequently the modern, noisy,
|
|
time-engrossing, conceited, foolishly proud laboriousness educates
|
|
and prepares for "unbelief" more than anything else? Among these, for
|
|
instance, who are at present living apart from religion in Germany, I
|
|
find "free-thinkers" of diversified species and origin, but above all
|
|
a majority of those in whom laboriousness from generation to generation
|
|
has dissolved the religious instincts; so that they no longer know what
|
|
purpose religions serve, and only note their existence in the world
|
|
with a kind of dull astonishment. They feel themselves already fully
|
|
occupied, these good people, be it by their business or by their
|
|
pleasures, not to mention the "Fatherland," and the newspapers, and
|
|
their "family duties"; it seems that they have no time whatever left
|
|
for religion; and above all, it is not obvious to them whether it is a
|
|
question of a new business or a new pleasure--for it is impossible, they
|
|
say to themselves, that people should go to church merely to spoil
|
|
their tempers. They are by no means enemies of religious customs;
|
|
should certain circumstances, State affairs perhaps, require their
|
|
participation in such customs, they do what is required, as so many
|
|
things are done--with a patient and unassuming seriousness, and without
|
|
much curiosity or discomfort;--they live too much apart and outside
|
|
to feel even the necessity for a FOR or AGAINST in such matters. Among
|
|
those indifferent persons may be reckoned nowadays the majority of
|
|
German Protestants of the middle classes, especially in the great
|
|
laborious centres of trade and commerce; also the majority of laborious
|
|
scholars, and the entire University personnel (with the exception of
|
|
the theologians, whose existence and possibility there always gives
|
|
psychologists new and more subtle puzzles to solve). On the part of
|
|
pious, or merely church-going people, there is seldom any idea of HOW
|
|
MUCH good-will, one might say arbitrary will, is now necessary for a
|
|
German scholar to take the problem of religion seriously; his whole
|
|
profession (and as I have said, his whole workmanlike laboriousness, to
|
|
which he is compelled by his modern conscience) inclines him to a
|
|
lofty and almost charitable serenity as regards religion, with which is
|
|
occasionally mingled a slight disdain for the "uncleanliness" of spirit
|
|
which he takes for granted wherever any one still professes to belong
|
|
to the Church. It is only with the help of history (NOT through his own
|
|
personal experience, therefore) that the scholar succeeds in bringing
|
|
himself to a respectful seriousness, and to a certain timid deference
|
|
in presence of religions; but even when his sentiments have reached the
|
|
stage of gratitude towards them, he has not personally advanced one
|
|
step nearer to that which still maintains itself as Church or as piety;
|
|
perhaps even the contrary. The practical indifference to religious
|
|
matters in the midst of which he has been born and brought up, usually
|
|
sublimates itself in his case into circumspection and cleanliness, which
|
|
shuns contact with religious men and things; and it may be just the
|
|
depth of his tolerance and humanity which prompts him to avoid the
|
|
delicate trouble which tolerance itself brings with it.--Every age has
|
|
its own divine type of naivete, for the discovery of which other ages
|
|
may envy it: and how much naivete--adorable, childlike, and boundlessly
|
|
foolish naivete is involved in this belief of the scholar in
|
|
his superiority, in the good conscience of his tolerance, in the
|
|
unsuspecting, simple certainty with which his instinct treats the
|
|
religious man as a lower and less valuable type, beyond, before, and
|
|
ABOVE which he himself has developed--he, the little arrogant dwarf
|
|
and mob-man, the sedulously alert, head-and-hand drudge of "ideas," of
|
|
"modern ideas"!
|
|
|
|
59. Whoever has seen deeply into the world has doubtless divined what
|
|
wisdom there is in the fact that men are superficial. It is their
|
|
preservative instinct which teaches them to be flighty, lightsome, and
|
|
false. Here and there one finds a passionate and exaggerated adoration
|
|
of "pure forms" in philosophers as well as in artists: it is not to be
|
|
doubted that whoever has NEED of the cult of the superficial to that
|
|
extent, has at one time or another made an unlucky dive BENEATH it.
|
|
Perhaps there is even an order of rank with respect to those burnt
|
|
children, the born artists who find the enjoyment of life only in trying
|
|
to FALSIFY its image (as if taking wearisome revenge on it), one might
|
|
guess to what degree life has disgusted them, by the extent to which
|
|
they wish to see its image falsified, attenuated, ultrified, and
|
|
deified,--one might reckon the homines religiosi among the artists, as
|
|
their HIGHEST rank. It is the profound, suspicious fear of an incurable
|
|
pessimism which compels whole centuries to fasten their teeth into a
|
|
religious interpretation of existence: the fear of the instinct which
|
|
divines that truth might be attained TOO soon, before man has become
|
|
strong enough, hard enough, artist enough.... Piety, the "Life in God,"
|
|
regarded in this light, would appear as the most elaborate and
|
|
ultimate product of the FEAR of truth, as artist-adoration
|
|
and artist-intoxication in presence of the most logical of all
|
|
falsifications, as the will to the inversion of truth, to untruth at
|
|
any price. Perhaps there has hitherto been no more effective means of
|
|
beautifying man than piety, by means of it man can become so artful, so
|
|
superficial, so iridescent, and so good, that his appearance no longer
|
|
offends.
|
|
|
|
60. To love mankind FOR GOD'S SAKE--this has so far been the noblest and
|
|
remotest sentiment to which mankind has attained. That love to mankind,
|
|
without any redeeming intention in the background, is only an ADDITIONAL
|
|
folly and brutishness, that the inclination to this love has first to
|
|
get its proportion, its delicacy, its gram of salt and sprinkling
|
|
of ambergris from a higher inclination--whoever first perceived
|
|
and "experienced" this, however his tongue may have stammered as it
|
|
attempted to express such a delicate matter, let him for all time be
|
|
holy and respected, as the man who has so far flown highest and gone
|
|
astray in the finest fashion!
|
|
|
|
61. The philosopher, as WE free spirits understand him--as the man of
|
|
the greatest responsibility, who has the conscience for the general
|
|
development of mankind,--will use religion for his disciplining and
|
|
educating work, just as he will use the contemporary political
|
|
and economic conditions. The selecting and disciplining
|
|
influence--destructive, as well as creative and fashioning--which can be
|
|
exercised by means of religion is manifold and varied, according to the
|
|
sort of people placed under its spell and protection. For those who are
|
|
strong and independent, destined and trained to command, in whom the
|
|
judgment and skill of a ruling race is incorporated, religion is
|
|
an additional means for overcoming resistance in the exercise of
|
|
authority--as a bond which binds rulers and subjects in common,
|
|
betraying and surrendering to the former the conscience of the latter,
|
|
their inmost heart, which would fain escape obedience. And in the
|
|
case of the unique natures of noble origin, if by virtue of superior
|
|
spirituality they should incline to a more retired and contemplative
|
|
life, reserving to themselves only the more refined forms of government
|
|
(over chosen disciples or members of an order), religion itself may
|
|
be used as a means for obtaining peace from the noise and trouble of
|
|
managing GROSSER affairs, and for securing immunity from the UNAVOIDABLE
|
|
filth of all political agitation. The Brahmins, for instance, understood
|
|
this fact. With the help of a religious organization, they secured to
|
|
themselves the power of nominating kings for the people, while their
|
|
sentiments prompted them to keep apart and outside, as men with a higher
|
|
and super-regal mission. At the same time religion gives inducement and
|
|
opportunity to some of the subjects to qualify themselves for future
|
|
ruling and commanding the slowly ascending ranks and classes, in which,
|
|
through fortunate marriage customs, volitional power and delight in
|
|
self-control are on the increase. To them religion offers sufficient
|
|
incentives and temptations to aspire to higher intellectuality, and to
|
|
experience the sentiments of authoritative self-control, of silence, and
|
|
of solitude. Asceticism and Puritanism are almost indispensable means of
|
|
educating and ennobling a race which seeks to rise above its hereditary
|
|
baseness and work itself upwards to future supremacy. And finally, to
|
|
ordinary men, to the majority of the people, who exist for service and
|
|
general utility, and are only so far entitled to exist, religion gives
|
|
invaluable contentedness with their lot and condition, peace of heart,
|
|
ennoblement of obedience, additional social happiness and sympathy,
|
|
with something of transfiguration and embellishment, something of
|
|
justification of all the commonplaceness, all the meanness, all
|
|
the semi-animal poverty of their souls. Religion, together with the
|
|
religious significance of life, sheds sunshine over such perpetually
|
|
harassed men, and makes even their own aspect endurable to them, it
|
|
operates upon them as the Epicurean philosophy usually operates upon
|
|
sufferers of a higher order, in a refreshing and refining manner,
|
|
almost TURNING suffering TO ACCOUNT, and in the end even hallowing and
|
|
vindicating it. There is perhaps nothing so admirable in Christianity
|
|
and Buddhism as their art of teaching even the lowest to elevate
|
|
themselves by piety to a seemingly higher order of things, and thereby
|
|
to retain their satisfaction with the actual world in which they find it
|
|
difficult enough to live--this very difficulty being necessary.
|
|
|
|
62. To be sure--to make also the bad counter-reckoning against such
|
|
religions, and to bring to light their secret dangers--the cost is
|
|
always excessive and terrible when religions do NOT operate as an
|
|
educational and disciplinary medium in the hands of the philosopher, but
|
|
rule voluntarily and PARAMOUNTLY, when they wish to be the final end,
|
|
and not a means along with other means. Among men, as among all other
|
|
animals, there is a surplus of defective, diseased, degenerating,
|
|
infirm, and necessarily suffering individuals; the successful cases,
|
|
among men also, are always the exception; and in view of the fact that
|
|
man is THE ANIMAL NOT YET PROPERLY ADAPTED TO HIS ENVIRONMENT, the rare
|
|
exception. But worse still. The higher the type a man represents, the
|
|
greater is the improbability that he will SUCCEED; the accidental, the
|
|
law of irrationality in the general constitution of mankind, manifests
|
|
itself most terribly in its destructive effect on the higher orders of
|
|
men, the conditions of whose lives are delicate, diverse, and difficult
|
|
to determine. What, then, is the attitude of the two greatest religions
|
|
above-mentioned to the SURPLUS of failures in life? They endeavour
|
|
to preserve and keep alive whatever can be preserved; in fact, as the
|
|
religions FOR SUFFERERS, they take the part of these upon principle;
|
|
they are always in favour of those who suffer from life as from a
|
|
disease, and they would fain treat every other experience of life as
|
|
false and impossible. However highly we may esteem this indulgent and
|
|
preservative care (inasmuch as in applying to others, it has applied,
|
|
and applies also to the highest and usually the most suffering type of
|
|
man), the hitherto PARAMOUNT religions--to give a general appreciation
|
|
of them--are among the principal causes which have kept the type of
|
|
"man" upon a lower level--they have preserved too much THAT WHICH SHOULD
|
|
HAVE PERISHED. One has to thank them for invaluable services; and who is
|
|
sufficiently rich in gratitude not to feel poor at the contemplation
|
|
of all that the "spiritual men" of Christianity have done for Europe
|
|
hitherto! But when they had given comfort to the sufferers, courage to
|
|
the oppressed and despairing, a staff and support to the helpless,
|
|
and when they had allured from society into convents and spiritual
|
|
penitentiaries the broken-hearted and distracted: what else had they
|
|
to do in order to work systematically in that fashion, and with a good
|
|
conscience, for the preservation of all the sick and suffering, which
|
|
means, in deed and in truth, to work for the DETERIORATION OF THE
|
|
EUROPEAN RACE? To REVERSE all estimates of value--THAT is what they
|
|
had to do! And to shatter the strong, to spoil great hopes, to cast
|
|
suspicion on the delight in beauty, to break down everything autonomous,
|
|
manly, conquering, and imperious--all instincts which are natural to the
|
|
highest and most successful type of "man"--into uncertainty, distress
|
|
of conscience, and self-destruction; forsooth, to invert all love of the
|
|
earthly and of supremacy over the earth, into hatred of the earth and
|
|
earthly things--THAT is the task the Church imposed on itself, and
|
|
was obliged to impose, until, according to its standard of value,
|
|
"unworldliness," "unsensuousness," and "higher man" fused into one
|
|
sentiment. If one could observe the strangely painful, equally coarse
|
|
and refined comedy of European Christianity with the derisive and
|
|
impartial eye of an Epicurean god, I should think one would never cease
|
|
marvelling and laughing; does it not actually seem that some single will
|
|
has ruled over Europe for eighteen centuries in order to make a SUBLIME
|
|
ABORTION of man? He, however, who, with opposite requirements (no longer
|
|
Epicurean) and with some divine hammer in his hand, could approach this
|
|
almost voluntary degeneration and stunting of mankind, as exemplified in
|
|
the European Christian (Pascal, for instance), would he not have to
|
|
cry aloud with rage, pity, and horror: "Oh, you bunglers, presumptuous
|
|
pitiful bunglers, what have you done! Was that a work for your hands?
|
|
How you have hacked and botched my finest stone! What have you presumed
|
|
to do!"--I should say that Christianity has hitherto been the most
|
|
portentous of presumptions. Men, not great enough, nor hard enough,
|
|
to be entitled as artists to take part in fashioning MAN; men,
|
|
not sufficiently strong and far-sighted to ALLOW, with sublime
|
|
self-constraint, the obvious law of the thousandfold failures and
|
|
perishings to prevail; men, not sufficiently noble to see the radically
|
|
different grades of rank and intervals of rank that separate man from
|
|
man:--SUCH men, with their "equality before God," have hitherto swayed
|
|
the destiny of Europe; until at last a dwarfed, almost ludicrous species
|
|
has been produced, a gregarious animal, something obliging, sickly,
|
|
mediocre, the European of the present day.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV. APOPHTHEGMS AND INTERLUDES
|
|
|
|
|
|
63. He who is a thorough teacher takes things seriously--and even
|
|
himself--only in relation to his pupils.
|
|
|
|
64. "Knowledge for its own sake"--that is the last snare laid by
|
|
morality: we are thereby completely entangled in morals once more.
|
|
|
|
65. The charm of knowledge would be small, were it not so much shame has
|
|
to be overcome on the way to it.
|
|
|
|
65A. We are most dishonourable towards our God: he is not PERMITTED to
|
|
sin.
|
|
|
|
66. The tendency of a person to allow himself to be degraded, robbed,
|
|
deceived, and exploited might be the diffidence of a God among men.
|
|
|
|
67. Love to one only is a barbarity, for it is exercised at the expense
|
|
of all others. Love to God also!
|
|
|
|
68. "I did that," says my memory. "I could not have done that," says my
|
|
pride, and remains inexorable. Eventually--the memory yields.
|
|
|
|
69. One has regarded life carelessly, if one has failed to see the hand
|
|
that--kills with leniency.
|
|
|
|
70. If a man has character, he has also his typical experience, which
|
|
always recurs.
|
|
|
|
71. THE SAGE AS ASTRONOMER.--So long as thou feelest the stars as an
|
|
"above thee," thou lackest the eye of the discerning one.
|
|
|
|
72. It is not the strength, but the duration of great sentiments that
|
|
makes great men.
|
|
|
|
73. He who attains his ideal, precisely thereby surpasses it.
|
|
|
|
73A. Many a peacock hides his tail from every eye--and calls it his
|
|
pride.
|
|
|
|
74. A man of genius is unbearable, unless he possess at least two things
|
|
besides: gratitude and purity.
|
|
|
|
75. The degree and nature of a man's sensuality extends to the highest
|
|
altitudes of his spirit.
|
|
|
|
76. Under peaceful conditions the militant man attacks himself.
|
|
|
|
77. With his principles a man seeks either to dominate, or justify,
|
|
or honour, or reproach, or conceal his habits: two men with the same
|
|
principles probably seek fundamentally different ends therewith.
|
|
|
|
78. He who despises himself, nevertheless esteems himself thereby, as a
|
|
despiser.
|
|
|
|
79. A soul which knows that it is loved, but does not itself love,
|
|
betrays its sediment: its dregs come up.
|
|
|
|
80. A thing that is explained ceases to concern us--What did the God
|
|
mean who gave the advice, "Know thyself!" Did it perhaps imply "Cease to
|
|
be concerned about thyself! become objective!"--And Socrates?--And the
|
|
"scientific man"?
|
|
|
|
81. It is terrible to die of thirst at sea. Is it necessary that you
|
|
should so salt your truth that it will no longer--quench thirst?
|
|
|
|
82. "Sympathy for all"--would be harshness and tyranny for THEE, my good
|
|
neighbour.
|
|
|
|
83. INSTINCT--When the house is on fire one forgets even the
|
|
dinner--Yes, but one recovers it from among the ashes.
|
|
|
|
84. Woman learns how to hate in proportion as she--forgets how to charm.
|
|
|
|
85. The same emotions are in man and woman, but in different TEMPO, on
|
|
that account man and woman never cease to misunderstand each other.
|
|
|
|
86. In the background of all their personal vanity, women themselves
|
|
have still their impersonal scorn--for "woman".
|
|
|
|
87. FETTERED HEART, FREE SPIRIT--When one firmly fetters one's heart
|
|
and keeps it prisoner, one can allow one's spirit many liberties: I said
|
|
this once before But people do not believe it when I say so, unless they
|
|
know it already.
|
|
|
|
88. One begins to distrust very clever persons when they become
|
|
embarrassed.
|
|
|
|
89. Dreadful experiences raise the question whether he who experiences
|
|
them is not something dreadful also.
|
|
|
|
90. Heavy, melancholy men turn lighter, and come temporarily to their
|
|
surface, precisely by that which makes others heavy--by hatred and love.
|
|
|
|
91. So cold, so icy, that one burns one's finger at the touch of him!
|
|
Every hand that lays hold of him shrinks back!--And for that very reason
|
|
many think him red-hot.
|
|
|
|
92. Who has not, at one time or another--sacrificed himself for the sake
|
|
of his good name?
|
|
|
|
93. In affability there is no hatred of men, but precisely on that
|
|
account a great deal too much contempt of men.
|
|
|
|
94. The maturity of man--that means, to have reacquired the seriousness
|
|
that one had as a child at play.
|
|
|
|
95. To be ashamed of one's immorality is a step on the ladder at the end
|
|
of which one is ashamed also of one's morality.
|
|
|
|
96. One should part from life as Ulysses parted from Nausicaa--blessing
|
|
it rather than in love with it.
|
|
|
|
97. What? A great man? I always see merely the play-actor of his own
|
|
ideal.
|
|
|
|
98. When one trains one's conscience, it kisses one while it bites.
|
|
|
|
99. THE DISAPPOINTED ONE SPEAKS--"I listened for the echo and I heard
|
|
only praise."
|
|
|
|
100. We all feign to ourselves that we are simpler than we are, we thus
|
|
relax ourselves away from our fellows.
|
|
|
|
101. A discerning one might easily regard himself at present as the
|
|
animalization of God.
|
|
|
|
102. Discovering reciprocal love should really disenchant the lover with
|
|
regard to the beloved. "What! She is modest enough to love even you? Or
|
|
stupid enough? Or--or---"
|
|
|
|
103. THE DANGER IN HAPPINESS.--"Everything now turns out best for me, I
|
|
now love every fate:--who would like to be my fate?"
|
|
|
|
104. Not their love of humanity, but the impotence of their love,
|
|
prevents the Christians of today--burning us.
|
|
|
|
105. The pia fraus is still more repugnant to the taste (the "piety")
|
|
of the free spirit (the "pious man of knowledge") than the impia fraus.
|
|
Hence the profound lack of judgment, in comparison with the Church,
|
|
characteristic of the type "free spirit"--as ITS non-freedom.
|
|
|
|
106. By means of music the very passions enjoy themselves.
|
|
|
|
107. A sign of strong character, when once the resolution has been
|
|
taken, to shut the ear even to the best counter-arguments. Occasionally,
|
|
therefore, a will to stupidity.
|
|
|
|
108. There is no such thing as moral phenomena, but only a moral
|
|
interpretation of phenomena.
|
|
|
|
109. The criminal is often enough not equal to his deed: he extenuates
|
|
and maligns it.
|
|
|
|
110. The advocates of a criminal are seldom artists enough to turn the
|
|
beautiful terribleness of the deed to the advantage of the doer.
|
|
|
|
111. Our vanity is most difficult to wound just when our pride has been
|
|
wounded.
|
|
|
|
112. To him who feels himself preordained to contemplation and not to
|
|
belief, all believers are too noisy and obtrusive; he guards against
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
113. "You want to prepossess him in your favour? Then you must be
|
|
embarrassed before him."
|
|
|
|
114. The immense expectation with regard to sexual love, and the coyness
|
|
in this expectation, spoils all the perspectives of women at the outset.
|
|
|
|
115. Where there is neither love nor hatred in the game, woman's play is
|
|
mediocre.
|
|
|
|
116. The great epochs of our life are at the points when we gain courage
|
|
to rebaptize our badness as the best in us.
|
|
|
|
117. The will to overcome an emotion, is ultimately only the will of
|
|
another, or of several other, emotions.
|
|
|
|
118. There is an innocence of admiration: it is possessed by him to whom
|
|
it has not yet occurred that he himself may be admired some day.
|
|
|
|
119. Our loathing of dirt may be so great as to prevent our cleaning
|
|
ourselves--"justifying" ourselves.
|
|
|
|
120. Sensuality often forces the growth of love too much, so that its
|
|
root remains weak, and is easily torn up.
|
|
|
|
121. It is a curious thing that God learned Greek when he wished to turn
|
|
author--and that he did not learn it better.
|
|
|
|
122. To rejoice on account of praise is in many cases merely politeness
|
|
of heart--and the very opposite of vanity of spirit.
|
|
|
|
123. Even concubinage has been corrupted--by marriage.
|
|
|
|
124. He who exults at the stake, does not triumph over pain, but because
|
|
of the fact that he does not feel pain where he expected it. A parable.
|
|
|
|
125. When we have to change an opinion about any one, we charge heavily
|
|
to his account the inconvenience he thereby causes us.
|
|
|
|
126. A nation is a detour of nature to arrive at six or seven great
|
|
men.--Yes, and then to get round them.
|
|
|
|
127. In the eyes of all true women science is hostile to the sense of
|
|
shame. They feel as if one wished to peep under their skin with it--or
|
|
worse still! under their dress and finery.
|
|
|
|
128. The more abstract the truth you wish to teach, the more must you
|
|
allure the senses to it.
|
|
|
|
129. The devil has the most extensive perspectives for God; on that
|
|
account he keeps so far away from him:--the devil, in effect, as the
|
|
oldest friend of knowledge.
|
|
|
|
130. What a person IS begins to betray itself when his talent
|
|
decreases,--when he ceases to show what he CAN do. Talent is also an
|
|
adornment; an adornment is also a concealment.
|
|
|
|
131. The sexes deceive themselves about each other: the reason is that
|
|
in reality they honour and love only themselves (or their own ideal, to
|
|
express it more agreeably). Thus man wishes woman to be peaceable: but
|
|
in fact woman is ESSENTIALLY unpeaceable, like the cat, however well she
|
|
may have assumed the peaceable demeanour.
|
|
|
|
132. One is punished best for one's virtues.
|
|
|
|
133. He who cannot find the way to HIS ideal, lives more frivolously and
|
|
shamelessly than the man without an ideal.
|
|
|
|
134. From the senses originate all trustworthiness, all good conscience,
|
|
all evidence of truth.
|
|
|
|
135. Pharisaism is not a deterioration of the good man; a considerable
|
|
part of it is rather an essential condition of being good.
|
|
|
|
136. The one seeks an accoucheur for his thoughts, the other seeks some
|
|
one whom he can assist: a good conversation thus originates.
|
|
|
|
137. In intercourse with scholars and artists one readily makes mistakes
|
|
of opposite kinds: in a remarkable scholar one not infrequently finds
|
|
a mediocre man; and often, even in a mediocre artist, one finds a very
|
|
remarkable man.
|
|
|
|
138. We do the same when awake as when dreaming: we only invent and
|
|
imagine him with whom we have intercourse--and forget it immediately.
|
|
|
|
139. In revenge and in love woman is more barbarous than man.
|
|
|
|
140. ADVICE AS A RIDDLE.--"If the band is not to break, bite it
|
|
first--secure to make!"
|
|
|
|
141. The belly is the reason why man does not so readily take himself
|
|
for a God.
|
|
|
|
142. The chastest utterance I ever heard: "Dans le veritable amour c'est
|
|
l'ame qui enveloppe le corps."
|
|
|
|
143. Our vanity would like what we do best to pass precisely for what is
|
|
most difficult to us.--Concerning the origin of many systems of morals.
|
|
|
|
144. When a woman has scholarly inclinations there is generally
|
|
something wrong with her sexual nature. Barrenness itself conduces to a
|
|
certain virility of taste; man, indeed, if I may say so, is "the barren
|
|
animal."
|
|
|
|
145. Comparing man and woman generally, one may say that woman would
|
|
not have the genius for adornment, if she had not the instinct for the
|
|
SECONDARY role.
|
|
|
|
146. He who fights with monsters should be careful lest he thereby
|
|
become a monster. And if thou gaze long into an abyss, the abyss will
|
|
also gaze into thee.
|
|
|
|
147. From old Florentine novels--moreover, from life: Buona femmina e
|
|
mala femmina vuol bastone.--Sacchetti, Nov. 86.
|
|
|
|
148. To seduce their neighbour to a favourable opinion, and afterwards
|
|
to believe implicitly in this opinion of their neighbour--who can do
|
|
this conjuring trick so well as women?
|
|
|
|
149. That which an age considers evil is usually an unseasonable echo of
|
|
what was formerly considered good--the atavism of an old ideal.
|
|
|
|
150. Around the hero everything becomes a tragedy; around the
|
|
demigod everything becomes a satyr-play; and around God everything
|
|
becomes--what? perhaps a "world"?
|
|
|
|
151. It is not enough to possess a talent: one must also have your
|
|
permission to possess it;--eh, my friends?
|
|
|
|
152. "Where there is the tree of knowledge, there is always Paradise":
|
|
so say the most ancient and the most modern serpents.
|
|
|
|
153. What is done out of love always takes place beyond good and evil.
|
|
|
|
154. Objection, evasion, joyous distrust, and love of irony are signs of
|
|
health; everything absolute belongs to pathology.
|
|
|
|
155. The sense of the tragic increases and declines with sensuousness.
|
|
|
|
156. Insanity in individuals is something rare--but in groups, parties,
|
|
nations, and epochs it is the rule.
|
|
|
|
157. The thought of suicide is a great consolation: by means of it one
|
|
gets successfully through many a bad night.
|
|
|
|
158. Not only our reason, but also our conscience, truckles to our
|
|
strongest impulse--the tyrant in us.
|
|
|
|
159. One MUST repay good and ill; but why just to the person who did us
|
|
good or ill?
|
|
|
|
160. One no longer loves one's knowledge sufficiently after one has
|
|
communicated it.
|
|
|
|
161. Poets act shamelessly towards their experiences: they exploit them.
|
|
|
|
162. "Our fellow-creature is not our neighbour, but our neighbour's
|
|
neighbour":--so thinks every nation.
|
|
|
|
163. Love brings to light the noble and hidden qualities of a lover--his
|
|
rare and exceptional traits: it is thus liable to be deceptive as to his
|
|
normal character.
|
|
|
|
164. Jesus said to his Jews: "The law was for servants;--love God as I
|
|
love him, as his Son! What have we Sons of God to do with morals!"
|
|
|
|
165. IN SIGHT OF EVERY PARTY.--A shepherd has always need of a
|
|
bell-wether--or he has himself to be a wether occasionally.
|
|
|
|
166. One may indeed lie with the mouth; but with the accompanying
|
|
grimace one nevertheless tells the truth.
|
|
|
|
167. To vigorous men intimacy is a matter of shame--and something
|
|
precious.
|
|
|
|
168. Christianity gave Eros poison to drink; he did not die of it,
|
|
certainly, but degenerated to Vice.
|
|
|
|
169. To talk much about oneself may also be a means of concealing
|
|
oneself.
|
|
|
|
170. In praise there is more obtrusiveness than in blame.
|
|
|
|
171. Pity has an almost ludicrous effect on a man of knowledge, like
|
|
tender hands on a Cyclops.
|
|
|
|
172. One occasionally embraces some one or other, out of love to mankind
|
|
(because one cannot embrace all); but this is what one must never
|
|
confess to the individual.
|
|
|
|
173. One does not hate as long as one disesteems, but only when one
|
|
esteems equal or superior.
|
|
|
|
174. Ye Utilitarians--ye, too, love the UTILE only as a VEHICLE for
|
|
your inclinations,--ye, too, really find the noise of its wheels
|
|
insupportable!
|
|
|
|
175. One loves ultimately one's desires, not the thing desired.
|
|
|
|
176. The vanity of others is only counter to our taste when it is
|
|
counter to our vanity.
|
|
|
|
177. With regard to what "truthfulness" is, perhaps nobody has ever been
|
|
sufficiently truthful.
|
|
|
|
178. One does not believe in the follies of clever men: what a
|
|
forfeiture of the rights of man!
|
|
|
|
179. The consequences of our actions seize us by the forelock, very
|
|
indifferent to the fact that we have meanwhile "reformed."
|
|
|
|
180. There is an innocence in lying which is the sign of good faith in a
|
|
cause.
|
|
|
|
181. It is inhuman to bless when one is being cursed.
|
|
|
|
182. The familiarity of superiors embitters one, because it may not be
|
|
returned.
|
|
|
|
183. "I am affected, not because you have deceived me, but because I can
|
|
no longer believe in you."
|
|
|
|
184. There is a haughtiness of kindness which has the appearance of
|
|
wickedness.
|
|
|
|
185. "I dislike him."--Why?--"I am not a match for him."--Did any one
|
|
ever answer so?
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V. THE NATURAL HISTORY OF MORALS
|
|
|
|
|
|
186. The moral sentiment in Europe at present is perhaps as subtle,
|
|
belated, diverse, sensitive, and refined, as the "Science of Morals"
|
|
belonging thereto is recent, initial, awkward, and coarse-fingered:--an
|
|
interesting contrast, which sometimes becomes incarnate and obvious
|
|
in the very person of a moralist. Indeed, the expression, "Science
|
|
of Morals" is, in respect to what is designated thereby, far too
|
|
presumptuous and counter to GOOD taste,--which is always a foretaste of
|
|
more modest expressions. One ought to avow with the utmost fairness WHAT
|
|
is still necessary here for a long time, WHAT is alone proper for the
|
|
present: namely, the collection of material, the comprehensive survey
|
|
and classification of an immense domain of delicate sentiments of worth,
|
|
and distinctions of worth, which live, grow, propagate, and perish--and
|
|
perhaps attempts to give a clear idea of the recurring and more common
|
|
forms of these living crystallizations--as preparation for a THEORY OF
|
|
TYPES of morality. To be sure, people have not hitherto been so modest.
|
|
All the philosophers, with a pedantic and ridiculous seriousness,
|
|
demanded of themselves something very much higher, more pretentious, and
|
|
ceremonious, when they concerned themselves with morality as a science:
|
|
they wanted to GIVE A BASIC to morality--and every philosopher hitherto
|
|
has believed that he has given it a basis; morality itself, however, has
|
|
been regarded as something "given." How far from their awkward pride
|
|
was the seemingly insignificant problem--left in dust and decay--of a
|
|
description of forms of morality, notwithstanding that the finest hands
|
|
and senses could hardly be fine enough for it! It was precisely owing to
|
|
moral philosophers' knowing the moral facts imperfectly, in an arbitrary
|
|
epitome, or an accidental abridgement--perhaps as the morality of
|
|
their environment, their position, their church, their Zeitgeist, their
|
|
climate and zone--it was precisely because they were badly instructed
|
|
with regard to nations, eras, and past ages, and were by no means eager
|
|
to know about these matters, that they did not even come in sight of the
|
|
real problems of morals--problems which only disclose themselves by
|
|
a comparison of MANY kinds of morality. In every "Science of Morals"
|
|
hitherto, strange as it may sound, the problem of morality itself
|
|
has been OMITTED: there has been no suspicion that there was anything
|
|
problematic there! That which philosophers called "giving a basis to
|
|
morality," and endeavoured to realize, has, when seen in a right light,
|
|
proved merely a learned form of good FAITH in prevailing morality, a new
|
|
means of its EXPRESSION, consequently just a matter-of-fact within the
|
|
sphere of a definite morality, yea, in its ultimate motive, a sort of
|
|
denial that it is LAWFUL for this morality to be called in question--and
|
|
in any case the reverse of the testing, analyzing, doubting, and
|
|
vivisecting of this very faith. Hear, for instance, with what
|
|
innocence--almost worthy of honour--Schopenhauer represents his own
|
|
task, and draw your conclusions concerning the scientificness of a
|
|
"Science" whose latest master still talks in the strain of children and
|
|
old wives: "The principle," he says (page 136 of the Grundprobleme der
|
|
Ethik), [Footnote: Pages 54-55 of Schopenhauer's Basis of Morality,
|
|
translated by Arthur B. Bullock, M.A. (1903).] "the axiom about the
|
|
purport of which all moralists are PRACTICALLY agreed: neminem laede,
|
|
immo omnes quantum potes juva--is REALLY the proposition which all moral
|
|
teachers strive to establish, ... the REAL basis of ethics which
|
|
has been sought, like the philosopher's stone, for centuries."--The
|
|
difficulty of establishing the proposition referred to may indeed be
|
|
great--it is well known that Schopenhauer also was unsuccessful in his
|
|
efforts; and whoever has thoroughly realized how absurdly false and
|
|
sentimental this proposition is, in a world whose essence is Will
|
|
to Power, may be reminded that Schopenhauer, although a pessimist,
|
|
ACTUALLY--played the flute... daily after dinner: one may read about
|
|
the matter in his biography. A question by the way: a pessimist, a
|
|
repudiator of God and of the world, who MAKES A HALT at morality--who
|
|
assents to morality, and plays the flute to laede-neminem morals, what?
|
|
Is that really--a pessimist?
|
|
|
|
187. Apart from the value of such assertions as "there is a categorical
|
|
imperative in us," one can always ask: What does such an assertion
|
|
indicate about him who makes it? There are systems of morals which are
|
|
meant to justify their author in the eyes of other people; other systems
|
|
of morals are meant to tranquilize him, and make him self-satisfied;
|
|
with other systems he wants to crucify and humble himself, with others
|
|
he wishes to take revenge, with others to conceal himself, with others
|
|
to glorify himself and gave superiority and distinction,--this system of
|
|
morals helps its author to forget, that system makes him, or something
|
|
of him, forgotten, many a moralist would like to exercise power and
|
|
creative arbitrariness over mankind, many another, perhaps, Kant
|
|
especially, gives us to understand by his morals that "what is estimable
|
|
in me, is that I know how to obey--and with you it SHALL not be
|
|
otherwise than with me!" In short, systems of morals are only a
|
|
SIGN-LANGUAGE OF THE EMOTIONS.
|
|
|
|
188. In contrast to laisser-aller, every system of morals is a sort of
|
|
tyranny against "nature" and also against "reason", that is, however, no
|
|
objection, unless one should again decree by some system of morals, that
|
|
all kinds of tyranny and unreasonableness are unlawful What is
|
|
essential and invaluable in every system of morals, is that it is a
|
|
long constraint. In order to understand Stoicism, or Port Royal,
|
|
or Puritanism, one should remember the constraint under which every
|
|
language has attained to strength and freedom--the metrical constraint,
|
|
the tyranny of rhyme and rhythm. How much trouble have the poets and
|
|
orators of every nation given themselves!--not excepting some of
|
|
the prose writers of today, in whose ear dwells an inexorable
|
|
conscientiousness--"for the sake of a folly," as utilitarian bunglers
|
|
say, and thereby deem themselves wise--"from submission to arbitrary
|
|
laws," as the anarchists say, and thereby fancy themselves "free," even
|
|
free-spirited. The singular fact remains, however, that everything
|
|
of the nature of freedom, elegance, boldness, dance, and masterly
|
|
certainty, which exists or has existed, whether it be in thought itself,
|
|
or in administration, or in speaking and persuading, in art just as in
|
|
conduct, has only developed by means of the tyranny of such arbitrary
|
|
law, and in all seriousness, it is not at all improbable that precisely
|
|
this is "nature" and "natural"--and not laisser-aller! Every artist
|
|
knows how different from the state of letting himself go, is his
|
|
"most natural" condition, the free arranging, locating, disposing,
|
|
and constructing in the moments of "inspiration"--and how strictly and
|
|
delicately he then obeys a thousand laws, which, by their very rigidness
|
|
and precision, defy all formulation by means of ideas (even the most
|
|
stable idea has, in comparison therewith, something floating, manifold,
|
|
and ambiguous in it). The essential thing "in heaven and in earth" is,
|
|
apparently (to repeat it once more), that there should be long OBEDIENCE
|
|
in the same direction, there thereby results, and has always resulted in
|
|
the long run, something which has made life worth living; for instance,
|
|
virtue, art, music, dancing, reason, spirituality--anything whatever
|
|
that is transfiguring, refined, foolish, or divine. The long bondage of
|
|
the spirit, the distrustful constraint in the communicability of
|
|
ideas, the discipline which the thinker imposed on himself to think
|
|
in accordance with the rules of a church or a court, or conformable
|
|
to Aristotelian premises, the persistent spiritual will to interpret
|
|
everything that happened according to a Christian scheme, and in every
|
|
occurrence to rediscover and justify the Christian God:--all this
|
|
violence, arbitrariness, severity, dreadfulness, and unreasonableness,
|
|
has proved itself the disciplinary means whereby the European spirit has
|
|
attained its strength, its remorseless curiosity and subtle mobility;
|
|
granted also that much irrecoverable strength and spirit had to be
|
|
stifled, suffocated, and spoilt in the process (for here, as everywhere,
|
|
"nature" shows herself as she is, in all her extravagant and INDIFFERENT
|
|
magnificence, which is shocking, but nevertheless noble). That
|
|
for centuries European thinkers only thought in order to prove
|
|
something--nowadays, on the contrary, we are suspicious of every thinker
|
|
who "wishes to prove something"--that it was always settled beforehand
|
|
what WAS TO BE the result of their strictest thinking, as it was perhaps
|
|
in the Asiatic astrology of former times, or as it is still at the
|
|
present day in the innocent, Christian-moral explanation of immediate
|
|
personal events "for the glory of God," or "for the good of the
|
|
soul":--this tyranny, this arbitrariness, this severe and magnificent
|
|
stupidity, has EDUCATED the spirit; slavery, both in the coarser and
|
|
the finer sense, is apparently an indispensable means even of spiritual
|
|
education and discipline. One may look at every system of morals in this
|
|
light: it is "nature" therein which teaches to hate the laisser-aller,
|
|
the too great freedom, and implants the need for limited horizons, for
|
|
immediate duties--it teaches the NARROWING OF PERSPECTIVES, and thus, in
|
|
a certain sense, that stupidity is a condition of life and development.
|
|
"Thou must obey some one, and for a long time; OTHERWISE thou wilt come
|
|
to grief, and lose all respect for thyself"--this seems to me to be the
|
|
moral imperative of nature, which is certainly neither "categorical,"
|
|
as old Kant wished (consequently the "otherwise"), nor does it address
|
|
itself to the individual (what does nature care for the individual!),
|
|
but to nations, races, ages, and ranks; above all, however, to the
|
|
animal "man" generally, to MANKIND.
|
|
|
|
189. Industrious races find it a great hardship to be idle: it was a
|
|
master stroke of ENGLISH instinct to hallow and begloom Sunday to such
|
|
an extent that the Englishman unconsciously hankers for his week--and
|
|
work-day again:--as a kind of cleverly devised, cleverly intercalated
|
|
FAST, such as is also frequently found in the ancient world (although,
|
|
as is appropriate in southern nations, not precisely with respect
|
|
to work). Many kinds of fasts are necessary; and wherever powerful
|
|
influences and habits prevail, legislators have to see that intercalary
|
|
days are appointed, on which such impulses are fettered, and learn to
|
|
hunger anew. Viewed from a higher standpoint, whole generations and
|
|
epochs, when they show themselves infected with any moral fanaticism,
|
|
seem like those intercalated periods of restraint and fasting, during
|
|
which an impulse learns to humble and submit itself--at the same time
|
|
also to PURIFY and SHARPEN itself; certain philosophical sects likewise
|
|
admit of a similar interpretation (for instance, the Stoa, in the midst
|
|
of Hellenic culture, with the atmosphere rank and overcharged with
|
|
Aphrodisiacal odours).--Here also is a hint for the explanation of the
|
|
paradox, why it was precisely in the most Christian period of European
|
|
history, and in general only under the pressure of Christian sentiments,
|
|
that the sexual impulse sublimated into love (amour-passion).
|
|
|
|
190. There is something in the morality of Plato which does not really
|
|
belong to Plato, but which only appears in his philosophy, one might
|
|
say, in spite of him: namely, Socratism, for which he himself was
|
|
too noble. "No one desires to injure himself, hence all evil is done
|
|
unwittingly. The evil man inflicts injury on himself; he would not do
|
|
so, however, if he knew that evil is evil. The evil man, therefore, is
|
|
only evil through error; if one free him from error one will necessarily
|
|
make him--good."--This mode of reasoning savours of the POPULACE, who
|
|
perceive only the unpleasant consequences of evil-doing, and practically
|
|
judge that "it is STUPID to do wrong"; while they accept "good" as
|
|
identical with "useful and pleasant," without further thought. As
|
|
regards every system of utilitarianism, one may at once assume that it
|
|
has the same origin, and follow the scent: one will seldom err.--Plato
|
|
did all he could to interpret something refined and noble into the
|
|
tenets of his teacher, and above all to interpret himself into them--he,
|
|
the most daring of all interpreters, who lifted the entire Socrates out
|
|
of the street, as a popular theme and song, to exhibit him in endless
|
|
and impossible modifications--namely, in all his own disguises and
|
|
multiplicities. In jest, and in Homeric language as well, what is the
|
|
Platonic Socrates, if not--[Greek words inserted here.]
|
|
|
|
191. The old theological problem of "Faith" and "Knowledge," or more
|
|
plainly, of instinct and reason--the question whether, in respect to the
|
|
valuation of things, instinct deserves more authority than rationality,
|
|
which wants to appreciate and act according to motives, according to
|
|
a "Why," that is to say, in conformity to purpose and utility--it
|
|
is always the old moral problem that first appeared in the person of
|
|
Socrates, and had divided men's minds long before Christianity. Socrates
|
|
himself, following, of course, the taste of his talent--that of a
|
|
surpassing dialectician--took first the side of reason; and, in fact,
|
|
what did he do all his life but laugh at the awkward incapacity of the
|
|
noble Athenians, who were men of instinct, like all noble men, and could
|
|
never give satisfactory answers concerning the motives of their actions?
|
|
In the end, however, though silently and secretly, he laughed also
|
|
at himself: with his finer conscience and introspection, he found
|
|
in himself the same difficulty and incapacity. "But why"--he said
|
|
to himself--"should one on that account separate oneself from the
|
|
instincts! One must set them right, and the reason ALSO--one must follow
|
|
the instincts, but at the same time persuade the reason to support them
|
|
with good arguments." This was the real FALSENESS of that great and
|
|
mysterious ironist; he brought his conscience up to the point that he
|
|
was satisfied with a kind of self-outwitting: in fact, he perceived
|
|
the irrationality in the moral judgment.--Plato, more innocent in such
|
|
matters, and without the craftiness of the plebeian, wished to prove to
|
|
himself, at the expenditure of all his strength--the greatest strength
|
|
a philosopher had ever expended--that reason and instinct lead
|
|
spontaneously to one goal, to the good, to "God"; and since Plato, all
|
|
theologians and philosophers have followed the same path--which means
|
|
that in matters of morality, instinct (or as Christians call it,
|
|
"Faith," or as I call it, "the herd") has hitherto triumphed. Unless
|
|
one should make an exception in the case of Descartes, the father of
|
|
rationalism (and consequently the grandfather of the Revolution), who
|
|
recognized only the authority of reason: but reason is only a tool, and
|
|
Descartes was superficial.
|
|
|
|
192. Whoever has followed the history of a single science, finds in
|
|
its development a clue to the understanding of the oldest and commonest
|
|
processes of all "knowledge and cognizance": there, as here, the
|
|
premature hypotheses, the fictions, the good stupid will to "belief,"
|
|
and the lack of distrust and patience are first developed--our senses
|
|
learn late, and never learn completely, to be subtle, reliable, and
|
|
cautious organs of knowledge. Our eyes find it easier on a given
|
|
occasion to produce a picture already often produced, than to seize upon
|
|
the divergence and novelty of an impression: the latter requires more
|
|
force, more "morality." It is difficult and painful for the ear to
|
|
listen to anything new; we hear strange music badly. When we hear
|
|
another language spoken, we involuntarily attempt to form the sounds
|
|
into words with which we are more familiar and conversant--it was thus,
|
|
for example, that the Germans modified the spoken word ARCUBALISTA into
|
|
ARMBRUST (cross-bow). Our senses are also hostile and averse to the
|
|
new; and generally, even in the "simplest" processes of sensation, the
|
|
emotions DOMINATE--such as fear, love, hatred, and the passive emotion
|
|
of indolence.--As little as a reader nowadays reads all the single words
|
|
(not to speak of syllables) of a page--he rather takes about five out
|
|
of every twenty words at random, and "guesses" the probably appropriate
|
|
sense to them--just as little do we see a tree correctly and completely
|
|
in respect to its leaves, branches, colour, and shape; we find it so
|
|
much easier to fancy the chance of a tree. Even in the midst of the
|
|
most remarkable experiences, we still do just the same; we fabricate the
|
|
greater part of the experience, and can hardly be made to contemplate
|
|
any event, EXCEPT as "inventors" thereof. All this goes to prove
|
|
that from our fundamental nature and from remote ages we have
|
|
been--ACCUSTOMED TO LYING. Or, to express it more politely and
|
|
hypocritically, in short, more pleasantly--one is much more of an artist
|
|
than one is aware of.--In an animated conversation, I often see the face
|
|
of the person with whom I am speaking so clearly and sharply defined
|
|
before me, according to the thought he expresses, or which I believe to
|
|
be evoked in his mind, that the degree of distinctness far exceeds the
|
|
STRENGTH of my visual faculty--the delicacy of the play of the muscles
|
|
and of the expression of the eyes MUST therefore be imagined by me.
|
|
Probably the person put on quite a different expression, or none at all.
|
|
|
|
193. Quidquid luce fuit, tenebris agit: but also contrariwise. What we
|
|
experience in dreams, provided we experience it often, pertains at
|
|
last just as much to the general belongings of our soul as anything
|
|
"actually" experienced; by virtue thereof we are richer or poorer, we
|
|
have a requirement more or less, and finally, in broad daylight, and
|
|
even in the brightest moments of our waking life, we are ruled to some
|
|
extent by the nature of our dreams. Supposing that someone has often
|
|
flown in his dreams, and that at last, as soon as he dreams, he is
|
|
conscious of the power and art of flying as his privilege and his
|
|
peculiarly enviable happiness; such a person, who believes that on the
|
|
slightest impulse, he can actualize all sorts of curves and angles, who
|
|
knows the sensation of a certain divine levity, an "upwards"
|
|
without effort or constraint, a "downwards" without descending
|
|
or lowering--without TROUBLE!--how could the man with such
|
|
dream-experiences and dream-habits fail to find "happiness" differently
|
|
coloured and defined, even in his waking hours! How could he fail--to
|
|
long DIFFERENTLY for happiness? "Flight," such as is described by poets,
|
|
must, when compared with his own "flying," be far too earthly, muscular,
|
|
violent, far too "troublesome" for him.
|
|
|
|
194. The difference among men does not manifest itself only in the
|
|
difference of their lists of desirable things--in their regarding
|
|
different good things as worth striving for, and being disagreed as to
|
|
the greater or less value, the order of rank, of the commonly recognized
|
|
desirable things:--it manifests itself much more in what they regard as
|
|
actually HAVING and POSSESSING a desirable thing. As regards a woman,
|
|
for instance, the control over her body and her sexual gratification
|
|
serves as an amply sufficient sign of ownership and possession to the
|
|
more modest man; another with a more suspicious and ambitious thirst for
|
|
possession, sees the "questionableness," the mere apparentness of such
|
|
ownership, and wishes to have finer tests in order to know especially
|
|
whether the woman not only gives herself to him, but also gives up for
|
|
his sake what she has or would like to have--only THEN does he look upon
|
|
her as "possessed." A third, however, has not even here got to the limit
|
|
of his distrust and his desire for possession: he asks himself whether
|
|
the woman, when she gives up everything for him, does not perhaps do
|
|
so for a phantom of him; he wishes first to be thoroughly, indeed,
|
|
profoundly well known; in order to be loved at all he ventures to let
|
|
himself be found out. Only then does he feel the beloved one fully in
|
|
his possession, when she no longer deceives herself about him, when
|
|
she loves him just as much for the sake of his devilry and concealed
|
|
insatiability, as for his goodness, patience, and spirituality. One
|
|
man would like to possess a nation, and he finds all the higher arts of
|
|
Cagliostro and Catalina suitable for his purpose. Another, with a more
|
|
refined thirst for possession, says to himself: "One may not deceive
|
|
where one desires to possess"--he is irritated and impatient at the idea
|
|
that a mask of him should rule in the hearts of the people: "I must,
|
|
therefore, MAKE myself known, and first of all learn to know myself!"
|
|
Among helpful and charitable people, one almost always finds the awkward
|
|
craftiness which first gets up suitably him who has to be helped, as
|
|
though, for instance, he should "merit" help, seek just THEIR help, and
|
|
would show himself deeply grateful, attached, and subservient to them
|
|
for all help. With these conceits, they take control of the needy as a
|
|
property, just as in general they are charitable and helpful out of a
|
|
desire for property. One finds them jealous when they are crossed or
|
|
forestalled in their charity. Parents involuntarily make something like
|
|
themselves out of their children--they call that "education"; no mother
|
|
doubts at the bottom of her heart that the child she has borne is
|
|
thereby her property, no father hesitates about his right to HIS OWN
|
|
ideas and notions of worth. Indeed, in former times fathers deemed it
|
|
right to use their discretion concerning the life or death of the newly
|
|
born (as among the ancient Germans). And like the father, so also do the
|
|
teacher, the class, the priest, and the prince still see in every new
|
|
individual an unobjectionable opportunity for a new possession. The
|
|
consequence is...
|
|
|
|
195. The Jews--a people "born for slavery," as Tacitus and the whole
|
|
ancient world say of them; "the chosen people among the nations," as
|
|
they themselves say and believe--the Jews performed the miracle of the
|
|
inversion of valuations, by means of which life on earth obtained a new
|
|
and dangerous charm for a couple of millenniums. Their prophets fused
|
|
into one the expressions "rich," "godless," "wicked," "violent,"
|
|
"sensual," and for the first time coined the word "world" as a term of
|
|
reproach. In this inversion of valuations (in which is also included
|
|
the use of the word "poor" as synonymous with "saint" and "friend") the
|
|
significance of the Jewish people is to be found; it is with THEM that
|
|
the SLAVE-INSURRECTION IN MORALS commences.
|
|
|
|
196. It is to be INFERRED that there are countless dark bodies near the
|
|
sun--such as we shall never see. Among ourselves, this is an allegory;
|
|
and the psychologist of morals reads the whole star-writing merely as an
|
|
allegorical and symbolic language in which much may be unexpressed.
|
|
|
|
197. The beast of prey and the man of prey (for instance, Caesar Borgia)
|
|
are fundamentally misunderstood, "nature" is misunderstood, so long as
|
|
one seeks a "morbidness" in the constitution of these healthiest of
|
|
all tropical monsters and growths, or even an innate "hell" in them--as
|
|
almost all moralists have done hitherto. Does it not seem that there is
|
|
a hatred of the virgin forest and of the tropics among moralists? And
|
|
that the "tropical man" must be discredited at all costs, whether
|
|
as disease and deterioration of mankind, or as his own hell and
|
|
self-torture? And why? In favour of the "temperate zones"? In favour
|
|
of the temperate men? The "moral"? The mediocre?--This for the chapter:
|
|
"Morals as Timidity."
|
|
|
|
198. All the systems of morals which address themselves with a view to
|
|
their "happiness," as it is called--what else are they but suggestions
|
|
for behaviour adapted to the degree of DANGER from themselves in which
|
|
the individuals live; recipes for their passions, their good and bad
|
|
propensities, insofar as such have the Will to Power and would like
|
|
to play the master; small and great expediencies and elaborations,
|
|
permeated with the musty odour of old family medicines and old-wife
|
|
wisdom; all of them grotesque and absurd in their form--because
|
|
they address themselves to "all," because they generalize where
|
|
generalization is not authorized; all of them speaking unconditionally,
|
|
and taking themselves unconditionally; all of them flavoured not merely
|
|
with one grain of salt, but rather endurable only, and sometimes even
|
|
seductive, when they are over-spiced and begin to smell dangerously,
|
|
especially of "the other world." That is all of little value when
|
|
estimated intellectually, and is far from being "science," much less
|
|
"wisdom"; but, repeated once more, and three times repeated, it is
|
|
expediency, expediency, expediency, mixed with stupidity, stupidity,
|
|
stupidity--whether it be the indifference and statuesque coldness
|
|
towards the heated folly of the emotions, which the Stoics advised and
|
|
fostered; or the no-more-laughing and no-more-weeping of Spinoza, the
|
|
destruction of the emotions by their analysis and vivisection, which he
|
|
recommended so naively; or the lowering of the emotions to an innocent
|
|
mean at which they may be satisfied, the Aristotelianism of morals;
|
|
or even morality as the enjoyment of the emotions in a voluntary
|
|
attenuation and spiritualization by the symbolism of art, perhaps as
|
|
music, or as love of God, and of mankind for God's sake--for in religion
|
|
the passions are once more enfranchised, provided that...; or, finally,
|
|
even the complaisant and wanton surrender to the emotions, as has
|
|
been taught by Hafis and Goethe, the bold letting-go of the reins, the
|
|
spiritual and corporeal licentia morum in the exceptional cases of
|
|
wise old codgers and drunkards, with whom it "no longer has much
|
|
danger."--This also for the chapter: "Morals as Timidity."
|
|
|
|
199. Inasmuch as in all ages, as long as mankind has existed, there have
|
|
also been human herds (family alliances, communities, tribes, peoples,
|
|
states, churches), and always a great number who obey in proportion
|
|
to the small number who command--in view, therefore, of the fact that
|
|
obedience has been most practiced and fostered among mankind hitherto,
|
|
one may reasonably suppose that, generally speaking, the need thereof is
|
|
now innate in every one, as a kind of FORMAL CONSCIENCE which gives
|
|
the command "Thou shalt unconditionally do something, unconditionally
|
|
refrain from something", in short, "Thou shalt". This need tries to
|
|
satisfy itself and to fill its form with a content, according to its
|
|
strength, impatience, and eagerness, it at once seizes as an omnivorous
|
|
appetite with little selection, and accepts whatever is shouted into
|
|
its ear by all sorts of commanders--parents, teachers, laws, class
|
|
prejudices, or public opinion. The extraordinary limitation of human
|
|
development, the hesitation, protractedness, frequent retrogression, and
|
|
turning thereof, is attributable to the fact that the herd-instinct of
|
|
obedience is transmitted best, and at the cost of the art of command. If
|
|
one imagine this instinct increasing to its greatest extent, commanders
|
|
and independent individuals will finally be lacking altogether, or they
|
|
will suffer inwardly from a bad conscience, and will have to impose
|
|
a deception on themselves in the first place in order to be able to
|
|
command just as if they also were only obeying. This condition of things
|
|
actually exists in Europe at present--I call it the moral hypocrisy of
|
|
the commanding class. They know no other way of protecting themselves
|
|
from their bad conscience than by playing the role of executors of older
|
|
and higher orders (of predecessors, of the constitution, of justice, of
|
|
the law, or of God himself), or they even justify themselves by maxims
|
|
from the current opinions of the herd, as "first servants of their
|
|
people," or "instruments of the public weal". On the other hand, the
|
|
gregarious European man nowadays assumes an air as if he were the only
|
|
kind of man that is allowable, he glorifies his qualities, such as
|
|
public spirit, kindness, deference, industry, temperance, modesty,
|
|
indulgence, sympathy, by virtue of which he is gentle, endurable, and
|
|
useful to the herd, as the peculiarly human virtues. In cases, however,
|
|
where it is believed that the leader and bell-wether cannot be dispensed
|
|
with, attempt after attempt is made nowadays to replace commanders
|
|
by the summing together of clever gregarious men all representative
|
|
constitutions, for example, are of this origin. In spite of all, what a
|
|
blessing, what a deliverance from a weight becoming unendurable, is the
|
|
appearance of an absolute ruler for these gregarious Europeans--of this
|
|
fact the effect of the appearance of Napoleon was the last great proof
|
|
the history of the influence of Napoleon is almost the history of
|
|
the higher happiness to which the entire century has attained in its
|
|
worthiest individuals and periods.
|
|
|
|
200. The man of an age of dissolution which mixes the races with
|
|
one another, who has the inheritance of a diversified descent in his
|
|
body--that is to say, contrary, and often not only contrary, instincts
|
|
and standards of value, which struggle with one another and are seldom
|
|
at peace--such a man of late culture and broken lights, will, on an
|
|
average, be a weak man. His fundamental desire is that the war which is
|
|
IN HIM should come to an end; happiness appears to him in the character
|
|
of a soothing medicine and mode of thought (for instance, Epicurean
|
|
or Christian); it is above all things the happiness of repose, of
|
|
undisturbedness, of repletion, of final unity--it is the "Sabbath of
|
|
Sabbaths," to use the expression of the holy rhetorician, St. Augustine,
|
|
who was himself such a man.--Should, however, the contrariety and
|
|
conflict in such natures operate as an ADDITIONAL incentive and stimulus
|
|
to life--and if, on the other hand, in addition to their powerful and
|
|
irreconcilable instincts, they have also inherited and indoctrinated
|
|
into them a proper mastery and subtlety for carrying on the conflict
|
|
with themselves (that is to say, the faculty of self-control and
|
|
self-deception), there then arise those marvelously incomprehensible and
|
|
inexplicable beings, those enigmatical men, predestined for conquering
|
|
and circumventing others, the finest examples of which are Alcibiades
|
|
and Caesar (with whom I should like to associate the FIRST of Europeans
|
|
according to my taste, the Hohenstaufen, Frederick the Second), and
|
|
among artists, perhaps Leonardo da Vinci. They appear precisely in the
|
|
same periods when that weaker type, with its longing for repose, comes
|
|
to the front; the two types are complementary to each other, and spring
|
|
from the same causes.
|
|
|
|
201. As long as the utility which determines moral estimates is only
|
|
gregarious utility, as long as the preservation of the community is only
|
|
kept in view, and the immoral is sought precisely and exclusively in
|
|
what seems dangerous to the maintenance of the community, there can be
|
|
no "morality of love to one's neighbour." Granted even that there is
|
|
already a little constant exercise of consideration, sympathy, fairness,
|
|
gentleness, and mutual assistance, granted that even in this condition
|
|
of society all those instincts are already active which are latterly
|
|
distinguished by honourable names as "virtues," and eventually almost
|
|
coincide with the conception "morality": in that period they do not
|
|
as yet belong to the domain of moral valuations--they are still
|
|
ULTRA-MORAL. A sympathetic action, for instance, is neither called good
|
|
nor bad, moral nor immoral, in the best period of the Romans; and should
|
|
it be praised, a sort of resentful disdain is compatible with this
|
|
praise, even at the best, directly the sympathetic action is compared
|
|
with one which contributes to the welfare of the whole, to the RES
|
|
PUBLICA. After all, "love to our neighbour" is always a secondary
|
|
matter, partly conventional and arbitrarily manifested in relation to
|
|
our FEAR OF OUR NEIGHBOUR. After the fabric of society seems on the
|
|
whole established and secured against external dangers, it is this
|
|
fear of our neighbour which again creates new perspectives of moral
|
|
valuation. Certain strong and dangerous instincts, such as the love of
|
|
enterprise, foolhardiness, revengefulness, astuteness, rapacity, and
|
|
love of power, which up till then had not only to be honoured from the
|
|
point of view of general utility--under other names, of course, than
|
|
those here given--but had to be fostered and cultivated (because they
|
|
were perpetually required in the common danger against the common
|
|
enemies), are now felt in their dangerousness to be doubly strong--when
|
|
the outlets for them are lacking--and are gradually branded as immoral
|
|
and given over to calumny. The contrary instincts and inclinations now
|
|
attain to moral honour, the gregarious instinct gradually draws its
|
|
conclusions. How much or how little dangerousness to the community or
|
|
to equality is contained in an opinion, a condition, an emotion, a
|
|
disposition, or an endowment--that is now the moral perspective, here
|
|
again fear is the mother of morals. It is by the loftiest and strongest
|
|
instincts, when they break out passionately and carry the individual
|
|
far above and beyond the average, and the low level of the gregarious
|
|
conscience, that the self-reliance of the community is destroyed, its
|
|
belief in itself, its backbone, as it were, breaks, consequently these
|
|
very instincts will be most branded and defamed. The lofty independent
|
|
spirituality, the will to stand alone, and even the cogent reason, are
|
|
felt to be dangers, everything that elevates the individual above the
|
|
herd, and is a source of fear to the neighbour, is henceforth called
|
|
EVIL, the tolerant, unassuming, self-adapting, self-equalizing
|
|
disposition, the MEDIOCRITY of desires, attains to moral distinction and
|
|
honour. Finally, under very peaceful circumstances, there is always
|
|
less opportunity and necessity for training the feelings to severity
|
|
and rigour, and now every form of severity, even in justice, begins
|
|
to disturb the conscience, a lofty and rigorous nobleness and
|
|
self-responsibility almost offends, and awakens distrust, "the lamb,"
|
|
and still more "the sheep," wins respect. There is a point of diseased
|
|
mellowness and effeminacy in the history of society, at which society
|
|
itself takes the part of him who injures it, the part of the CRIMINAL,
|
|
and does so, in fact, seriously and honestly. To punish, appears to it
|
|
to be somehow unfair--it is certain that the idea of "punishment" and
|
|
"the obligation to punish" are then painful and alarming to people. "Is
|
|
it not sufficient if the criminal be rendered HARMLESS? Why should we
|
|
still punish? Punishment itself is terrible!"--with these questions
|
|
gregarious morality, the morality of fear, draws its ultimate
|
|
conclusion. If one could at all do away with danger, the cause of fear,
|
|
one would have done away with this morality at the same time, it
|
|
would no longer be necessary, it WOULD NOT CONSIDER ITSELF any longer
|
|
necessary!--Whoever examines the conscience of the present-day European,
|
|
will always elicit the same imperative from its thousand moral folds
|
|
and hidden recesses, the imperative of the timidity of the herd "we wish
|
|
that some time or other there may be NOTHING MORE TO FEAR!" Some time
|
|
or other--the will and the way THERETO is nowadays called "progress" all
|
|
over Europe.
|
|
|
|
202. Let us at once say again what we have already said a hundred
|
|
times, for people's ears nowadays are unwilling to hear such truths--OUR
|
|
truths. We know well enough how offensive it sounds when any one
|
|
plainly, and without metaphor, counts man among the animals, but it will
|
|
be accounted to us almost a CRIME, that it is precisely in respect to
|
|
men of "modern ideas" that we have constantly applied the terms "herd,"
|
|
"herd-instincts," and such like expressions. What avail is it? We cannot
|
|
do otherwise, for it is precisely here that our new insight is. We
|
|
have found that in all the principal moral judgments, Europe has become
|
|
unanimous, including likewise the countries where European influence
|
|
prevails in Europe people evidently KNOW what Socrates thought he
|
|
did not know, and what the famous serpent of old once promised to
|
|
teach--they "know" today what is good and evil. It must then sound hard
|
|
and be distasteful to the ear, when we always insist that that which
|
|
here thinks it knows, that which here glorifies itself with praise
|
|
and blame, and calls itself good, is the instinct of the herding human
|
|
animal, the instinct which has come and is ever coming more and more
|
|
to the front, to preponderance and supremacy over other instincts,
|
|
according to the increasing physiological approximation and resemblance
|
|
of which it is the symptom. MORALITY IN EUROPE AT PRESENT IS
|
|
HERDING-ANIMAL MORALITY, and therefore, as we understand the matter,
|
|
only one kind of human morality, beside which, before which, and after
|
|
which many other moralities, and above all HIGHER moralities, are or
|
|
should be possible. Against such a "possibility," against such a "should
|
|
be," however, this morality defends itself with all its strength, it
|
|
says obstinately and inexorably "I am morality itself and nothing else
|
|
is morality!" Indeed, with the help of a religion which has humoured
|
|
and flattered the sublimest desires of the herding-animal, things have
|
|
reached such a point that we always find a more visible expression of
|
|
this morality even in political and social arrangements: the DEMOCRATIC
|
|
movement is the inheritance of the Christian movement. That its TEMPO,
|
|
however, is much too slow and sleepy for the more impatient ones, for
|
|
those who are sick and distracted by the herding-instinct, is indicated
|
|
by the increasingly furious howling, and always less disguised
|
|
teeth-gnashing of the anarchist dogs, who are now roving through the
|
|
highways of European culture. Apparently in opposition to the peacefully
|
|
industrious democrats and Revolution-ideologues, and still more so
|
|
to the awkward philosophasters and fraternity-visionaries who call
|
|
themselves Socialists and want a "free society," those are really at one
|
|
with them all in their thorough and instinctive hostility to every form
|
|
of society other than that of the AUTONOMOUS herd (to the extent even of
|
|
repudiating the notions "master" and "servant"--ni dieu ni maitre, says
|
|
a socialist formula); at one in their tenacious opposition to every
|
|
special claim, every special right and privilege (this means ultimately
|
|
opposition to EVERY right, for when all are equal, no one needs "rights"
|
|
any longer); at one in their distrust of punitive justice (as though it
|
|
were a violation of the weak, unfair to the NECESSARY consequences of
|
|
all former society); but equally at one in their religion of sympathy,
|
|
in their compassion for all that feels, lives, and suffers (down to the
|
|
very animals, up even to "God"--the extravagance of "sympathy for
|
|
God" belongs to a democratic age); altogether at one in the cry and
|
|
impatience of their sympathy, in their deadly hatred of suffering
|
|
generally, in their almost feminine incapacity for witnessing it or
|
|
ALLOWING it; at one in their involuntary beglooming and heart-softening,
|
|
under the spell of which Europe seems to be threatened with a new
|
|
Buddhism; at one in their belief in the morality of MUTUAL sympathy, as
|
|
though it were morality in itself, the climax, the ATTAINED climax of
|
|
mankind, the sole hope of the future, the consolation of the present,
|
|
the great discharge from all the obligations of the past; altogether at
|
|
one in their belief in the community as the DELIVERER, in the herd, and
|
|
therefore in "themselves."
|
|
|
|
203. We, who hold a different belief--we, who regard the democratic
|
|
movement, not only as a degenerating form of political organization, but
|
|
as equivalent to a degenerating, a waning type of man, as involving his
|
|
mediocrising and depreciation: where have WE to fix our hopes? In
|
|
NEW PHILOSOPHERS--there is no other alternative: in minds strong and
|
|
original enough to initiate opposite estimates of value, to transvalue
|
|
and invert "eternal valuations"; in forerunners, in men of the future,
|
|
who in the present shall fix the constraints and fasten the knots which
|
|
will compel millenniums to take NEW paths. To teach man the future
|
|
of humanity as his WILL, as depending on human will, and to make
|
|
preparation for vast hazardous enterprises and collective attempts in
|
|
rearing and educating, in order thereby to put an end to the frightful
|
|
rule of folly and chance which has hitherto gone by the name of
|
|
"history" (the folly of the "greatest number" is only its last
|
|
form)--for that purpose a new type of philosopher and commander will
|
|
some time or other be needed, at the very idea of which everything that
|
|
has existed in the way of occult, terrible, and benevolent beings might
|
|
look pale and dwarfed. The image of such leaders hovers before OUR
|
|
eyes:--is it lawful for me to say it aloud, ye free spirits? The
|
|
conditions which one would partly have to create and partly utilize for
|
|
their genesis; the presumptive methods and tests by virtue of which
|
|
a soul should grow up to such an elevation and power as to feel a
|
|
CONSTRAINT to these tasks; a transvaluation of values, under the new
|
|
pressure and hammer of which a conscience should be steeled and a heart
|
|
transformed into brass, so as to bear the weight of such responsibility;
|
|
and on the other hand the necessity for such leaders, the dreadful
|
|
danger that they might be lacking, or miscarry and degenerate:--these
|
|
are OUR real anxieties and glooms, ye know it well, ye free spirits!
|
|
these are the heavy distant thoughts and storms which sweep across the
|
|
heaven of OUR life. There are few pains so grievous as to have seen,
|
|
divined, or experienced how an exceptional man has missed his way and
|
|
deteriorated; but he who has the rare eye for the universal danger
|
|
of "man" himself DETERIORATING, he who like us has recognized the
|
|
extraordinary fortuitousness which has hitherto played its game in
|
|
respect to the future of mankind--a game in which neither the hand, nor
|
|
even a "finger of God" has participated!--he who divines the fate that
|
|
is hidden under the idiotic unwariness and blind confidence of
|
|
"modern ideas," and still more under the whole of Christo-European
|
|
morality--suffers from an anguish with which no other is to be compared.
|
|
He sees at a glance all that could still BE MADE OUT OF MAN through
|
|
a favourable accumulation and augmentation of human powers and
|
|
arrangements; he knows with all the knowledge of his conviction how
|
|
unexhausted man still is for the greatest possibilities, and how often
|
|
in the past the type man has stood in presence of mysterious decisions
|
|
and new paths:--he knows still better from his painfulest recollections
|
|
on what wretched obstacles promising developments of the highest rank
|
|
have hitherto usually gone to pieces, broken down, sunk, and become
|
|
contemptible. The UNIVERSAL DEGENERACY OF MANKIND to the level of
|
|
the "man of the future"--as idealized by the socialistic fools and
|
|
shallow-pates--this degeneracy and dwarfing of man to an absolutely
|
|
gregarious animal (or as they call it, to a man of "free society"),
|
|
this brutalizing of man into a pigmy with equal rights and claims, is
|
|
undoubtedly POSSIBLE! He who has thought out this possibility to its
|
|
ultimate conclusion knows ANOTHER loathing unknown to the rest of
|
|
mankind--and perhaps also a new MISSION!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI. WE SCHOLARS
|
|
|
|
|
|
204. At the risk that moralizing may also reveal itself here as that
|
|
which it has always been--namely, resolutely MONTRER SES PLAIES,
|
|
according to Balzac--I would venture to protest against an improper and
|
|
injurious alteration of rank, which quite unnoticed, and as if with the
|
|
best conscience, threatens nowadays to establish itself in the relations
|
|
of science and philosophy. I mean to say that one must have the right
|
|
out of one's own EXPERIENCE--experience, as it seems to me, always
|
|
implies unfortunate experience?--to treat of such an important question
|
|
of rank, so as not to speak of colour like the blind, or AGAINST science
|
|
like women and artists ("Ah! this dreadful science!" sigh their instinct
|
|
and their shame, "it always FINDS THINGS OUT!"). The declaration of
|
|
independence of the scientific man, his emancipation from philosophy,
|
|
is one of the subtler after-effects of democratic organization and
|
|
disorganization: the self-glorification and self-conceitedness of
|
|
the learned man is now everywhere in full bloom, and in its best
|
|
springtime--which does not mean to imply that in this case self-praise
|
|
smells sweet. Here also the instinct of the populace cries, "Freedom
|
|
from all masters!" and after science has, with the happiest results,
|
|
resisted theology, whose "hand-maid" it had been too long, it now
|
|
proposes in its wantonness and indiscretion to lay down laws for
|
|
philosophy, and in its turn to play the "master"--what am I saying!
|
|
to play the PHILOSOPHER on its own account. My memory--the memory of
|
|
a scientific man, if you please!--teems with the naivetes of insolence
|
|
which I have heard about philosophy and philosophers from young
|
|
naturalists and old physicians (not to mention the most cultured and
|
|
most conceited of all learned men, the philologists and schoolmasters,
|
|
who are both the one and the other by profession). On one occasion it
|
|
was the specialist and the Jack Horner who instinctively stood on the
|
|
defensive against all synthetic tasks and capabilities; at another time
|
|
it was the industrious worker who had got a scent of OTIUM and refined
|
|
luxuriousness in the internal economy of the philosopher, and felt
|
|
himself aggrieved and belittled thereby. On another occasion it was the
|
|
colour-blindness of the utilitarian, who sees nothing in philosophy but
|
|
a series of REFUTED systems, and an extravagant expenditure which "does
|
|
nobody any good". At another time the fear of disguised mysticism and of
|
|
the boundary-adjustment of knowledge became conspicuous, at another
|
|
time the disregard of individual philosophers, which had involuntarily
|
|
extended to disregard of philosophy generally. In fine, I found most
|
|
frequently, behind the proud disdain of philosophy in young scholars,
|
|
the evil after-effect of some particular philosopher, to whom on the
|
|
whole obedience had been foresworn, without, however, the spell of his
|
|
scornful estimates of other philosophers having been got rid of--the
|
|
result being a general ill-will to all philosophy. (Such seems to
|
|
me, for instance, the after-effect of Schopenhauer on the most modern
|
|
Germany: by his unintelligent rage against Hegel, he has succeeded in
|
|
severing the whole of the last generation of Germans from its connection
|
|
with German culture, which culture, all things considered, has been
|
|
an elevation and a divining refinement of the HISTORICAL SENSE, but
|
|
precisely at this point Schopenhauer himself was poor, irreceptive,
|
|
and un-German to the extent of ingeniousness.) On the whole, speaking
|
|
generally, it may just have been the humanness, all-too-humanness of the
|
|
modern philosophers themselves, in short, their contemptibleness, which
|
|
has injured most radically the reverence for philosophy and opened the
|
|
doors to the instinct of the populace. Let it but be acknowledged to
|
|
what an extent our modern world diverges from the whole style of the
|
|
world of Heraclitus, Plato, Empedocles, and whatever else all the royal
|
|
and magnificent anchorites of the spirit were called, and with what
|
|
justice an honest man of science MAY feel himself of a better family and
|
|
origin, in view of such representatives of philosophy, who, owing to
|
|
the fashion of the present day, are just as much aloft as they are down
|
|
below--in Germany, for instance, the two lions of Berlin, the anarchist
|
|
Eugen Duhring and the amalgamist Eduard von Hartmann. It is especially
|
|
the sight of those hotch-potch philosophers, who call themselves
|
|
"realists," or "positivists," which is calculated to implant a
|
|
dangerous distrust in the soul of a young and ambitious scholar those
|
|
philosophers, at the best, are themselves but scholars and specialists,
|
|
that is very evident! All of them are persons who have been vanquished
|
|
and BROUGHT BACK AGAIN under the dominion of science, who at one time
|
|
or another claimed more from themselves, without having a right to the
|
|
"more" and its responsibility--and who now, creditably, rancorously, and
|
|
vindictively, represent in word and deed, DISBELIEF in the master-task
|
|
and supremacy of philosophy After all, how could it be otherwise?
|
|
Science flourishes nowadays and has the good conscience clearly visible
|
|
on its countenance, while that to which the entire modern philosophy has
|
|
gradually sunk, the remnant of philosophy of the present day, excites
|
|
distrust and displeasure, if not scorn and pity Philosophy reduced to
|
|
a "theory of knowledge," no more in fact than a diffident science of
|
|
epochs and doctrine of forbearance a philosophy that never even
|
|
gets beyond the threshold, and rigorously DENIES itself the right
|
|
to enter--that is philosophy in its last throes, an end, an agony,
|
|
something that awakens pity. How could such a philosophy--RULE!
|
|
|
|
205. The dangers that beset the evolution of the philosopher are, in
|
|
fact, so manifold nowadays, that one might doubt whether this fruit
|
|
could still come to maturity. The extent and towering structure of the
|
|
sciences have increased enormously, and therewith also the probability
|
|
that the philosopher will grow tired even as a learner, or will attach
|
|
himself somewhere and "specialize" so that he will no longer attain to
|
|
his elevation, that is to say, to his superspection, his circumspection,
|
|
and his DESPECTION. Or he gets aloft too late, when the best of his
|
|
maturity and strength is past, or when he is impaired, coarsened, and
|
|
deteriorated, so that his view, his general estimate of things, is no
|
|
longer of much importance. It is perhaps just the refinement of his
|
|
intellectual conscience that makes him hesitate and linger on the
|
|
way, he dreads the temptation to become a dilettante, a millepede, a
|
|
milleantenna, he knows too well that as a discerner, one who has lost
|
|
his self-respect no longer commands, no longer LEADS, unless he should
|
|
aspire to become a great play-actor, a philosophical Cagliostro and
|
|
spiritual rat-catcher--in short, a misleader. This is in the last
|
|
instance a question of taste, if it has not really been a question of
|
|
conscience. To double once more the philosopher's difficulties, there is
|
|
also the fact that he demands from himself a verdict, a Yea or Nay, not
|
|
concerning science, but concerning life and the worth of life--he learns
|
|
unwillingly to believe that it is his right and even his duty to obtain
|
|
this verdict, and he has to seek his way to the right and the belief
|
|
only through the most extensive (perhaps disturbing and destroying)
|
|
experiences, often hesitating, doubting, and dumbfounded. In fact, the
|
|
philosopher has long been mistaken and confused by the multitude, either
|
|
with the scientific man and ideal scholar, or with the religiously
|
|
elevated, desensualized, desecularized visionary and God-intoxicated
|
|
man; and even yet when one hears anybody praised, because he lives
|
|
"wisely," or "as a philosopher," it hardly means anything more than
|
|
"prudently and apart." Wisdom: that seems to the populace to be a kind
|
|
of flight, a means and artifice for withdrawing successfully from a
|
|
bad game; but the GENUINE philosopher--does it not seem so to US,
|
|
my friends?--lives "unphilosophically" and "unwisely," above all,
|
|
IMPRUDENTLY, and feels the obligation and burden of a hundred attempts
|
|
and temptations of life--he risks HIMSELF constantly, he plays THIS bad
|
|
game.
|
|
|
|
206. In relation to the genius, that is to say, a being who either
|
|
ENGENDERS or PRODUCES--both words understood in their fullest sense--the
|
|
man of learning, the scientific average man, has always something of
|
|
the old maid about him; for, like her, he is not conversant with the two
|
|
principal functions of man. To both, of course, to the scholar and
|
|
to the old maid, one concedes respectability, as if by way of
|
|
indemnification--in these cases one emphasizes the respectability--and
|
|
yet, in the compulsion of this concession, one has the same admixture
|
|
of vexation. Let us examine more closely: what is the scientific man?
|
|
Firstly, a commonplace type of man, with commonplace virtues: that is
|
|
to say, a non-ruling, non-authoritative, and non-self-sufficient type
|
|
of man; he possesses industry, patient adaptableness to rank and file,
|
|
equability and moderation in capacity and requirement; he has the
|
|
instinct for people like himself, and for that which they require--for
|
|
instance: the portion of independence and green meadow without which
|
|
there is no rest from labour, the claim to honour and consideration
|
|
(which first and foremost presupposes recognition and recognisability),
|
|
the sunshine of a good name, the perpetual ratification of his value and
|
|
usefulness, with which the inward DISTRUST which lies at the bottom of
|
|
the heart of all dependent men and gregarious animals, has again and
|
|
again to be overcome. The learned man, as is appropriate, has also
|
|
maladies and faults of an ignoble kind: he is full of petty envy, and
|
|
has a lynx-eye for the weak points in those natures to whose elevations
|
|
he cannot attain. He is confiding, yet only as one who lets himself go,
|
|
but does not FLOW; and precisely before the man of the great current he
|
|
stands all the colder and more reserved--his eye is then like a smooth
|
|
and irresponsive lake, which is no longer moved by rapture or sympathy.
|
|
The worst and most dangerous thing of which a scholar is capable results
|
|
from the instinct of mediocrity of his type, from the Jesuitism of
|
|
mediocrity, which labours instinctively for the destruction of
|
|
the exceptional man, and endeavours to break--or still better, to
|
|
relax--every bent bow To relax, of course, with consideration, and
|
|
naturally with an indulgent hand--to RELAX with confiding sympathy
|
|
that is the real art of Jesuitism, which has always understood how to
|
|
introduce itself as the religion of sympathy.
|
|
|
|
207. However gratefully one may welcome the OBJECTIVE spirit--and
|
|
who has not been sick to death of all subjectivity and its confounded
|
|
IPSISIMOSITY!--in the end, however, one must learn caution even with
|
|
regard to one's gratitude, and put a stop to the exaggeration with
|
|
which the unselfing and depersonalizing of the spirit has recently been
|
|
celebrated, as if it were the goal in itself, as if it were salvation
|
|
and glorification--as is especially accustomed to happen in the
|
|
pessimist school, which has also in its turn good reasons for paying the
|
|
highest honours to "disinterested knowledge" The objective man, who no
|
|
longer curses and scolds like the pessimist, the IDEAL man of learning
|
|
in whom the scientific instinct blossoms forth fully after a thousand
|
|
complete and partial failures, is assuredly one of the most costly
|
|
instruments that exist, but his place is in the hand of one who is more
|
|
powerful He is only an instrument, we may say, he is a MIRROR--he is no
|
|
"purpose in himself" The objective man is in truth a mirror accustomed
|
|
to prostration before everything that wants to be known, with such
|
|
desires only as knowing or "reflecting" implies--he waits until
|
|
something comes, and then expands himself sensitively, so that even the
|
|
light footsteps and gliding-past of spiritual beings may not be lost on
|
|
his surface and film Whatever "personality" he still possesses seems to
|
|
him accidental, arbitrary, or still oftener, disturbing, so much has he
|
|
come to regard himself as the passage and reflection of outside forms
|
|
and events He calls up the recollection of "himself" with an effort,
|
|
and not infrequently wrongly, he readily confounds himself with other
|
|
persons, he makes mistakes with regard to his own needs, and here only
|
|
is he unrefined and negligent Perhaps he is troubled about the health,
|
|
or the pettiness and confined atmosphere of wife and friend, or the lack
|
|
of companions and society--indeed, he sets himself to reflect on his
|
|
suffering, but in vain! His thoughts already rove away to the MORE
|
|
GENERAL case, and tomorrow he knows as little as he knew yesterday how
|
|
to help himself He does not now take himself seriously and devote time
|
|
to himself he is serene, NOT from lack of trouble, but from lack
|
|
of capacity for grasping and dealing with HIS trouble The habitual
|
|
complaisance with respect to all objects and experiences, the radiant
|
|
and impartial hospitality with which he receives everything that
|
|
comes his way, his habit of inconsiderate good-nature, of dangerous
|
|
indifference as to Yea and Nay: alas! there are enough of cases in which
|
|
he has to atone for these virtues of his!--and as man generally, he
|
|
becomes far too easily the CAPUT MORTUUM of such virtues. Should one
|
|
wish love or hatred from him--I mean love and hatred as God, woman, and
|
|
animal understand them--he will do what he can, and furnish what he can.
|
|
But one must not be surprised if it should not be much--if he should
|
|
show himself just at this point to be false, fragile, questionable, and
|
|
deteriorated. His love is constrained, his hatred is artificial, and
|
|
rather UN TOUR DE FORCE, a slight ostentation and exaggeration. He is
|
|
only genuine so far as he can be objective; only in his serene totality
|
|
is he still "nature" and "natural." His mirroring and eternally
|
|
self-polishing soul no longer knows how to affirm, no longer how to
|
|
deny; he does not command; neither does he destroy. "JE NE MEPRISE
|
|
PRESQUE RIEN"--he says, with Leibniz: let us not overlook nor undervalue
|
|
the PRESQUE! Neither is he a model man; he does not go in advance of any
|
|
one, nor after, either; he places himself generally too far off to have
|
|
any reason for espousing the cause of either good or evil. If he has
|
|
been so long confounded with the PHILOSOPHER, with the Caesarian trainer
|
|
and dictator of civilization, he has had far too much honour, and what
|
|
is more essential in him has been overlooked--he is an instrument,
|
|
something of a slave, though certainly the sublimest sort of slave, but
|
|
nothing in himself--PRESQUE RIEN! The objective man is an instrument,
|
|
a costly, easily injured, easily tarnished measuring instrument and
|
|
mirroring apparatus, which is to be taken care of and respected; but he
|
|
is no goal, not outgoing nor upgoing, no complementary man in whom the
|
|
REST of existence justifies itself, no termination--and still less a
|
|
commencement, an engendering, or primary cause, nothing hardy, powerful,
|
|
self-centred, that wants to be master; but rather only a soft, inflated,
|
|
delicate, movable potter's-form, that must wait for some kind of content
|
|
and frame to "shape" itself thereto--for the most part a man without
|
|
frame and content, a "selfless" man. Consequently, also, nothing for
|
|
women, IN PARENTHESI.
|
|
|
|
208. When a philosopher nowadays makes known that he is not a skeptic--I
|
|
hope that has been gathered from the foregoing description of the
|
|
objective spirit?--people all hear it impatiently; they regard him on
|
|
that account with some apprehension, they would like to ask so many,
|
|
many questions... indeed among timid hearers, of whom there are now so
|
|
many, he is henceforth said to be dangerous. With his repudiation of
|
|
skepticism, it seems to them as if they heard some evil-threatening
|
|
sound in the distance, as if a new kind of explosive were being tried
|
|
somewhere, a dynamite of the spirit, perhaps a newly discovered Russian
|
|
NIHILINE, a pessimism BONAE VOLUNTATIS, that not only denies, means
|
|
denial, but--dreadful thought! PRACTISES denial. Against this kind of
|
|
"good-will"--a will to the veritable, actual negation of life--there is,
|
|
as is generally acknowledged nowadays, no better soporific and sedative
|
|
than skepticism, the mild, pleasing, lulling poppy of skepticism;
|
|
and Hamlet himself is now prescribed by the doctors of the day as an
|
|
antidote to the "spirit," and its underground noises. "Are not our ears
|
|
already full of bad sounds?" say the skeptics, as lovers of repose, and
|
|
almost as a kind of safety police; "this subterranean Nay is terrible!
|
|
Be still, ye pessimistic moles!" The skeptic, in effect, that delicate
|
|
creature, is far too easily frightened; his conscience is schooled so
|
|
as to start at every Nay, and even at that sharp, decided Yea, and feels
|
|
something like a bite thereby. Yea! and Nay!--they seem to him opposed
|
|
to morality; he loves, on the contrary, to make a festival to his virtue
|
|
by a noble aloofness, while perhaps he says with Montaigne: "What do I
|
|
know?" Or with Socrates: "I know that I know nothing." Or: "Here I do
|
|
not trust myself, no door is open to me." Or: "Even if the door were
|
|
open, why should I enter immediately?" Or: "What is the use of any hasty
|
|
hypotheses? It might quite well be in good taste to make no hypotheses
|
|
at all. Are you absolutely obliged to straighten at once what is
|
|
crooked? to stuff every hole with some kind of oakum? Is there not time
|
|
enough for that? Has not the time leisure? Oh, ye demons, can ye not
|
|
at all WAIT? The uncertain also has its charms, the Sphinx, too, is a
|
|
Circe, and Circe, too, was a philosopher."--Thus does a skeptic console
|
|
himself; and in truth he needs some consolation. For skepticism is
|
|
the most spiritual expression of a certain many-sided physiological
|
|
temperament, which in ordinary language is called nervous debility and
|
|
sickliness; it arises whenever races or classes which have been long
|
|
separated, decisively and suddenly blend with one another. In the new
|
|
generation, which has inherited as it were different standards and
|
|
valuations in its blood, everything is disquiet, derangement, doubt, and
|
|
tentativeness; the best powers operate restrictively, the very virtues
|
|
prevent each other growing and becoming strong, equilibrium, ballast,
|
|
and perpendicular stability are lacking in body and soul. That, however,
|
|
which is most diseased and degenerated in such nondescripts is the
|
|
WILL; they are no longer familiar with independence of decision, or
|
|
the courageous feeling of pleasure in willing--they are doubtful of the
|
|
"freedom of the will" even in their dreams Our present-day Europe,
|
|
the scene of a senseless, precipitate attempt at a radical blending of
|
|
classes, and CONSEQUENTLY of races, is therefore skeptical in all its
|
|
heights and depths, sometimes exhibiting the mobile skepticism which
|
|
springs impatiently and wantonly from branch to branch, sometimes with
|
|
gloomy aspect, like a cloud over-charged with interrogative signs--and
|
|
often sick unto death of its will! Paralysis of will, where do we not
|
|
find this cripple sitting nowadays! And yet how bedecked oftentimes' How
|
|
seductively ornamented! There are the finest gala dresses and disguises
|
|
for this disease, and that, for instance, most of what places itself
|
|
nowadays in the show-cases as "objectiveness," "the scientific spirit,"
|
|
"L'ART POUR L'ART," and "pure voluntary knowledge," is only decked-out
|
|
skepticism and paralysis of will--I am ready to answer for this
|
|
diagnosis of the European disease--The disease of the will is diffused
|
|
unequally over Europe, it is worst and most varied where civilization
|
|
has longest prevailed, it decreases according as "the barbarian"
|
|
still--or again--asserts his claims under the loose drapery of Western
|
|
culture It is therefore in the France of today, as can be readily
|
|
disclosed and comprehended, that the will is most infirm, and France,
|
|
which has always had a masterly aptitude for converting even the
|
|
portentous crises of its spirit into something charming and seductive,
|
|
now manifests emphatically its intellectual ascendancy over Europe,
|
|
by being the school and exhibition of all the charms of skepticism The
|
|
power to will and to persist, moreover, in a resolution, is already
|
|
somewhat stronger in Germany, and again in the North of Germany it
|
|
is stronger than in Central Germany, it is considerably stronger in
|
|
England, Spain, and Corsica, associated with phlegm in the former and
|
|
with hard skulls in the latter--not to mention Italy, which is too young
|
|
yet to know what it wants, and must first show whether it can exercise
|
|
will, but it is strongest and most surprising of all in that immense
|
|
middle empire where Europe as it were flows back to Asia--namely, in
|
|
Russia There the power to will has been long stored up and accumulated,
|
|
there the will--uncertain whether to be negative or affirmative--waits
|
|
threateningly to be discharged (to borrow their pet phrase from our
|
|
physicists) Perhaps not only Indian wars and complications in Asia would
|
|
be necessary to free Europe from its greatest danger, but also internal
|
|
subversion, the shattering of the empire into small states, and above
|
|
all the introduction of parliamentary imbecility, together with the
|
|
obligation of every one to read his newspaper at breakfast I do not
|
|
say this as one who desires it, in my heart I should rather prefer the
|
|
contrary--I mean such an increase in the threatening attitude of
|
|
Russia, that Europe would have to make up its mind to become equally
|
|
threatening--namely, TO ACQUIRE ONE WILL, by means of a new caste to
|
|
rule over the Continent, a persistent, dreadful will of its own, that
|
|
can set its aims thousands of years ahead; so that the long spun-out
|
|
comedy of its petty-statism, and its dynastic as well as its democratic
|
|
many-willed-ness, might finally be brought to a close. The time for
|
|
petty politics is past; the next century will bring the struggle for the
|
|
dominion of the world--the COMPULSION to great politics.
|
|
|
|
209. As to how far the new warlike age on which we Europeans have
|
|
evidently entered may perhaps favour the growth of another and stronger
|
|
kind of skepticism, I should like to express myself preliminarily
|
|
merely by a parable, which the lovers of German history will already
|
|
understand. That unscrupulous enthusiast for big, handsome grenadiers
|
|
(who, as King of Prussia, brought into being a military and skeptical
|
|
genius--and therewith, in reality, the new and now triumphantly emerged
|
|
type of German), the problematic, crazy father of Frederick the Great,
|
|
had on one point the very knack and lucky grasp of the genius: he knew
|
|
what was then lacking in Germany, the want of which was a hundred times
|
|
more alarming and serious than any lack of culture and social form--his
|
|
ill-will to the young Frederick resulted from the anxiety of a profound
|
|
instinct. MEN WERE LACKING; and he suspected, to his bitterest regret,
|
|
that his own son was not man enough. There, however, he deceived
|
|
himself; but who would not have deceived himself in his place? He saw
|
|
his son lapsed to atheism, to the ESPRIT, to the pleasant frivolity of
|
|
clever Frenchmen--he saw in the background the great bloodsucker, the
|
|
spider skepticism; he suspected the incurable wretchedness of a heart no
|
|
longer hard enough either for evil or good, and of a broken will that no
|
|
longer commands, is no longer ABLE to command. Meanwhile, however,
|
|
there grew up in his son that new kind of harder and more dangerous
|
|
skepticism--who knows TO WHAT EXTENT it was encouraged just by
|
|
his father's hatred and the icy melancholy of a will condemned to
|
|
solitude?--the skepticism of daring manliness, which is closely related
|
|
to the genius for war and conquest, and made its first entrance into
|
|
Germany in the person of the great Frederick. This skepticism despises
|
|
and nevertheless grasps; it undermines and takes possession; it does
|
|
not believe, but it does not thereby lose itself; it gives the spirit a
|
|
dangerous liberty, but it keeps strict guard over the heart. It is the
|
|
GERMAN form of skepticism, which, as a continued Fredericianism, risen
|
|
to the highest spirituality, has kept Europe for a considerable time
|
|
under the dominion of the German spirit and its critical and historical
|
|
distrust Owing to the insuperably strong and tough masculine character
|
|
of the great German philologists and historical critics (who,
|
|
rightly estimated, were also all of them artists of destruction
|
|
and dissolution), a NEW conception of the German spirit gradually
|
|
established itself--in spite of all Romanticism in music and
|
|
philosophy--in which the leaning towards masculine skepticism was
|
|
decidedly prominent whether, for instance, as fearlessness of gaze, as
|
|
courage and sternness of the dissecting hand, or as resolute will to
|
|
dangerous voyages of discovery, to spiritualized North Pole expeditions
|
|
under barren and dangerous skies. There may be good grounds for it when
|
|
warm-blooded and superficial humanitarians cross themselves before this
|
|
spirit, CET ESPRIT FATALISTE, IRONIQUE, MEPHISTOPHELIQUE, as Michelet
|
|
calls it, not without a shudder. But if one would realize how
|
|
characteristic is this fear of the "man" in the German spirit which
|
|
awakened Europe out of its "dogmatic slumber," let us call to mind the
|
|
former conception which had to be overcome by this new one--and that
|
|
it is not so very long ago that a masculinized woman could dare, with
|
|
unbridled presumption, to recommend the Germans to the interest of
|
|
Europe as gentle, good-hearted, weak-willed, and poetical fools.
|
|
Finally, let us only understand profoundly enough Napoleon's
|
|
astonishment when he saw Goethe it reveals what had been regarded for
|
|
centuries as the "German spirit" "VOILA UN HOMME!"--that was as much as
|
|
to say "But this is a MAN! And I only expected to see a German!"
|
|
|
|
210. Supposing, then, that in the picture of the philosophers of the
|
|
future, some trait suggests the question whether they must not perhaps
|
|
be skeptics in the last-mentioned sense, something in them would only be
|
|
designated thereby--and not they themselves. With equal right they might
|
|
call themselves critics, and assuredly they will be men of experiments.
|
|
By the name with which I ventured to baptize them, I have already
|
|
expressly emphasized their attempting and their love of attempting is
|
|
this because, as critics in body and soul, they will love to make use
|
|
of experiments in a new, and perhaps wider and more dangerous sense? In
|
|
their passion for knowledge, will they have to go further in daring and
|
|
painful attempts than the sensitive and pampered taste of a democratic
|
|
century can approve of?--There is no doubt these coming ones will be
|
|
least able to dispense with the serious and not unscrupulous qualities
|
|
which distinguish the critic from the skeptic I mean the certainty as to
|
|
standards of worth, the conscious employment of a unity of method,
|
|
the wary courage, the standing-alone, and the capacity for
|
|
self-responsibility, indeed, they will avow among themselves a DELIGHT
|
|
in denial and dissection, and a certain considerate cruelty, which knows
|
|
how to handle the knife surely and deftly, even when the heart bleeds
|
|
They will be STERNER (and perhaps not always towards themselves only)
|
|
than humane people may desire, they will not deal with the "truth" in
|
|
order that it may "please" them, or "elevate" and "inspire" them--they
|
|
will rather have little faith in "TRUTH" bringing with it such revels
|
|
for the feelings. They will smile, those rigorous spirits, when any one
|
|
says in their presence "That thought elevates me, why should it not be
|
|
true?" or "That work enchants me, why should it not be beautiful?" or
|
|
"That artist enlarges me, why should he not be great?" Perhaps they
|
|
will not only have a smile, but a genuine disgust for all that is thus
|
|
rapturous, idealistic, feminine, and hermaphroditic, and if any one
|
|
could look into their inmost hearts, he would not easily find therein
|
|
the intention to reconcile "Christian sentiments" with "antique taste,"
|
|
or even with "modern parliamentarism" (the kind of reconciliation
|
|
necessarily found even among philosophers in our very uncertain and
|
|
consequently very conciliatory century). Critical discipline, and every
|
|
habit that conduces to purity and rigour in intellectual matters,
|
|
will not only be demanded from themselves by these philosophers of
|
|
the future, they may even make a display thereof as their special
|
|
adornment--nevertheless they will not want to be called critics on that
|
|
account. It will seem to them no small indignity to philosophy to
|
|
have it decreed, as is so welcome nowadays, that "philosophy itself is
|
|
criticism and critical science--and nothing else whatever!" Though this
|
|
estimate of philosophy may enjoy the approval of all the Positivists of
|
|
France and Germany (and possibly it even flattered the heart and taste
|
|
of KANT: let us call to mind the titles of his principal works), our new
|
|
philosophers will say, notwithstanding, that critics are instruments of
|
|
the philosopher, and just on that account, as instruments, they are
|
|
far from being philosophers themselves! Even the great Chinaman of
|
|
Konigsberg was only a great critic.
|
|
|
|
211. I insist upon it that people finally cease confounding
|
|
philosophical workers, and in general scientific men, with
|
|
philosophers--that precisely here one should strictly give "each his
|
|
own," and not give those far too much, these far too little. It may
|
|
be necessary for the education of the real philosopher that he himself
|
|
should have once stood upon all those steps upon which his servants,
|
|
the scientific workers of philosophy, remain standing, and MUST remain
|
|
standing he himself must perhaps have been critic, and dogmatist,
|
|
and historian, and besides, poet, and collector, and traveler, and
|
|
riddle-reader, and moralist, and seer, and "free spirit," and almost
|
|
everything, in order to traverse the whole range of human values
|
|
and estimations, and that he may BE ABLE with a variety of eyes and
|
|
consciences to look from a height to any distance, from a depth up
|
|
to any height, from a nook into any expanse. But all these are only
|
|
preliminary conditions for his task; this task itself demands something
|
|
else--it requires him TO CREATE VALUES. The philosophical workers, after
|
|
the excellent pattern of Kant and Hegel, have to fix and formalize some
|
|
great existing body of valuations--that is to say, former DETERMINATIONS
|
|
OF VALUE, creations of value, which have become prevalent, and are for
|
|
a time called "truths"--whether in the domain of the LOGICAL, the
|
|
POLITICAL (moral), or the ARTISTIC. It is for these investigators to
|
|
make whatever has happened and been esteemed hitherto, conspicuous,
|
|
conceivable, intelligible, and manageable, to shorten everything long,
|
|
even "time" itself, and to SUBJUGATE the entire past: an immense and
|
|
wonderful task, in the carrying out of which all refined pride, all
|
|
tenacious will, can surely find satisfaction. THE REAL PHILOSOPHERS,
|
|
HOWEVER, ARE COMMANDERS AND LAW-GIVERS; they say: "Thus SHALL it be!"
|
|
They determine first the Whither and the Why of mankind, and thereby
|
|
set aside the previous labour of all philosophical workers, and all
|
|
subjugators of the past--they grasp at the future with a creative
|
|
hand, and whatever is and was, becomes for them thereby a means, an
|
|
instrument, and a hammer. Their "knowing" is CREATING, their creating
|
|
is a law-giving, their will to truth is--WILL TO POWER.--Are there at
|
|
present such philosophers? Have there ever been such philosophers? MUST
|
|
there not be such philosophers some day? ...
|
|
|
|
212. It is always more obvious to me that the philosopher, as a man
|
|
INDISPENSABLE for the morrow and the day after the morrow, has ever
|
|
found himself, and HAS BEEN OBLIGED to find himself, in contradiction
|
|
to the day in which he lives; his enemy has always been the ideal of his
|
|
day. Hitherto all those extraordinary furtherers of humanity whom one
|
|
calls philosophers--who rarely regarded themselves as lovers of wisdom,
|
|
but rather as disagreeable fools and dangerous interrogators--have found
|
|
their mission, their hard, involuntary, imperative mission (in the end,
|
|
however, the greatness of their mission), in being the bad conscience of
|
|
their age. In putting the vivisector's knife to the breast of the very
|
|
VIRTUES OF THEIR AGE, they have betrayed their own secret; it has been
|
|
for the sake of a NEW greatness of man, a new untrodden path to
|
|
his aggrandizement. They have always disclosed how much hypocrisy,
|
|
indolence, self-indulgence, and self-neglect, how much falsehood was
|
|
concealed under the most venerated types of contemporary morality, how
|
|
much virtue was OUTLIVED, they have always said "We must remove hence to
|
|
where YOU are least at home" In the face of a world of "modern ideas,"
|
|
which would like to confine every one in a corner, in a "specialty," a
|
|
philosopher, if there could be philosophers nowadays, would be compelled
|
|
to place the greatness of man, the conception of "greatness," precisely
|
|
in his comprehensiveness and multifariousness, in his all-roundness, he
|
|
would even determine worth and rank according to the amount and variety
|
|
of that which a man could bear and take upon himself, according to the
|
|
EXTENT to which a man could stretch his responsibility Nowadays the
|
|
taste and virtue of the age weaken and attenuate the will, nothing is
|
|
so adapted to the spirit of the age as weakness of will consequently, in
|
|
the ideal of the philosopher, strength of will, sternness, and capacity
|
|
for prolonged resolution, must specially be included in the conception
|
|
of "greatness", with as good a right as the opposite doctrine, with its
|
|
ideal of a silly, renouncing, humble, selfless humanity, was suited to
|
|
an opposite age--such as the sixteenth century, which suffered from its
|
|
accumulated energy of will, and from the wildest torrents and floods
|
|
of selfishness In the time of Socrates, among men only of worn-out
|
|
instincts, old conservative Athenians who let themselves go--"for the
|
|
sake of happiness," as they said, for the sake of pleasure, as their
|
|
conduct indicated--and who had continually on their lips the old pompous
|
|
words to which they had long forfeited the right by the life they led,
|
|
IRONY was perhaps necessary for greatness of soul, the wicked Socratic
|
|
assurance of the old physician and plebeian, who cut ruthlessly into his
|
|
own flesh, as into the flesh and heart of the "noble," with a look that
|
|
said plainly enough "Do not dissemble before me! here--we are equal!"
|
|
At present, on the contrary, when throughout Europe the herding-animal
|
|
alone attains to honours, and dispenses honours, when "equality of
|
|
right" can too readily be transformed into equality in wrong--I mean to
|
|
say into general war against everything rare, strange, and privileged,
|
|
against the higher man, the higher soul, the higher duty, the higher
|
|
responsibility, the creative plenipotence and lordliness--at present
|
|
it belongs to the conception of "greatness" to be noble, to wish to be
|
|
apart, to be capable of being different, to stand alone, to have to live
|
|
by personal initiative, and the philosopher will betray something of his
|
|
own ideal when he asserts "He shall be the greatest who can be the most
|
|
solitary, the most concealed, the most divergent, the man beyond good
|
|
and evil, the master of his virtues, and of super-abundance of will;
|
|
precisely this shall be called GREATNESS: as diversified as can be
|
|
entire, as ample as can be full." And to ask once more the question: Is
|
|
greatness POSSIBLE--nowadays?
|
|
|
|
213. It is difficult to learn what a philosopher is, because it cannot
|
|
be taught: one must "know" it by experience--or one should have the
|
|
pride NOT to know it. The fact that at present people all talk of things
|
|
of which they CANNOT have any experience, is true more especially
|
|
and unfortunately as concerns the philosopher and philosophical
|
|
matters:--the very few know them, are permitted to know them, and
|
|
all popular ideas about them are false. Thus, for instance, the truly
|
|
philosophical combination of a bold, exuberant spirituality which runs
|
|
at presto pace, and a dialectic rigour and necessity which makes no
|
|
false step, is unknown to most thinkers and scholars from their own
|
|
experience, and therefore, should any one speak of it in their
|
|
presence, it is incredible to them. They conceive of every necessity as
|
|
troublesome, as a painful compulsory obedience and state of constraint;
|
|
thinking itself is regarded by them as something slow and hesitating,
|
|
almost as a trouble, and often enough as "worthy of the SWEAT of the
|
|
noble"--but not at all as something easy and divine, closely related
|
|
to dancing and exuberance! "To think" and to take a matter "seriously,"
|
|
"arduously"--that is one and the same thing to them; such only has been
|
|
their "experience."--Artists have here perhaps a finer intuition; they
|
|
who know only too well that precisely when they no longer do anything
|
|
"arbitrarily," and everything of necessity, their feeling of freedom,
|
|
of subtlety, of power, of creatively fixing, disposing, and shaping,
|
|
reaches its climax--in short, that necessity and "freedom of will" are
|
|
then the same thing with them. There is, in fine, a gradation of rank
|
|
in psychical states, to which the gradation of rank in the problems
|
|
corresponds; and the highest problems repel ruthlessly every one who
|
|
ventures too near them, without being predestined for their solution
|
|
by the loftiness and power of his spirituality. Of what use is it for
|
|
nimble, everyday intellects, or clumsy, honest mechanics and empiricists
|
|
to press, in their plebeian ambition, close to such problems, and as
|
|
it were into this "holy of holies"--as so often happens nowadays! But
|
|
coarse feet must never tread upon such carpets: this is provided for in
|
|
the primary law of things; the doors remain closed to those intruders,
|
|
though they may dash and break their heads thereon. People have always
|
|
to be born to a high station, or, more definitely, they have to be BRED
|
|
for it: a person has only a right to philosophy--taking the word in
|
|
its higher significance--in virtue of his descent; the ancestors, the
|
|
"blood," decide here also. Many generations must have prepared the way
|
|
for the coming of the philosopher; each of his virtues must have been
|
|
separately acquired, nurtured, transmitted, and embodied; not only the
|
|
bold, easy, delicate course and current of his thoughts, but above all
|
|
the readiness for great responsibilities, the majesty of ruling glance
|
|
and contemning look, the feeling of separation from the multitude with
|
|
their duties and virtues, the kindly patronage and defense of whatever
|
|
is misunderstood and calumniated, be it God or devil, the delight and
|
|
practice of supreme justice, the art of commanding, the amplitude of
|
|
will, the lingering eye which rarely admires, rarely looks up, rarely
|
|
loves....
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII. OUR VIRTUES
|
|
|
|
|
|
214. OUR Virtues?--It is probable that we, too, have still our virtues,
|
|
although naturally they are not those sincere and massive virtues on
|
|
account of which we hold our grandfathers in esteem and also at a little
|
|
distance from us. We Europeans of the day after tomorrow, we firstlings
|
|
of the twentieth century--with all our dangerous curiosity, our
|
|
multifariousness and art of disguising, our mellow and seemingly
|
|
sweetened cruelty in sense and spirit--we shall presumably, IF we must
|
|
have virtues, have those only which have come to agreement with our most
|
|
secret and heartfelt inclinations, with our most ardent requirements:
|
|
well, then, let us look for them in our labyrinths!--where, as we know,
|
|
so many things lose themselves, so many things get quite lost! And is
|
|
there anything finer than to SEARCH for one's own virtues? Is it not
|
|
almost to BELIEVE in one's own virtues? But this "believing in one's
|
|
own virtues"--is it not practically the same as what was formerly called
|
|
one's "good conscience," that long, respectable pigtail of an idea,
|
|
which our grandfathers used to hang behind their heads, and often enough
|
|
also behind their understandings? It seems, therefore, that however
|
|
little we may imagine ourselves to be old-fashioned and grandfatherly
|
|
respectable in other respects, in one thing we are nevertheless the
|
|
worthy grandchildren of our grandfathers, we last Europeans with good
|
|
consciences: we also still wear their pigtail.--Ah! if you only knew how
|
|
soon, so very soon--it will be different!
|
|
|
|
215. As in the stellar firmament there are sometimes two suns which
|
|
determine the path of one planet, and in certain cases suns of different
|
|
colours shine around a single planet, now with red light, now with
|
|
green, and then simultaneously illumine and flood it with motley
|
|
colours: so we modern men, owing to the complicated mechanism of our
|
|
"firmament," are determined by DIFFERENT moralities; our actions shine
|
|
alternately in different colours, and are seldom unequivocal--and there
|
|
are often cases, also, in which our actions are MOTLEY-COLOURED.
|
|
|
|
216. To love one's enemies? I think that has been well learnt: it takes
|
|
place thousands of times at present on a large and small scale; indeed,
|
|
at times the higher and sublimer thing takes place:--we learn to DESPISE
|
|
when we love, and precisely when we love best; all of it, however,
|
|
unconsciously, without noise, without ostentation, with the shame and
|
|
secrecy of goodness, which forbids the utterance of the pompous word
|
|
and the formula of virtue. Morality as attitude--is opposed to our taste
|
|
nowadays. This is ALSO an advance, as it was an advance in our fathers
|
|
that religion as an attitude finally became opposed to their taste,
|
|
including the enmity and Voltairean bitterness against religion (and all
|
|
that formerly belonged to freethinker-pantomime). It is the music in our
|
|
conscience, the dance in our spirit, to which Puritan litanies, moral
|
|
sermons, and goody-goodness won't chime.
|
|
|
|
217. Let us be careful in dealing with those who attach great importance
|
|
to being credited with moral tact and subtlety in moral discernment!
|
|
They never forgive us if they have once made a mistake BEFORE us
|
|
(or even with REGARD to us)--they inevitably become our instinctive
|
|
calumniators and detractors, even when they still remain our
|
|
"friends."--Blessed are the forgetful: for they "get the better" even of
|
|
their blunders.
|
|
|
|
218. The psychologists of France--and where else are there still
|
|
psychologists nowadays?--have never yet exhausted their bitter and
|
|
manifold enjoyment of the betise bourgeoise, just as though... in
|
|
short, they betray something thereby. Flaubert, for instance, the honest
|
|
citizen of Rouen, neither saw, heard, nor tasted anything else in the
|
|
end; it was his mode of self-torment and refined cruelty. As this is
|
|
growing wearisome, I would now recommend for a change something else
|
|
for a pleasure--namely, the unconscious astuteness with which good, fat,
|
|
honest mediocrity always behaves towards loftier spirits and the tasks
|
|
they have to perform, the subtle, barbed, Jesuitical astuteness, which
|
|
is a thousand times subtler than the taste and understanding of the
|
|
middle-class in its best moments--subtler even than the understanding of
|
|
its victims:--a repeated proof that "instinct" is the most intelligent
|
|
of all kinds of intelligence which have hitherto been discovered. In
|
|
short, you psychologists, study the philosophy of the "rule" in its
|
|
struggle with the "exception": there you have a spectacle fit for Gods
|
|
and godlike malignity! Or, in plainer words, practise vivisection on
|
|
"good people," on the "homo bonae voluntatis," ON YOURSELVES!
|
|
|
|
219. The practice of judging and condemning morally, is the favourite
|
|
revenge of the intellectually shallow on those who are less so, it is
|
|
also a kind of indemnity for their being badly endowed by nature,
|
|
and finally, it is an opportunity for acquiring spirit and BECOMING
|
|
subtle--malice spiritualises. They are glad in their inmost heart that
|
|
there is a standard according to which those who are over-endowed with
|
|
intellectual goods and privileges, are equal to them, they contend for
|
|
the "equality of all before God," and almost NEED the belief in God for
|
|
this purpose. It is among them that the most powerful antagonists of
|
|
atheism are found. If any one were to say to them "A lofty spirituality
|
|
is beyond all comparison with the honesty and respectability of a merely
|
|
moral man"--it would make them furious, I shall take care not to say
|
|
so. I would rather flatter them with my theory that lofty spirituality
|
|
itself exists only as the ultimate product of moral qualities, that it
|
|
is a synthesis of all qualities attributed to the "merely moral" man,
|
|
after they have been acquired singly through long training and practice,
|
|
perhaps during a whole series of generations, that lofty spirituality
|
|
is precisely the spiritualising of justice, and the beneficent severity
|
|
which knows that it is authorized to maintain GRADATIONS OF RANK in the
|
|
world, even among things--and not only among men.
|
|
|
|
220. Now that the praise of the "disinterested person" is so popular
|
|
one must--probably not without some danger--get an idea of WHAT people
|
|
actually take an interest in, and what are the things generally which
|
|
fundamentally and profoundly concern ordinary men--including the
|
|
cultured, even the learned, and perhaps philosophers also, if
|
|
appearances do not deceive. The fact thereby becomes obvious that the
|
|
greater part of what interests and charms higher natures, and more
|
|
refined and fastidious tastes, seems absolutely "uninteresting" to
|
|
the average man--if, notwithstanding, he perceive devotion to these
|
|
interests, he calls it desinteresse, and wonders how it is possible to
|
|
act "disinterestedly." There have been philosophers who could give this
|
|
popular astonishment a seductive and mystical, other-worldly expression
|
|
(perhaps because they did not know the higher nature by experience?),
|
|
instead of stating the naked and candidly reasonable truth that
|
|
"disinterested" action is very interesting and "interested" action,
|
|
provided that... "And love?"--What! Even an action for love's sake
|
|
shall be "unegoistic"? But you fools--! "And the praise of the
|
|
self-sacrificer?"--But whoever has really offered sacrifice knows that
|
|
he wanted and obtained something for it--perhaps something from himself
|
|
for something from himself; that he relinquished here in order to have
|
|
more there, perhaps in general to be more, or even feel himself "more."
|
|
But this is a realm of questions and answers in which a more fastidious
|
|
spirit does not like to stay: for here truth has to stifle her yawns so
|
|
much when she is obliged to answer. And after all, truth is a woman; one
|
|
must not use force with her.
|
|
|
|
221. "It sometimes happens," said a moralistic pedant and
|
|
trifle-retailer, "that I honour and respect an unselfish man: not,
|
|
however, because he is unselfish, but because I think he has a right to
|
|
be useful to another man at his own expense. In short, the question
|
|
is always who HE is, and who THE OTHER is. For instance, in a person
|
|
created and destined for command, self-denial and modest retirement,
|
|
instead of being virtues, would be the waste of virtues: so it seems
|
|
to me. Every system of unegoistic morality which takes itself
|
|
unconditionally and appeals to every one, not only sins against good
|
|
taste, but is also an incentive to sins of omission, an ADDITIONAL
|
|
seduction under the mask of philanthropy--and precisely a seduction and
|
|
injury to the higher, rarer, and more privileged types of men. Moral
|
|
systems must be compelled first of all to bow before the GRADATIONS OF
|
|
RANK; their presumption must be driven home to their conscience--until
|
|
they thoroughly understand at last that it is IMMORAL to say that 'what
|
|
is right for one is proper for another.'"--So said my moralistic pedant
|
|
and bonhomme. Did he perhaps deserve to be laughed at when he thus
|
|
exhorted systems of morals to practise morality? But one should not be
|
|
too much in the right if one wishes to have the laughers on ONE'S OWN
|
|
side; a grain of wrong pertains even to good taste.
|
|
|
|
222. Wherever sympathy (fellow-suffering) is preached nowadays--and,
|
|
if I gather rightly, no other religion is any longer preached--let the
|
|
psychologist have his ears open through all the vanity, through all the
|
|
noise which is natural to these preachers (as to all preachers), he will
|
|
hear a hoarse, groaning, genuine note of SELF-CONTEMPT. It belongs
|
|
to the overshadowing and uglifying of Europe, which has been on
|
|
the increase for a century (the first symptoms of which are already
|
|
specified documentarily in a thoughtful letter of Galiani to Madame
|
|
d'Epinay)--IF IT IS NOT REALLY THE CAUSE THEREOF! The man of
|
|
"modern ideas," the conceited ape, is excessively dissatisfied with
|
|
himself--this is perfectly certain. He suffers, and his vanity wants him
|
|
only "to suffer with his fellows."
|
|
|
|
223. The hybrid European--a tolerably ugly plebeian, taken all in
|
|
all--absolutely requires a costume: he needs history as a storeroom
|
|
of costumes. To be sure, he notices that none of the costumes fit him
|
|
properly--he changes and changes. Let us look at the nineteenth century
|
|
with respect to these hasty preferences and changes in its masquerades
|
|
of style, and also with respect to its moments of desperation on account
|
|
of "nothing suiting" us. It is in vain to get ourselves up as romantic,
|
|
or classical, or Christian, or Florentine, or barocco, or "national,"
|
|
in moribus et artibus: it does not "clothe us"! But the "spirit,"
|
|
especially the "historical spirit," profits even by this desperation:
|
|
once and again a new sample of the past or of the foreign is tested,
|
|
put on, taken off, packed up, and above all studied--we are the first
|
|
studious age in puncto of "costumes," I mean as concerns morals,
|
|
articles of belief, artistic tastes, and religions; we are prepared as
|
|
no other age has ever been for a carnival in the grand style, for the
|
|
most spiritual festival--laughter and arrogance, for the transcendental
|
|
height of supreme folly and Aristophanic ridicule of the world. Perhaps
|
|
we are still discovering the domain of our invention just here, the
|
|
domain where even we can still be original, probably as parodists of
|
|
the world's history and as God's Merry-Andrews,--perhaps, though nothing
|
|
else of the present have a future, our laughter itself may have a
|
|
future!
|
|
|
|
224. The historical sense (or the capacity for divining quickly
|
|
the order of rank of the valuations according to which a people, a
|
|
community, or an individual has lived, the "divining instinct" for the
|
|
relationships of these valuations, for the relation of the authority
|
|
of the valuations to the authority of the operating forces),--this
|
|
historical sense, which we Europeans claim as our specialty, has come
|
|
to us in the train of the enchanting and mad semi-barbarity into which
|
|
Europe has been plunged by the democratic mingling of classes and
|
|
races--it is only the nineteenth century that has recognized this
|
|
faculty as its sixth sense. Owing to this mingling, the past of every
|
|
form and mode of life, and of cultures which were formerly closely
|
|
contiguous and superimposed on one another, flows forth into us "modern
|
|
souls"; our instincts now run back in all directions, we ourselves are
|
|
a kind of chaos: in the end, as we have said, the spirit perceives its
|
|
advantage therein. By means of our semi-barbarity in body and in desire,
|
|
we have secret access everywhere, such as a noble age never had; we have
|
|
access above all to the labyrinth of imperfect civilizations, and to
|
|
every form of semi-barbarity that has at any time existed on earth; and
|
|
in so far as the most considerable part of human civilization hitherto
|
|
has just been semi-barbarity, the "historical sense" implies almost the
|
|
sense and instinct for everything, the taste and tongue for everything:
|
|
whereby it immediately proves itself to be an IGNOBLE sense. For
|
|
instance, we enjoy Homer once more: it is perhaps our happiest
|
|
acquisition that we know how to appreciate Homer, whom men of
|
|
distinguished culture (as the French of the seventeenth century, like
|
|
Saint-Evremond, who reproached him for his ESPRIT VASTE, and even
|
|
Voltaire, the last echo of the century) cannot and could not so easily
|
|
appropriate--whom they scarcely permitted themselves to enjoy. The very
|
|
decided Yea and Nay of their palate, their promptly ready disgust, their
|
|
hesitating reluctance with regard to everything strange, their horror of
|
|
the bad taste even of lively curiosity, and in general the averseness of
|
|
every distinguished and self-sufficing culture to avow a new desire,
|
|
a dissatisfaction with its own condition, or an admiration of what is
|
|
strange: all this determines and disposes them unfavourably even towards
|
|
the best things of the world which are not their property or could not
|
|
become their prey--and no faculty is more unintelligible to such men
|
|
than just this historical sense, with its truckling, plebeian
|
|
curiosity. The case is not different with Shakespeare, that marvelous
|
|
Spanish-Moorish-Saxon synthesis of taste, over whom an ancient Athenian
|
|
of the circle of AEschylus would have half-killed himself with laughter
|
|
or irritation: but we--accept precisely this wild motleyness, this
|
|
medley of the most delicate, the most coarse, and the most artificial,
|
|
with a secret confidence and cordiality; we enjoy it as a refinement
|
|
of art reserved expressly for us, and allow ourselves to be as little
|
|
disturbed by the repulsive fumes and the proximity of the English
|
|
populace in which Shakespeare's art and taste lives, as perhaps on
|
|
the Chiaja of Naples, where, with all our senses awake, we go our way,
|
|
enchanted and voluntarily, in spite of the drain-odour of the lower
|
|
quarters of the town. That as men of the "historical sense" we have
|
|
our virtues, is not to be disputed:--we are unpretentious, unselfish,
|
|
modest, brave, habituated to self-control and self-renunciation, very
|
|
grateful, very patient, very complaisant--but with all this we are
|
|
perhaps not very "tasteful." Let us finally confess it, that what is
|
|
most difficult for us men of the "historical sense" to grasp, feel,
|
|
taste, and love, what finds us fundamentally prejudiced and almost
|
|
hostile, is precisely the perfection and ultimate maturity in every
|
|
culture and art, the essentially noble in works and men, their moment
|
|
of smooth sea and halcyon self-sufficiency, the goldenness and coldness
|
|
which all things show that have perfected themselves. Perhaps our great
|
|
virtue of the historical sense is in necessary contrast to GOOD taste,
|
|
at least to the very bad taste; and we can only evoke in ourselves
|
|
imperfectly, hesitatingly, and with compulsion the small, short, and
|
|
happy godsends and glorifications of human life as they shine here and
|
|
there: those moments and marvelous experiences when a great power has
|
|
voluntarily come to a halt before the boundless and infinite,--when a
|
|
super-abundance of refined delight has been enjoyed by a sudden checking
|
|
and petrifying, by standing firmly and planting oneself fixedly on still
|
|
trembling ground. PROPORTIONATENESS is strange to us, let us confess it
|
|
to ourselves; our itching is really the itching for the infinite, the
|
|
immeasurable. Like the rider on his forward panting horse, we let the
|
|
reins fall before the infinite, we modern men, we semi-barbarians--and
|
|
are only in OUR highest bliss when we--ARE IN MOST DANGER.
|
|
|
|
225. Whether it be hedonism, pessimism, utilitarianism, or eudaemonism,
|
|
all those modes of thinking which measure the worth of things according
|
|
to PLEASURE and PAIN, that is, according to accompanying circumstances
|
|
and secondary considerations, are plausible modes of thought and
|
|
naivetes, which every one conscious of CREATIVE powers and an artist's
|
|
conscience will look down upon with scorn, though not without sympathy.
|
|
Sympathy for you!--to be sure, that is not sympathy as you understand
|
|
it: it is not sympathy for social "distress," for "society" with its
|
|
sick and misfortuned, for the hereditarily vicious and defective who lie
|
|
on the ground around us; still less is it sympathy for the grumbling,
|
|
vexed, revolutionary slave-classes who strive after power--they call it
|
|
"freedom." OUR sympathy is a loftier and further-sighted sympathy:--we
|
|
see how MAN dwarfs himself, how YOU dwarf him! and there are moments
|
|
when we view YOUR sympathy with an indescribable anguish, when we resist
|
|
it,--when we regard your seriousness as more dangerous than any kind
|
|
of levity. You want, if possible--and there is not a more foolish "if
|
|
possible"--TO DO AWAY WITH SUFFERING; and we?--it really seems that WE
|
|
would rather have it increased and made worse than it has ever been!
|
|
Well-being, as you understand it--is certainly not a goal; it seems
|
|
to us an END; a condition which at once renders man ludicrous and
|
|
contemptible--and makes his destruction DESIRABLE! The discipline
|
|
of suffering, of GREAT suffering--know ye not that it is only THIS
|
|
discipline that has produced all the elevations of humanity hitherto?
|
|
The tension of soul in misfortune which communicates to it its energy,
|
|
its shuddering in view of rack and ruin, its inventiveness and bravery
|
|
in undergoing, enduring, interpreting, and exploiting misfortune, and
|
|
whatever depth, mystery, disguise, spirit, artifice, or greatness has
|
|
been bestowed upon the soul--has it not been bestowed through suffering,
|
|
through the discipline of great suffering? In man CREATURE and CREATOR
|
|
are united: in man there is not only matter, shred, excess, clay, mire,
|
|
folly, chaos; but there is also the creator, the sculptor, the hardness
|
|
of the hammer, the divinity of the spectator, and the seventh day--do
|
|
ye understand this contrast? And that YOUR sympathy for the "creature
|
|
in man" applies to that which has to be fashioned, bruised, forged,
|
|
stretched, roasted, annealed, refined--to that which must necessarily
|
|
SUFFER, and IS MEANT to suffer? And our sympathy--do ye not understand
|
|
what our REVERSE sympathy applies to, when it resists your sympathy as
|
|
the worst of all pampering and enervation?--So it is sympathy AGAINST
|
|
sympathy!--But to repeat it once more, there are higher problems than
|
|
the problems of pleasure and pain and sympathy; and all systems of
|
|
philosophy which deal only with these are naivetes.
|
|
|
|
226. WE IMMORALISTS.--This world with which WE are concerned, in which
|
|
we have to fear and love, this almost invisible, inaudible world of
|
|
delicate command and delicate obedience, a world of "almost" in every
|
|
respect, captious, insidious, sharp, and tender--yes, it is well
|
|
protected from clumsy spectators and familiar curiosity! We are
|
|
woven into a strong net and garment of duties, and CANNOT disengage
|
|
ourselves--precisely here, we are "men of duty," even we! Occasionally,
|
|
it is true, we dance in our "chains" and betwixt our "swords"; it
|
|
is none the less true that more often we gnash our teeth under the
|
|
circumstances, and are impatient at the secret hardship of our lot. But
|
|
do what we will, fools and appearances say of us: "These are men WITHOUT
|
|
duty,"--we have always fools and appearances against us!
|
|
|
|
227. Honesty, granting that it is the virtue of which we cannot rid
|
|
ourselves, we free spirits--well, we will labour at it with all our
|
|
perversity and love, and not tire of "perfecting" ourselves in OUR
|
|
virtue, which alone remains: may its glance some day overspread like
|
|
a gilded, blue, mocking twilight this aging civilization with its dull
|
|
gloomy seriousness! And if, nevertheless, our honesty should one day
|
|
grow weary, and sigh, and stretch its limbs, and find us too hard, and
|
|
would fain have it pleasanter, easier, and gentler, like an agreeable
|
|
vice, let us remain HARD, we latest Stoics, and let us send to its
|
|
help whatever devilry we have in us:--our disgust at the clumsy
|
|
and undefined, our "NITIMUR IN VETITUM," our love of adventure,
|
|
our sharpened and fastidious curiosity, our most subtle, disguised,
|
|
intellectual Will to Power and universal conquest, which rambles and
|
|
roves avidiously around all the realms of the future--let us go with all
|
|
our "devils" to the help of our "God"! It is probable that people will
|
|
misunderstand and mistake us on that account: what does it matter! They
|
|
will say: "Their 'honesty'--that is their devilry, and nothing else!"
|
|
What does it matter! And even if they were right--have not all Gods
|
|
hitherto been such sanctified, re-baptized devils? And after all, what
|
|
do we know of ourselves? And what the spirit that leads us wants TO BE
|
|
CALLED? (It is a question of names.) And how many spirits we harbour?
|
|
Our honesty, we free spirits--let us be careful lest it become our
|
|
vanity, our ornament and ostentation, our limitation, our stupidity!
|
|
Every virtue inclines to stupidity, every stupidity to virtue; "stupid
|
|
to the point of sanctity," they say in Russia,--let us be careful lest
|
|
out of pure honesty we eventually become saints and bores! Is not life
|
|
a hundred times too short for us--to bore ourselves? One would have to
|
|
believe in eternal life in order to...
|
|
|
|
228. I hope to be forgiven for discovering that all moral philosophy
|
|
hitherto has been tedious and has belonged to the soporific
|
|
appliances--and that "virtue," in my opinion, has been MORE injured
|
|
by the TEDIOUSNESS of its advocates than by anything else; at the same
|
|
time, however, I would not wish to overlook their general usefulness. It
|
|
is desirable that as few people as possible should reflect upon morals,
|
|
and consequently it is very desirable that morals should not some day
|
|
become interesting! But let us not be afraid! Things still remain today
|
|
as they have always been: I see no one in Europe who has (or DISCLOSES)
|
|
an idea of the fact that philosophizing concerning morals might be
|
|
conducted in a dangerous, captious, and ensnaring manner--that CALAMITY
|
|
might be involved therein. Observe, for example, the indefatigable,
|
|
inevitable English utilitarians: how ponderously and respectably they
|
|
stalk on, stalk along (a Homeric metaphor expresses it better) in the
|
|
footsteps of Bentham, just as he had already stalked in the footsteps of
|
|
the respectable Helvetius! (no, he was not a dangerous man, Helvetius,
|
|
CE SENATEUR POCOCURANTE, to use an expression of Galiani). No new
|
|
thought, nothing of the nature of a finer turning or better expression
|
|
of an old thought, not even a proper history of what has been previously
|
|
thought on the subject: an IMPOSSIBLE literature, taking it all in all,
|
|
unless one knows how to leaven it with some mischief. In effect, the
|
|
old English vice called CANT, which is MORAL TARTUFFISM, has insinuated
|
|
itself also into these moralists (whom one must certainly read with an
|
|
eye to their motives if one MUST read them), concealed this time under
|
|
the new form of the scientific spirit; moreover, there is not absent
|
|
from them a secret struggle with the pangs of conscience, from which a
|
|
race of former Puritans must naturally suffer, in all their scientific
|
|
tinkering with morals. (Is not a moralist the opposite of a Puritan?
|
|
That is to say, as a thinker who regards morality as questionable,
|
|
as worthy of interrogation, in short, as a problem? Is moralizing
|
|
not-immoral?) In the end, they all want English morality to be
|
|
recognized as authoritative, inasmuch as mankind, or the "general
|
|
utility," or "the happiness of the greatest number,"--no! the happiness
|
|
of ENGLAND, will be best served thereby. They would like, by all means,
|
|
to convince themselves that the striving after English happiness, I
|
|
mean after COMFORT and FASHION (and in the highest instance, a seat in
|
|
Parliament), is at the same time the true path of virtue; in fact, that
|
|
in so far as there has been virtue in the world hitherto, it has
|
|
just consisted in such striving. Not one of those ponderous,
|
|
conscience-stricken herding-animals (who undertake to advocate the
|
|
cause of egoism as conducive to the general welfare) wants to have
|
|
any knowledge or inkling of the facts that the "general welfare" is
|
|
no ideal, no goal, no notion that can be at all grasped, but is only a
|
|
nostrum,--that what is fair to one MAY NOT at all be fair to another,
|
|
that the requirement of one morality for all is really a detriment to
|
|
higher men, in short, that there is a DISTINCTION OF RANK between man
|
|
and man, and consequently between morality and morality. They are an
|
|
unassuming and fundamentally mediocre species of men, these utilitarian
|
|
Englishmen, and, as already remarked, in so far as they are tedious, one
|
|
cannot think highly enough of their utility. One ought even to ENCOURAGE
|
|
them, as has been partially attempted in the following rhymes:--
|
|
|
|
Hail, ye worthies, barrow-wheeling,
|
|
"Longer--better," aye revealing,
|
|
|
|
Stiffer aye in head and knee;
|
|
Unenraptured, never jesting,
|
|
Mediocre everlasting,
|
|
|
|
SANS GENIE ET SANS ESPRIT!
|
|
|
|
|
|
229. In these later ages, which may be proud of their humanity, there
|
|
still remains so much fear, so much SUPERSTITION of the fear, of the
|
|
"cruel wild beast," the mastering of which constitutes the very pride of
|
|
these humaner ages--that even obvious truths, as if by the agreement
|
|
of centuries, have long remained unuttered, because they have the
|
|
appearance of helping the finally slain wild beast back to life again.
|
|
I perhaps risk something when I allow such a truth to escape; let
|
|
others capture it again and give it so much "milk of pious sentiment"
|
|
[FOOTNOTE: An expression from Schiller's William Tell, Act IV, Scene
|
|
3.] to drink, that it will lie down quiet and forgotten, in its old
|
|
corner.--One ought to learn anew about cruelty, and open one's eyes;
|
|
one ought at last to learn impatience, in order that such immodest
|
|
gross errors--as, for instance, have been fostered by ancient and
|
|
modern philosophers with regard to tragedy--may no longer wander about
|
|
virtuously and boldly. Almost everything that we call "higher culture"
|
|
is based upon the spiritualising and intensifying of CRUELTY--this is
|
|
my thesis; the "wild beast" has not been slain at all, it lives, it
|
|
flourishes, it has only been--transfigured. That which constitutes the
|
|
painful delight of tragedy is cruelty; that which operates agreeably in
|
|
so-called tragic sympathy, and at the basis even of everything sublime,
|
|
up to the highest and most delicate thrills of metaphysics, obtains its
|
|
sweetness solely from the intermingled ingredient of cruelty. What the
|
|
Roman enjoys in the arena, the Christian in the ecstasies of the cross,
|
|
the Spaniard at the sight of the faggot and stake, or of the bull-fight,
|
|
the present-day Japanese who presses his way to the tragedy, the workman
|
|
of the Parisian suburbs who has a homesickness for bloody revolutions,
|
|
the Wagnerienne who, with unhinged will, "undergoes" the performance of
|
|
"Tristan and Isolde"--what all these enjoy, and strive with mysterious
|
|
ardour to drink in, is the philtre of the great Circe "cruelty." Here,
|
|
to be sure, we must put aside entirely the blundering psychology of
|
|
former times, which could only teach with regard to cruelty that
|
|
it originated at the sight of the suffering of OTHERS: there is an
|
|
abundant, super-abundant enjoyment even in one's own suffering, in
|
|
causing one's own suffering--and wherever man has allowed himself to be
|
|
persuaded to self-denial in the RELIGIOUS sense, or to self-mutilation,
|
|
as among the Phoenicians and ascetics, or in general, to
|
|
desensualisation, decarnalisation, and contrition, to Puritanical
|
|
repentance-spasms, to vivisection of conscience and to Pascal-like
|
|
SACRIFIZIA DELL' INTELLETO, he is secretly allured and impelled
|
|
forwards by his cruelty, by the dangerous thrill of cruelty TOWARDS
|
|
HIMSELF.--Finally, let us consider that even the seeker of knowledge
|
|
operates as an artist and glorifier of cruelty, in that he compels his
|
|
spirit to perceive AGAINST its own inclination, and often enough against
|
|
the wishes of his heart:--he forces it to say Nay, where he would like
|
|
to affirm, love, and adore; indeed, every instance of taking a thing
|
|
profoundly and fundamentally, is a violation, an intentional injuring
|
|
of the fundamental will of the spirit, which instinctively aims at
|
|
appearance and superficiality,--even in every desire for knowledge there
|
|
is a drop of cruelty.
|
|
|
|
230. Perhaps what I have said here about a "fundamental will of the
|
|
spirit" may not be understood without further details; I may be allowed
|
|
a word of explanation.--That imperious something which is popularly
|
|
called "the spirit," wishes to be master internally and externally,
|
|
and to feel itself master; it has the will of a multiplicity for a
|
|
simplicity, a binding, taming, imperious, and essentially ruling will.
|
|
Its requirements and capacities here, are the same as those assigned by
|
|
physiologists to everything that lives, grows, and multiplies. The power
|
|
of the spirit to appropriate foreign elements reveals itself in a strong
|
|
tendency to assimilate the new to the old, to simplify the manifold,
|
|
to overlook or repudiate the absolutely contradictory; just as it
|
|
arbitrarily re-underlines, makes prominent, and falsifies for itself
|
|
certain traits and lines in the foreign elements, in every portion of
|
|
the "outside world." Its object thereby is the incorporation of new
|
|
"experiences," the assortment of new things in the old arrangements--in
|
|
short, growth; or more properly, the FEELING of growth, the feeling of
|
|
increased power--is its object. This same will has at its service an
|
|
apparently opposed impulse of the spirit, a suddenly adopted preference
|
|
of ignorance, of arbitrary shutting out, a closing of windows, an inner
|
|
denial of this or that, a prohibition to approach, a sort of defensive
|
|
attitude against much that is knowable, a contentment with obscurity,
|
|
with the shutting-in horizon, an acceptance and approval of ignorance:
|
|
as that which is all necessary according to the degree of its
|
|
appropriating power, its "digestive power," to speak figuratively (and
|
|
in fact "the spirit" resembles a stomach more than anything else). Here
|
|
also belong an occasional propensity of the spirit to let itself be
|
|
deceived (perhaps with a waggish suspicion that it is NOT so and so,
|
|
but is only allowed to pass as such), a delight in uncertainty and
|
|
ambiguity, an exulting enjoyment of arbitrary, out-of-the-way narrowness
|
|
and mystery, of the too-near, of the foreground, of the magnified,
|
|
the diminished, the misshapen, the beautified--an enjoyment of the
|
|
arbitrariness of all these manifestations of power. Finally, in this
|
|
connection, there is the not unscrupulous readiness of the spirit to
|
|
deceive other spirits and dissemble before them--the constant pressing
|
|
and straining of a creating, shaping, changeable power: the spirit
|
|
enjoys therein its craftiness and its variety of disguises, it enjoys
|
|
also its feeling of security therein--it is precisely by its Protean
|
|
arts that it is best protected and concealed!--COUNTER TO this
|
|
propensity for appearance, for simplification, for a disguise, for a
|
|
cloak, in short, for an outside--for every outside is a cloak--there
|
|
operates the sublime tendency of the man of knowledge, which takes, and
|
|
INSISTS on taking things profoundly, variously, and thoroughly; as a
|
|
kind of cruelty of the intellectual conscience and taste, which every
|
|
courageous thinker will acknowledge in himself, provided, as it ought
|
|
to be, that he has sharpened and hardened his eye sufficiently long for
|
|
introspection, and is accustomed to severe discipline and even severe
|
|
words. He will say: "There is something cruel in the tendency of my
|
|
spirit": let the virtuous and amiable try to convince him that it is not
|
|
so! In fact, it would sound nicer, if, instead of our cruelty, perhaps
|
|
our "extravagant honesty" were talked about, whispered about, and
|
|
glorified--we free, VERY free spirits--and some day perhaps SUCH will
|
|
actually be our--posthumous glory! Meanwhile--for there is plenty of
|
|
time until then--we should be least inclined to deck ourselves out in
|
|
such florid and fringed moral verbiage; our whole former work has
|
|
just made us sick of this taste and its sprightly exuberance. They are
|
|
beautiful, glistening, jingling, festive words: honesty, love of truth,
|
|
love of wisdom, sacrifice for knowledge, heroism of the truthful--there
|
|
is something in them that makes one's heart swell with pride. But we
|
|
anchorites and marmots have long ago persuaded ourselves in all the
|
|
secrecy of an anchorite's conscience, that this worthy parade of
|
|
verbiage also belongs to the old false adornment, frippery, and
|
|
gold-dust of unconscious human vanity, and that even under such
|
|
flattering colour and repainting, the terrible original text HOMO NATURA
|
|
must again be recognized. In effect, to translate man back again into
|
|
nature; to master the many vain and visionary interpretations and
|
|
subordinate meanings which have hitherto been scratched and daubed over
|
|
the eternal original text, HOMO NATURA; to bring it about that man shall
|
|
henceforth stand before man as he now, hardened by the discipline
|
|
of science, stands before the OTHER forms of nature, with fearless
|
|
Oedipus-eyes, and stopped Ulysses-ears, deaf to the enticements of old
|
|
metaphysical bird-catchers, who have piped to him far too long: "Thou
|
|
art more! thou art higher! thou hast a different origin!"--this may be
|
|
a strange and foolish task, but that it is a TASK, who can deny! Why did
|
|
we choose it, this foolish task? Or, to put the question differently:
|
|
"Why knowledge at all?" Every one will ask us about this. And thus
|
|
pressed, we, who have asked ourselves the question a hundred times, have
|
|
not found and cannot find any better answer....
|
|
|
|
231. Learning alters us, it does what all nourishment does that does not
|
|
merely "conserve"--as the physiologist knows. But at the bottom of our
|
|
souls, quite "down below," there is certainly something unteachable,
|
|
a granite of spiritual fate, of predetermined decision and answer to
|
|
predetermined, chosen questions. In each cardinal problem there speaks
|
|
an unchangeable "I am this"; a thinker cannot learn anew about man and
|
|
woman, for instance, but can only learn fully--he can only follow to the
|
|
end what is "fixed" about them in himself. Occasionally we find certain
|
|
solutions of problems which make strong beliefs for us; perhaps they
|
|
are henceforth called "convictions." Later on--one sees in them only
|
|
footsteps to self-knowledge, guide-posts to the problem which we
|
|
ourselves ARE--or more correctly to the great stupidity which we embody,
|
|
our spiritual fate, the UNTEACHABLE in us, quite "down below."--In view
|
|
of this liberal compliment which I have just paid myself, permission
|
|
will perhaps be more readily allowed me to utter some truths about
|
|
"woman as she is," provided that it is known at the outset how literally
|
|
they are merely--MY truths.
|
|
|
|
232. Woman wishes to be independent, and therefore she begins to
|
|
enlighten men about "woman as she is"--THIS is one of the worst
|
|
developments of the general UGLIFYING of Europe. For what must these
|
|
clumsy attempts of feminine scientificality and self-exposure bring
|
|
to light! Woman has so much cause for shame; in woman there is so
|
|
much pedantry, superficiality, schoolmasterliness, petty presumption,
|
|
unbridledness, and indiscretion concealed--study only woman's behaviour
|
|
towards children!--which has really been best restrained and dominated
|
|
hitherto by the FEAR of man. Alas, if ever the "eternally tedious in
|
|
woman"--she has plenty of it!--is allowed to venture forth! if she
|
|
begins radically and on principle to unlearn her wisdom and art-of
|
|
charming, of playing, of frightening away sorrow, of alleviating and
|
|
taking easily; if she forgets her delicate aptitude for agreeable
|
|
desires! Female voices are already raised, which, by Saint Aristophanes!
|
|
make one afraid:--with medical explicitness it is stated in a
|
|
threatening manner what woman first and last REQUIRES from man. Is
|
|
it not in the very worst taste that woman thus sets herself up to be
|
|
scientific? Enlightenment hitherto has fortunately been men's affair,
|
|
men's gift--we remained therewith "among ourselves"; and in the end,
|
|
in view of all that women write about "woman," we may well have
|
|
considerable doubt as to whether woman really DESIRES enlightenment
|
|
about herself--and CAN desire it. If woman does not thereby seek a new
|
|
ORNAMENT for herself--I believe ornamentation belongs to the eternally
|
|
feminine?--why, then, she wishes to make herself feared: perhaps she
|
|
thereby wishes to get the mastery. But she does not want truth--what
|
|
does woman care for truth? From the very first, nothing is more foreign,
|
|
more repugnant, or more hostile to woman than truth--her great art is
|
|
falsehood, her chief concern is appearance and beauty. Let us confess
|
|
it, we men: we honour and love this very art and this very instinct in
|
|
woman: we who have the hard task, and for our recreation gladly seek the
|
|
company of beings under whose hands, glances, and delicate follies, our
|
|
seriousness, our gravity, and profundity appear almost like follies to
|
|
us. Finally, I ask the question: Did a woman herself ever acknowledge
|
|
profundity in a woman's mind, or justice in a woman's heart? And is it
|
|
not true that on the whole "woman" has hitherto been most despised by
|
|
woman herself, and not at all by us?--We men desire that woman should
|
|
not continue to compromise herself by enlightening us; just as it was
|
|
man's care and the consideration for woman, when the church decreed:
|
|
mulier taceat in ecclesia. It was to the benefit of woman when Napoleon
|
|
gave the too eloquent Madame de Stael to understand: mulier taceat in
|
|
politicis!--and in my opinion, he is a true friend of woman who calls
|
|
out to women today: mulier taceat de mulierel.
|
|
|
|
233. It betrays corruption of the instincts--apart from the fact that
|
|
it betrays bad taste--when a woman refers to Madame Roland, or Madame de
|
|
Stael, or Monsieur George Sand, as though something were proved thereby
|
|
in favour of "woman as she is." Among men, these are the three comical
|
|
women as they are--nothing more!--and just the best involuntary
|
|
counter-arguments against feminine emancipation and autonomy.
|
|
|
|
234. Stupidity in the kitchen; woman as cook; the terrible
|
|
thoughtlessness with which the feeding of the family and the master of
|
|
the house is managed! Woman does not understand what food means, and she
|
|
insists on being cook! If woman had been a thinking creature, she should
|
|
certainly, as cook for thousands of years, have discovered the most
|
|
important physiological facts, and should likewise have got possession
|
|
of the healing art! Through bad female cooks--through the entire lack
|
|
of reason in the kitchen--the development of mankind has been longest
|
|
retarded and most interfered with: even today matters are very little
|
|
better. A word to High School girls.
|
|
|
|
235. There are turns and casts of fancy, there are sentences, little
|
|
handfuls of words, in which a whole culture, a whole society suddenly
|
|
crystallises itself. Among these is the incidental remark of Madame de
|
|
Lambert to her son: "MON AMI, NE VOUS PERMETTEZ JAMAIS QUE DES FOLIES,
|
|
QUI VOUS FERONT GRAND PLAISIR"--the motherliest and wisest remark, by
|
|
the way, that was ever addressed to a son.
|
|
|
|
236. I have no doubt that every noble woman will oppose what Dante and
|
|
Goethe believed about woman--the former when he sang, "ELLA GUARDAVA
|
|
SUSO, ED IO IN LEI," and the latter when he interpreted it, "the
|
|
eternally feminine draws us ALOFT"; for THIS is just what she believes
|
|
of the eternally masculine.
|
|
|
|
237.
|
|
|
|
SEVEN APOPHTHEGMS FOR WOMEN
|
|
|
|
How the longest ennui flees, When a man comes to our knees!
|
|
|
|
Age, alas! and science staid, Furnish even weak virtue aid.
|
|
|
|
Sombre garb and silence meet: Dress for every dame--discreet.
|
|
|
|
Whom I thank when in my bliss? God!--and my good tailoress!
|
|
|
|
Young, a flower-decked cavern home; Old, a dragon thence doth roam.
|
|
|
|
Noble title, leg that's fine, Man as well: Oh, were HE mine!
|
|
|
|
Speech in brief and sense in mass--Slippery for the jenny-ass!
|
|
|
|
237A. Woman has hitherto been treated by men like birds, which, losing
|
|
their way, have come down among them from an elevation: as something
|
|
delicate, fragile, wild, strange, sweet, and animating--but as something
|
|
also which must be cooped up to prevent it flying away.
|
|
|
|
238. To be mistaken in the fundamental problem of "man and woman," to
|
|
deny here the profoundest antagonism and the necessity for an eternally
|
|
hostile tension, to dream here perhaps of equal rights, equal
|
|
training, equal claims and obligations: that is a TYPICAL sign of
|
|
shallow-mindedness; and a thinker who has proved himself shallow at
|
|
this dangerous spot--shallow in instinct!--may generally be regarded as
|
|
suspicious, nay more, as betrayed, as discovered; he will probably prove
|
|
too "short" for all fundamental questions of life, future as well as
|
|
present, and will be unable to descend into ANY of the depths. On the
|
|
other hand, a man who has depth of spirit as well as of desires, and
|
|
has also the depth of benevolence which is capable of severity and
|
|
harshness, and easily confounded with them, can only think of woman as
|
|
ORIENTALS do: he must conceive of her as a possession, as confinable
|
|
property, as a being predestined for service and accomplishing her
|
|
mission therein--he must take his stand in this matter upon the immense
|
|
rationality of Asia, upon the superiority of the instinct of Asia, as
|
|
the Greeks did formerly; those best heirs and scholars of Asia--who,
|
|
as is well known, with their INCREASING culture and amplitude of power,
|
|
from Homer to the time of Pericles, became gradually STRICTER towards
|
|
woman, in short, more Oriental. HOW necessary, HOW logical, even HOW
|
|
humanely desirable this was, let us consider for ourselves!
|
|
|
|
239. The weaker sex has in no previous age been treated with so
|
|
much respect by men as at present--this belongs to the tendency and
|
|
fundamental taste of democracy, in the same way as disrespectfulness to
|
|
old age--what wonder is it that abuse should be immediately made of
|
|
this respect? They want more, they learn to make claims, the tribute
|
|
of respect is at last felt to be well-nigh galling; rivalry for rights,
|
|
indeed actual strife itself, would be preferred: in a word, woman is
|
|
losing modesty. And let us immediately add that she is also losing
|
|
taste. She is unlearning to FEAR man: but the woman who "unlearns to
|
|
fear" sacrifices her most womanly instincts. That woman should venture
|
|
forward when the fear-inspiring quality in man--or more definitely,
|
|
the MAN in man--is no longer either desired or fully developed, is
|
|
reasonable enough and also intelligible enough; what is more difficult
|
|
to understand is that precisely thereby--woman deteriorates. This is
|
|
what is happening nowadays: let us not deceive ourselves about it!
|
|
Wherever the industrial spirit has triumphed over the military
|
|
and aristocratic spirit, woman strives for the economic and legal
|
|
independence of a clerk: "woman as clerkess" is inscribed on the portal
|
|
of the modern society which is in course of formation. While she
|
|
thus appropriates new rights, aspires to be "master," and inscribes
|
|
"progress" of woman on her flags and banners, the very opposite realises
|
|
itself with terrible obviousness: WOMAN RETROGRADES. Since the French
|
|
Revolution the influence of woman in Europe has DECLINED in proportion
|
|
as she has increased her rights and claims; and the "emancipation of
|
|
woman," insofar as it is desired and demanded by women themselves (and
|
|
not only by masculine shallow-pates), thus proves to be a remarkable
|
|
symptom of the increased weakening and deadening of the most womanly
|
|
instincts. There is STUPIDITY in this movement, an almost masculine
|
|
stupidity, of which a well-reared woman--who is always a sensible
|
|
woman--might be heartily ashamed. To lose the intuition as to the ground
|
|
upon which she can most surely achieve victory; to neglect exercise in
|
|
the use of her proper weapons; to let-herself-go before man, perhaps
|
|
even "to the book," where formerly she kept herself in control and in
|
|
refined, artful humility; to neutralize with her virtuous audacity man's
|
|
faith in a VEILED, fundamentally different ideal in woman, something
|
|
eternally, necessarily feminine; to emphatically and loquaciously
|
|
dissuade man from the idea that woman must be preserved, cared for,
|
|
protected, and indulged, like some delicate, strangely wild, and
|
|
often pleasant domestic animal; the clumsy and indignant collection of
|
|
everything of the nature of servitude and bondage which the position of
|
|
woman in the hitherto existing order of society has entailed and still
|
|
entails (as though slavery were a counter-argument, and not rather a
|
|
condition of every higher culture, of every elevation of culture):--what
|
|
does all this betoken, if not a disintegration of womanly instincts,
|
|
a defeminising? Certainly, there are enough of idiotic friends and
|
|
corrupters of woman among the learned asses of the masculine sex, who
|
|
advise woman to defeminize herself in this manner, and to imitate
|
|
all the stupidities from which "man" in Europe, European "manliness,"
|
|
suffers,--who would like to lower woman to "general culture," indeed
|
|
even to newspaper reading and meddling with politics. Here and there
|
|
they wish even to make women into free spirits and literary workers: as
|
|
though a woman without piety would not be something perfectly obnoxious
|
|
or ludicrous to a profound and godless man;--almost everywhere her
|
|
nerves are being ruined by the most morbid and dangerous kind of music
|
|
(our latest German music), and she is daily being made more hysterical
|
|
and more incapable of fulfilling her first and last function, that of
|
|
bearing robust children. They wish to "cultivate" her in general still
|
|
more, and intend, as they say, to make the "weaker sex" STRONG by
|
|
culture: as if history did not teach in the most emphatic manner that
|
|
the "cultivating" of mankind and his weakening--that is to say, the
|
|
weakening, dissipating, and languishing of his FORCE OF WILL--have
|
|
always kept pace with one another, and that the most powerful and
|
|
influential women in the world (and lastly, the mother of Napoleon)
|
|
had just to thank their force of will--and not their schoolmasters--for
|
|
their power and ascendancy over men. That which inspires respect
|
|
in woman, and often enough fear also, is her NATURE, which is more
|
|
"natural" than that of man, her genuine, carnivora-like, cunning
|
|
flexibility, her tiger-claws beneath the glove, her NAIVETE in egoism,
|
|
her untrainableness and innate wildness, the incomprehensibleness,
|
|
extent, and deviation of her desires and virtues. That which, in spite
|
|
of fear, excites one's sympathy for the dangerous and beautiful cat,
|
|
"woman," is that she seems more afflicted, more vulnerable, more
|
|
necessitous of love, and more condemned to disillusionment than any
|
|
other creature. Fear and sympathy it is with these feelings that man has
|
|
hitherto stood in the presence of woman, always with one foot already in
|
|
tragedy, which rends while it delights--What? And all that is now to
|
|
be at an end? And the DISENCHANTMENT of woman is in progress? The
|
|
tediousness of woman is slowly evolving? Oh Europe! Europe! We know
|
|
the horned animal which was always most attractive to thee, from which
|
|
danger is ever again threatening thee! Thy old fable might once more
|
|
become "history"--an immense stupidity might once again overmaster
|
|
thee and carry thee away! And no God concealed beneath it--no! only an
|
|
"idea," a "modern idea"!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII. PEOPLES AND COUNTRIES
|
|
|
|
|
|
240. I HEARD, once again for the first time, Richard Wagner's overture
|
|
to the Mastersinger: it is a piece of magnificent, gorgeous, heavy,
|
|
latter-day art, which has the pride to presuppose two centuries of music
|
|
as still living, in order that it may be understood:--it is an honour
|
|
to Germans that such a pride did not miscalculate! What flavours
|
|
and forces, what seasons and climes do we not find mingled in it! It
|
|
impresses us at one time as ancient, at another time as foreign, bitter,
|
|
and too modern, it is as arbitrary as it is pompously traditional, it
|
|
is not infrequently roguish, still oftener rough and coarse--it has fire
|
|
and courage, and at the same time the loose, dun-coloured skin of fruits
|
|
which ripen too late. It flows broad and full: and suddenly there is a
|
|
moment of inexplicable hesitation, like a gap that opens between cause
|
|
and effect, an oppression that makes us dream, almost a nightmare; but
|
|
already it broadens and widens anew, the old stream of delight--the most
|
|
manifold delight,--of old and new happiness; including ESPECIALLY
|
|
the joy of the artist in himself, which he refuses to conceal, his
|
|
astonished, happy cognizance of his mastery of the expedients here
|
|
employed, the new, newly acquired, imperfectly tested expedients of art
|
|
which he apparently betrays to us. All in all, however, no beauty, no
|
|
South, nothing of the delicate southern clearness of the sky, nothing
|
|
of grace, no dance, hardly a will to logic; a certain clumsiness even,
|
|
which is also emphasized, as though the artist wished to say to us: "It
|
|
is part of my intention"; a cumbersome drapery, something arbitrarily
|
|
barbaric and ceremonious, a flirring of learned and venerable conceits
|
|
and witticisms; something German in the best and worst sense of
|
|
the word, something in the German style, manifold, formless, and
|
|
inexhaustible; a certain German potency and super-plenitude of
|
|
soul, which is not afraid to hide itself under the RAFFINEMENTS of
|
|
decadence--which, perhaps, feels itself most at ease there; a real,
|
|
genuine token of the German soul, which is at the same time young and
|
|
aged, too ripe and yet still too rich in futurity. This kind of music
|
|
expresses best what I think of the Germans: they belong to the day
|
|
before yesterday and the day after tomorrow--THEY HAVE AS YET NO TODAY.
|
|
|
|
241. We "good Europeans," we also have hours when we allow ourselves a
|
|
warm-hearted patriotism, a plunge and relapse into old loves and narrow
|
|
views--I have just given an example of it--hours of national excitement,
|
|
of patriotic anguish, and all other sorts of old-fashioned floods of
|
|
sentiment. Duller spirits may perhaps only get done with what confines
|
|
its operations in us to hours and plays itself out in hours--in a
|
|
considerable time: some in half a year, others in half a lifetime,
|
|
according to the speed and strength with which they digest and "change
|
|
their material." Indeed, I could think of sluggish, hesitating races,
|
|
which even in our rapidly moving Europe, would require half a century
|
|
ere they could surmount such atavistic attacks of patriotism and
|
|
soil-attachment, and return once more to reason, that is to say, to
|
|
"good Europeanism." And while digressing on this possibility, I
|
|
happen to become an ear-witness of a conversation between two old
|
|
patriots--they were evidently both hard of hearing and consequently
|
|
spoke all the louder. "HE has as much, and knows as much, philosophy as
|
|
a peasant or a corps-student," said the one--"he is still innocent. But
|
|
what does that matter nowadays! It is the age of the masses: they lie on
|
|
their belly before everything that is massive. And so also in politicis.
|
|
A statesman who rears up for them a new Tower of Babel, some monstrosity
|
|
of empire and power, they call 'great'--what does it matter that we more
|
|
prudent and conservative ones do not meanwhile give up the old belief
|
|
that it is only the great thought that gives greatness to an action or
|
|
affair. Supposing a statesman were to bring his people into the position
|
|
of being obliged henceforth to practise 'high politics,' for which they
|
|
were by nature badly endowed and prepared, so that they would have
|
|
to sacrifice their old and reliable virtues, out of love to a new and
|
|
doubtful mediocrity;--supposing a statesman were to condemn his people
|
|
generally to 'practise politics,' when they have hitherto had something
|
|
better to do and think about, and when in the depths of their souls
|
|
they have been unable to free themselves from a prudent loathing of
|
|
the restlessness, emptiness, and noisy wranglings of the essentially
|
|
politics-practising nations;--supposing such a statesman were to
|
|
stimulate the slumbering passions and avidities of his people, were to
|
|
make a stigma out of their former diffidence and delight in aloofness,
|
|
an offence out of their exoticism and hidden permanency, were to
|
|
depreciate their most radical proclivities, subvert their consciences,
|
|
make their minds narrow, and their tastes 'national'--what! a statesman
|
|
who should do all this, which his people would have to do penance for
|
|
throughout their whole future, if they had a future, such a statesman
|
|
would be GREAT, would he?"--"Undoubtedly!" replied the other old patriot
|
|
vehemently, "otherwise he COULD NOT have done it! It was mad perhaps to
|
|
wish such a thing! But perhaps everything great has been just as mad
|
|
at its commencement!"--"Misuse of words!" cried his interlocutor,
|
|
contradictorily--"strong! strong! Strong and mad! NOT great!"--The old
|
|
men had obviously become heated as they thus shouted their "truths" in
|
|
each other's faces, but I, in my happiness and apartness, considered how
|
|
soon a stronger one may become master of the strong, and also that
|
|
there is a compensation for the intellectual superficialising of a
|
|
nation--namely, in the deepening of another.
|
|
|
|
242. Whether we call it "civilization," or "humanising," or "progress,"
|
|
which now distinguishes the European, whether we call it simply, without
|
|
praise or blame, by the political formula the DEMOCRATIC movement in
|
|
Europe--behind all the moral and political foregrounds pointed to by
|
|
such formulas, an immense PHYSIOLOGICAL PROCESS goes on, which is ever
|
|
extending the process of the assimilation of Europeans, their
|
|
increasing detachment from the conditions under which, climatically and
|
|
hereditarily, united races originate, their increasing independence of
|
|
every definite milieu, that for centuries would fain inscribe itself
|
|
with equal demands on soul and body,--that is to say, the slow emergence
|
|
of an essentially SUPER-NATIONAL and nomadic species of man, who
|
|
possesses, physiologically speaking, a maximum of the art and power
|
|
of adaptation as his typical distinction. This process of the EVOLVING
|
|
EUROPEAN, which can be retarded in its TEMPO by great relapses, but
|
|
will perhaps just gain and grow thereby in vehemence and depth--the
|
|
still-raging storm and stress of "national sentiment" pertains to it,
|
|
and also the anarchism which is appearing at present--this process
|
|
will probably arrive at results on which its naive propagators and
|
|
panegyrists, the apostles of "modern ideas," would least care to reckon.
|
|
The same new conditions under which on an average a levelling and
|
|
mediocrising of man will take place--a useful, industrious, variously
|
|
serviceable, and clever gregarious man--are in the highest degree
|
|
suitable to give rise to exceptional men of the most dangerous and
|
|
attractive qualities. For, while the capacity for adaptation, which is
|
|
every day trying changing conditions, and begins a new work with every
|
|
generation, almost with every decade, makes the POWERFULNESS of the type
|
|
impossible; while the collective impression of such future Europeans
|
|
will probably be that of numerous, talkative, weak-willed, and very
|
|
handy workmen who REQUIRE a master, a commander, as they require their
|
|
daily bread; while, therefore, the democratising of Europe will tend to
|
|
the production of a type prepared for SLAVERY in the most subtle
|
|
sense of the term: the STRONG man will necessarily in individual and
|
|
exceptional cases, become stronger and richer than he has perhaps ever
|
|
been before--owing to the unprejudicedness of his schooling, owing to
|
|
the immense variety of practice, art, and disguise. I meant to say
|
|
that the democratising of Europe is at the same time an involuntary
|
|
arrangement for the rearing of TYRANTS--taking the word in all its
|
|
meanings, even in its most spiritual sense.
|
|
|
|
243. I hear with pleasure that our sun is moving rapidly towards the
|
|
constellation Hercules: and I hope that the men on this earth will do
|
|
like the sun. And we foremost, we good Europeans!
|
|
|
|
244. There was a time when it was customary to call Germans "deep"
|
|
by way of distinction; but now that the most successful type of new
|
|
Germanism is covetous of quite other honours, and perhaps misses
|
|
"smartness" in all that has depth, it is almost opportune and patriotic
|
|
to doubt whether we did not formerly deceive ourselves with that
|
|
commendation: in short, whether German depth is not at bottom something
|
|
different and worse--and something from which, thank God, we are on the
|
|
point of successfully ridding ourselves. Let us try, then, to relearn
|
|
with regard to German depth; the only thing necessary for the purpose is
|
|
a little vivisection of the German soul.--The German soul is above all
|
|
manifold, varied in its source, aggregated and super-imposed, rather
|
|
than actually built: this is owing to its origin. A German who would
|
|
embolden himself to assert: "Two souls, alas, dwell in my breast," would
|
|
make a bad guess at the truth, or, more correctly, he would come far
|
|
short of the truth about the number of souls. As a people made up of
|
|
the most extraordinary mixing and mingling of races, perhaps even with a
|
|
preponderance of the pre-Aryan element as the "people of the centre" in
|
|
every sense of the term, the Germans are more intangible, more ample,
|
|
more contradictory, more unknown, more incalculable, more surprising,
|
|
and even more terrifying than other peoples are to themselves:--they
|
|
escape DEFINITION, and are thereby alone the despair of the French. It
|
|
IS characteristic of the Germans that the question: "What is German?"
|
|
never dies out among them. Kotzebue certainly knew his Germans well
|
|
enough: "We are known," they cried jubilantly to him--but Sand also
|
|
thought he knew them. Jean Paul knew what he was doing when he declared
|
|
himself incensed at Fichte's lying but patriotic flatteries and
|
|
exaggerations,--but it is probable that Goethe thought differently about
|
|
Germans from Jean Paul, even though he acknowledged him to be right with
|
|
regard to Fichte. It is a question what Goethe really thought about the
|
|
Germans?--But about many things around him he never spoke explicitly,
|
|
and all his life he knew how to keep an astute silence--probably he
|
|
had good reason for it. It is certain that it was not the "Wars of
|
|
Independence" that made him look up more joyfully, any more than it was
|
|
the French Revolution,--the event on account of which he RECONSTRUCTED
|
|
his "Faust," and indeed the whole problem of "man," was the appearance
|
|
of Napoleon. There are words of Goethe in which he condemns with
|
|
impatient severity, as from a foreign land, that which Germans take a
|
|
pride in, he once defined the famous German turn of mind as "Indulgence
|
|
towards its own and others' weaknesses." Was he wrong? it is
|
|
characteristic of Germans that one is seldom entirely wrong about them.
|
|
The German soul has passages and galleries in it, there are caves,
|
|
hiding-places, and dungeons therein, its disorder has much of the charm
|
|
of the mysterious, the German is well acquainted with the bypaths to
|
|
chaos. And as everything loves its symbol, so the German loves the
|
|
clouds and all that is obscure, evolving, crepuscular, damp, and
|
|
shrouded, it seems to him that everything uncertain, undeveloped,
|
|
self-displacing, and growing is "deep". The German himself does not
|
|
EXIST, he is BECOMING, he is "developing himself". "Development" is
|
|
therefore the essentially German discovery and hit in the great domain
|
|
of philosophical formulas,--a ruling idea, which, together with German
|
|
beer and German music, is labouring to Germanise all Europe. Foreigners
|
|
are astonished and attracted by the riddles which the conflicting nature
|
|
at the basis of the German soul propounds to them (riddles which
|
|
Hegel systematised and Richard Wagner has in the end set to music).
|
|
"Good-natured and spiteful"--such a juxtaposition, preposterous in the
|
|
case of every other people, is unfortunately only too often justified
|
|
in Germany one has only to live for a while among Swabians to know this!
|
|
The clumsiness of the German scholar and his social distastefulness
|
|
agree alarmingly well with his physical rope-dancing and nimble
|
|
boldness, of which all the Gods have learnt to be afraid. If any one
|
|
wishes to see the "German soul" demonstrated ad oculos, let him
|
|
only look at German taste, at German arts and manners what boorish
|
|
indifference to "taste"! How the noblest and the commonest stand there
|
|
in juxtaposition! How disorderly and how rich is the whole constitution
|
|
of this soul! The German DRAGS at his soul, he drags at everything he
|
|
experiences. He digests his events badly; he never gets "done"
|
|
with them; and German depth is often only a difficult, hesitating
|
|
"digestion." And just as all chronic invalids, all dyspeptics like what
|
|
is convenient, so the German loves "frankness" and "honesty"; it is
|
|
so CONVENIENT to be frank and honest!--This confidingness, this
|
|
complaisance, this showing-the-cards of German HONESTY, is probably the
|
|
most dangerous and most successful disguise which the German is up to
|
|
nowadays: it is his proper Mephistophelean art; with this he can "still
|
|
achieve much"! The German lets himself go, and thereby gazes with
|
|
faithful, blue, empty German eyes--and other countries immediately
|
|
confound him with his dressing-gown!--I meant to say that, let "German
|
|
depth" be what it will--among ourselves alone we perhaps take the
|
|
liberty to laugh at it--we shall do well to continue henceforth to
|
|
honour its appearance and good name, and not barter away too cheaply our
|
|
old reputation as a people of depth for Prussian "smartness," and
|
|
Berlin wit and sand. It is wise for a people to pose, and LET itself
|
|
be regarded, as profound, clumsy, good-natured, honest, and foolish: it
|
|
might even be--profound to do so! Finally, we should do honour to
|
|
our name--we are not called the "TIUSCHE VOLK" (deceptive people) for
|
|
nothing....
|
|
|
|
245. The "good old" time is past, it sang itself out in Mozart--how
|
|
happy are WE that his ROCOCO still speaks to us, that his "good
|
|
company," his tender enthusiasm, his childish delight in the Chinese and
|
|
its flourishes, his courtesy of heart, his longing for the elegant, the
|
|
amorous, the tripping, the tearful, and his belief in the South, can
|
|
still appeal to SOMETHING LEFT in us! Ah, some time or other it will be
|
|
over with it!--but who can doubt that it will be over still sooner with
|
|
the intelligence and taste for Beethoven! For he was only the last echo
|
|
of a break and transition in style, and NOT, like Mozart, the last echo
|
|
of a great European taste which had existed for centuries. Beethoven
|
|
is the intermediate event between an old mellow soul that is constantly
|
|
breaking down, and a future over-young soul that is always COMING;
|
|
there is spread over his music the twilight of eternal loss and eternal
|
|
extravagant hope,--the same light in which Europe was bathed when it
|
|
dreamed with Rousseau, when it danced round the Tree of Liberty of the
|
|
Revolution, and finally almost fell down in adoration before Napoleon.
|
|
But how rapidly does THIS very sentiment now pale, how difficult
|
|
nowadays is even the APPREHENSION of this sentiment, how strangely does
|
|
the language of Rousseau, Schiller, Shelley, and Byron sound to our ear,
|
|
in whom COLLECTIVELY the same fate of Europe was able to SPEAK, which
|
|
knew how to SING in Beethoven!--Whatever German music came afterwards,
|
|
belongs to Romanticism, that is to say, to a movement which,
|
|
historically considered, was still shorter, more fleeting, and more
|
|
superficial than that great interlude, the transition of Europe from
|
|
Rousseau to Napoleon, and to the rise of democracy. Weber--but what do
|
|
WE care nowadays for "Freischutz" and "Oberon"! Or Marschner's "Hans
|
|
Heiling" and "Vampyre"! Or even Wagner's "Tannhauser"! That is extinct,
|
|
although not yet forgotten music. This whole music of Romanticism,
|
|
besides, was not noble enough, was not musical enough, to maintain its
|
|
position anywhere but in the theatre and before the masses; from the
|
|
beginning it was second-rate music, which was little thought of by
|
|
genuine musicians. It was different with Felix Mendelssohn, that halcyon
|
|
master, who, on account of his lighter, purer, happier soul, quickly
|
|
acquired admiration, and was equally quickly forgotten: as the beautiful
|
|
EPISODE of German music. But with regard to Robert Schumann, who took
|
|
things seriously, and has been taken seriously from the first--he
|
|
was the last that founded a school,--do we not now regard it as a
|
|
satisfaction, a relief, a deliverance, that this very Romanticism
|
|
of Schumann's has been surmounted? Schumann, fleeing into the "Saxon
|
|
Switzerland" of his soul, with a half Werther-like, half Jean-Paul-like
|
|
nature (assuredly not like Beethoven! assuredly not like Byron!)--his
|
|
MANFRED music is a mistake and a misunderstanding to the extent of
|
|
injustice; Schumann, with his taste, which was fundamentally a PETTY
|
|
taste (that is to say, a dangerous propensity--doubly dangerous among
|
|
Germans--for quiet lyricism and intoxication of the feelings), going
|
|
constantly apart, timidly withdrawing and retiring, a noble weakling who
|
|
revelled in nothing but anonymous joy and sorrow, from the beginning
|
|
a sort of girl and NOLI ME TANGERE--this Schumann was already merely a
|
|
GERMAN event in music, and no longer a European event, as Beethoven had
|
|
been, as in a still greater degree Mozart had been; with Schumann German
|
|
music was threatened with its greatest danger, that of LOSING THE VOICE
|
|
FOR THE SOUL OF EUROPE and sinking into a merely national affair.
|
|
|
|
246. What a torture are books written in German to a reader who has a
|
|
THIRD ear! How indignantly he stands beside the slowly turning swamp
|
|
of sounds without tune and rhythms without dance, which Germans call
|
|
a "book"! And even the German who READS books! How lazily, how
|
|
reluctantly, how badly he reads! How many Germans know, and consider it
|
|
obligatory to know, that there is ART in every good sentence--art which
|
|
must be divined, if the sentence is to be understood! If there is a
|
|
misunderstanding about its TEMPO, for instance, the sentence itself
|
|
is misunderstood! That one must not be doubtful about the
|
|
rhythm-determining syllables, that one should feel the breaking of the
|
|
too-rigid symmetry as intentional and as a charm, that one should lend a
|
|
fine and patient ear to every STACCATO and every RUBATO, that one should
|
|
divine the sense in the sequence of the vowels and diphthongs, and how
|
|
delicately and richly they can be tinted and retinted in the order of
|
|
their arrangement--who among book-reading Germans is complaisant enough
|
|
to recognize such duties and requirements, and to listen to so much art
|
|
and intention in language? After all, one just "has no ear for it";
|
|
and so the most marked contrasts of style are not heard, and the most
|
|
delicate artistry is as it were SQUANDERED on the deaf.--These were my
|
|
thoughts when I noticed how clumsily and unintuitively two masters in
|
|
the art of prose-writing have been confounded: one, whose words drop
|
|
down hesitatingly and coldly, as from the roof of a damp cave--he counts
|
|
on their dull sound and echo; and another who manipulates his language
|
|
like a flexible sword, and from his arm down into his toes feels the
|
|
dangerous bliss of the quivering, over-sharp blade, which wishes to
|
|
bite, hiss, and cut.
|
|
|
|
247. How little the German style has to do with harmony and with the
|
|
ear, is shown by the fact that precisely our good musicians themselves
|
|
write badly. The German does not read aloud, he does not read for the
|
|
ear, but only with his eyes; he has put his ears away in the drawer for
|
|
the time. In antiquity when a man read--which was seldom enough--he read
|
|
something to himself, and in a loud voice; they were surprised when
|
|
any one read silently, and sought secretly the reason of it. In a
|
|
loud voice: that is to say, with all the swellings, inflections, and
|
|
variations of key and changes of TEMPO, in which the ancient PUBLIC
|
|
world took delight. The laws of the written style were then the same
|
|
as those of the spoken style; and these laws depended partly on the
|
|
surprising development and refined requirements of the ear and larynx;
|
|
partly on the strength, endurance, and power of the ancient lungs. In
|
|
the ancient sense, a period is above all a physiological whole, inasmuch
|
|
as it is comprised in one breath. Such periods as occur in Demosthenes
|
|
and Cicero, swelling twice and sinking twice, and all in one breath,
|
|
were pleasures to the men of ANTIQUITY, who knew by their own schooling
|
|
how to appreciate the virtue therein, the rareness and the difficulty
|
|
in the deliverance of such a period;--WE have really no right to the
|
|
BIG period, we modern men, who are short of breath in every sense! Those
|
|
ancients, indeed, were all of them dilettanti in speaking, consequently
|
|
connoisseurs, consequently critics--they thus brought their orators to
|
|
the highest pitch; in the same manner as in the last century, when all
|
|
Italian ladies and gentlemen knew how to sing, the virtuosoship of song
|
|
(and with it also the art of melody) reached its elevation. In Germany,
|
|
however (until quite recently when a kind of platform eloquence began
|
|
shyly and awkwardly enough to flutter its young wings), there was
|
|
properly speaking only one kind of public and APPROXIMATELY artistical
|
|
discourse--that delivered from the pulpit. The preacher was the only one
|
|
in Germany who knew the weight of a syllable or a word, in what manner a
|
|
sentence strikes, springs, rushes, flows, and comes to a close; he alone
|
|
had a conscience in his ears, often enough a bad conscience: for reasons
|
|
are not lacking why proficiency in oratory should be especially seldom
|
|
attained by a German, or almost always too late. The masterpiece of
|
|
German prose is therefore with good reason the masterpiece of its
|
|
greatest preacher: the BIBLE has hitherto been the best German
|
|
book. Compared with Luther's Bible, almost everything else is merely
|
|
"literature"--something which has not grown in Germany, and therefore
|
|
has not taken and does not take root in German hearts, as the Bible has
|
|
done.
|
|
|
|
248. There are two kinds of geniuses: one which above all engenders and
|
|
seeks to engender, and another which willingly lets itself be fructified
|
|
and brings forth. And similarly, among the gifted nations, there are
|
|
those on whom the woman's problem of pregnancy has devolved, and the
|
|
secret task of forming, maturing, and perfecting--the Greeks, for
|
|
instance, were a nation of this kind, and so are the French; and others
|
|
which have to fructify and become the cause of new modes of life--like
|
|
the Jews, the Romans, and, in all modesty be it asked: like the
|
|
Germans?--nations tortured and enraptured by unknown fevers and
|
|
irresistibly forced out of themselves, amorous and longing for
|
|
foreign races (for such as "let themselves be fructified"), and withal
|
|
imperious, like everything conscious of being full of generative force,
|
|
and consequently empowered "by the grace of God." These two kinds of
|
|
geniuses seek each other like man and woman; but they also misunderstand
|
|
each other--like man and woman.
|
|
|
|
249. Every nation has its own "Tartuffery," and calls that its
|
|
virtue.--One does not know--cannot know, the best that is in one.
|
|
|
|
250. What Europe owes to the Jews?--Many things, good and bad, and above
|
|
all one thing of the nature both of the best and the worst: the grand
|
|
style in morality, the fearfulness and majesty of infinite demands, of
|
|
infinite significations, the whole Romanticism and sublimity of moral
|
|
questionableness--and consequently just the most attractive, ensnaring,
|
|
and exquisite element in those iridescences and allurements to life,
|
|
in the aftersheen of which the sky of our European culture, its evening
|
|
sky, now glows--perhaps glows out. For this, we artists among the
|
|
spectators and philosophers, are--grateful to the Jews.
|
|
|
|
251. It must be taken into the bargain, if various clouds and
|
|
disturbances--in short, slight attacks of stupidity--pass over the
|
|
spirit of a people that suffers and WANTS to suffer from national
|
|
nervous fever and political ambition: for instance, among present-day
|
|
Germans there is alternately the anti-French folly, the anti-Semitic
|
|
folly, the anti-Polish folly, the Christian-romantic folly, the
|
|
Wagnerian folly, the Teutonic folly, the Prussian folly (just look at
|
|
those poor historians, the Sybels and Treitschkes, and their closely
|
|
bandaged heads), and whatever else these little obscurations of the
|
|
German spirit and conscience may be called. May it be forgiven me that
|
|
I, too, when on a short daring sojourn on very infected ground, did not
|
|
remain wholly exempt from the disease, but like every one else, began
|
|
to entertain thoughts about matters which did not concern me--the first
|
|
symptom of political infection. About the Jews, for instance, listen
|
|
to the following:--I have never yet met a German who was favourably
|
|
inclined to the Jews; and however decided the repudiation of actual
|
|
anti-Semitism may be on the part of all prudent and political men, this
|
|
prudence and policy is not perhaps directed against the nature of the
|
|
sentiment itself, but only against its dangerous excess, and especially
|
|
against the distasteful and infamous expression of this excess of
|
|
sentiment;--on this point we must not deceive ourselves. That Germany
|
|
has amply SUFFICIENT Jews, that the German stomach, the German blood,
|
|
has difficulty (and will long have difficulty) in disposing only of this
|
|
quantity of "Jew"--as the Italian, the Frenchman, and the Englishman
|
|
have done by means of a stronger digestion:--that is the unmistakable
|
|
declaration and language of a general instinct, to which one must listen
|
|
and according to which one must act. "Let no more Jews come in! And shut
|
|
the doors, especially towards the East (also towards Austria)!"--thus
|
|
commands the instinct of a people whose nature is still feeble and
|
|
uncertain, so that it could be easily wiped out, easily extinguished, by
|
|
a stronger race. The Jews, however, are beyond all doubt the strongest,
|
|
toughest, and purest race at present living in Europe, they know how
|
|
to succeed even under the worst conditions (in fact better than under
|
|
favourable ones), by means of virtues of some sort, which one would like
|
|
nowadays to label as vices--owing above all to a resolute faith which
|
|
does not need to be ashamed before "modern ideas", they alter only,
|
|
WHEN they do alter, in the same way that the Russian Empire makes
|
|
its conquest--as an empire that has plenty of time and is not of
|
|
yesterday--namely, according to the principle, "as slowly as possible"!
|
|
A thinker who has the future of Europe at heart, will, in all his
|
|
perspectives concerning the future, calculate upon the Jews, as he
|
|
will calculate upon the Russians, as above all the surest and likeliest
|
|
factors in the great play and battle of forces. That which is at present
|
|
called a "nation" in Europe, and is really rather a RES FACTA than NATA
|
|
(indeed, sometimes confusingly similar to a RES FICTA ET PICTA), is in
|
|
every case something evolving, young, easily displaced, and not yet
|
|
a race, much less such a race AERE PERENNUS, as the Jews are such
|
|
"nations" should most carefully avoid all hot-headed rivalry and
|
|
hostility! It is certain that the Jews, if they desired--or if they
|
|
were driven to it, as the anti-Semites seem to wish--COULD now have the
|
|
ascendancy, nay, literally the supremacy, over Europe, that they are NOT
|
|
working and planning for that end is equally certain. Meanwhile, they
|
|
rather wish and desire, even somewhat importunely, to be insorbed and
|
|
absorbed by Europe, they long to be finally settled, authorized, and
|
|
respected somewhere, and wish to put an end to the nomadic life, to the
|
|
"wandering Jew",--and one should certainly take account of this impulse
|
|
and tendency, and MAKE ADVANCES to it (it possibly betokens a mitigation
|
|
of the Jewish instincts) for which purpose it would perhaps be useful
|
|
and fair to banish the anti-Semitic bawlers out of the country. One
|
|
should make advances with all prudence, and with selection, pretty much
|
|
as the English nobility do It stands to reason that the more powerful
|
|
and strongly marked types of new Germanism could enter into relation
|
|
with the Jews with the least hesitation, for instance, the nobleman
|
|
officer from the Prussian border it would be interesting in many ways
|
|
to see whether the genius for money and patience (and especially some
|
|
intellect and intellectuality--sadly lacking in the place referred to)
|
|
could not in addition be annexed and trained to the hereditary art of
|
|
commanding and obeying--for both of which the country in question has
|
|
now a classic reputation But here it is expedient to break off my festal
|
|
discourse and my sprightly Teutonomania for I have already reached my
|
|
SERIOUS TOPIC, the "European problem," as I understand it, the rearing
|
|
of a new ruling caste for Europe.
|
|
|
|
252. They are not a philosophical race--the English: Bacon represents an
|
|
ATTACK on the philosophical spirit generally, Hobbes, Hume, and Locke,
|
|
an abasement, and a depreciation of the idea of a "philosopher" for more
|
|
than a century. It was AGAINST Hume that Kant uprose and raised himself;
|
|
it was Locke of whom Schelling RIGHTLY said, "JE MEPRISE LOCKE"; in the
|
|
struggle against the English mechanical stultification of the world,
|
|
Hegel and Schopenhauer (along with Goethe) were of one accord; the
|
|
two hostile brother-geniuses in philosophy, who pushed in different
|
|
directions towards the opposite poles of German thought, and thereby
|
|
wronged each other as only brothers will do.--What is lacking in
|
|
England, and has always been lacking, that half-actor and rhetorician
|
|
knew well enough, the absurd muddle-head, Carlyle, who sought to conceal
|
|
under passionate grimaces what he knew about himself: namely, what was
|
|
LACKING in Carlyle--real POWER of intellect, real DEPTH of intellectual
|
|
perception, in short, philosophy. It is characteristic of such an
|
|
unphilosophical race to hold on firmly to Christianity--they NEED its
|
|
discipline for "moralizing" and humanizing. The Englishman, more gloomy,
|
|
sensual, headstrong, and brutal than the German--is for that very
|
|
reason, as the baser of the two, also the most pious: he has all the
|
|
MORE NEED of Christianity. To finer nostrils, this English Christianity
|
|
itself has still a characteristic English taint of spleen and alcoholic
|
|
excess, for which, owing to good reasons, it is used as an antidote--the
|
|
finer poison to neutralize the coarser: a finer form of poisoning is
|
|
in fact a step in advance with coarse-mannered people, a step towards
|
|
spiritualization. The English coarseness and rustic demureness is still
|
|
most satisfactorily disguised by Christian pantomime, and by praying
|
|
and psalm-singing (or, more correctly, it is thereby explained and
|
|
differently expressed); and for the herd of drunkards and rakes who
|
|
formerly learned moral grunting under the influence of Methodism (and
|
|
more recently as the "Salvation Army"), a penitential fit may really be
|
|
the relatively highest manifestation of "humanity" to which they can
|
|
be elevated: so much may reasonably be admitted. That, however, which
|
|
offends even in the humanest Englishman is his lack of music, to speak
|
|
figuratively (and also literally): he has neither rhythm nor dance in
|
|
the movements of his soul and body; indeed, not even the desire for
|
|
rhythm and dance, for "music." Listen to him speaking; look at the most
|
|
beautiful Englishwoman WALKING--in no country on earth are there more
|
|
beautiful doves and swans; finally, listen to them singing! But I ask
|
|
too much...
|
|
|
|
253. There are truths which are best recognized by mediocre minds,
|
|
because they are best adapted for them, there are truths which only
|
|
possess charms and seductive power for mediocre spirits:--one is pushed
|
|
to this probably unpleasant conclusion, now that the influence of
|
|
respectable but mediocre Englishmen--I may mention Darwin, John
|
|
Stuart Mill, and Herbert Spencer--begins to gain the ascendancy in the
|
|
middle-class region of European taste. Indeed, who could doubt that it
|
|
is a useful thing for SUCH minds to have the ascendancy for a time? It
|
|
would be an error to consider the highly developed and independently
|
|
soaring minds as specially qualified for determining and collecting many
|
|
little common facts, and deducing conclusions from them; as exceptions,
|
|
they are rather from the first in no very favourable position towards
|
|
those who are "the rules." After all, they have more to do than merely
|
|
to perceive:--in effect, they have to BE something new, they have to
|
|
SIGNIFY something new, they have to REPRESENT new values! The gulf
|
|
between knowledge and capacity is perhaps greater, and also more
|
|
mysterious, than one thinks: the capable man in the grand style, the
|
|
creator, will possibly have to be an ignorant person;--while on the
|
|
other hand, for scientific discoveries like those of Darwin, a certain
|
|
narrowness, aridity, and industrious carefulness (in short, something
|
|
English) may not be unfavourable for arriving at them.--Finally, let
|
|
it not be forgotten that the English, with their profound mediocrity,
|
|
brought about once before a general depression of European intelligence.
|
|
|
|
What is called "modern ideas," or "the ideas of the eighteenth century,"
|
|
or "French ideas"--that, consequently, against which the GERMAN mind
|
|
rose up with profound disgust--is of English origin, there is no doubt
|
|
about it. The French were only the apes and actors of these ideas, their
|
|
best soldiers, and likewise, alas! their first and profoundest VICTIMS;
|
|
for owing to the diabolical Anglomania of "modern ideas," the AME
|
|
FRANCAIS has in the end become so thin and emaciated, that at present
|
|
one recalls its sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, its profound,
|
|
passionate strength, its inventive excellency, almost with disbelief.
|
|
One must, however, maintain this verdict of historical justice in
|
|
a determined manner, and defend it against present prejudices and
|
|
appearances: the European NOBLESSE--of sentiment, taste, and manners,
|
|
taking the word in every high sense--is the work and invention of
|
|
FRANCE; the European ignobleness, the plebeianism of modern ideas--is
|
|
ENGLAND'S work and invention.
|
|
|
|
254. Even at present France is still the seat of the most intellectual
|
|
and refined culture of Europe, it is still the high school of taste; but
|
|
one must know how to find this "France of taste." He who belongs to it
|
|
keeps himself well concealed:--they may be a small number in whom it
|
|
lives and is embodied, besides perhaps being men who do not stand upon
|
|
the strongest legs, in part fatalists, hypochondriacs, invalids, in
|
|
part persons over-indulged, over-refined, such as have the AMBITION to
|
|
conceal themselves.
|
|
|
|
They have all something in common: they keep their ears closed in
|
|
presence of the delirious folly and noisy spouting of the democratic
|
|
BOURGEOIS. In fact, a besotted and brutalized France at present sprawls
|
|
in the foreground--it recently celebrated a veritable orgy of bad taste,
|
|
and at the same time of self-admiration, at the funeral of Victor Hugo.
|
|
There is also something else common to them: a predilection to resist
|
|
intellectual Germanizing--and a still greater inability to do so!
|
|
In this France of intellect, which is also a France of pessimism,
|
|
Schopenhauer has perhaps become more at home, and more indigenous than
|
|
he has ever been in Germany; not to speak of Heinrich Heine, who has
|
|
long ago been re-incarnated in the more refined and fastidious lyrists
|
|
of Paris; or of Hegel, who at present, in the form of Taine--the FIRST
|
|
of living historians--exercises an almost tyrannical influence. As
|
|
regards Richard Wagner, however, the more French music learns to
|
|
adapt itself to the actual needs of the AME MODERNE, the more will it
|
|
"Wagnerite"; one can safely predict that beforehand,--it is already
|
|
taking place sufficiently! There are, however, three things which the
|
|
French can still boast of with pride as their heritage and possession,
|
|
and as indelible tokens of their ancient intellectual superiority
|
|
in Europe, in spite of all voluntary or involuntary Germanizing and
|
|
vulgarizing of taste. FIRSTLY, the capacity for artistic emotion, for
|
|
devotion to "form," for which the expression, L'ART POUR L'ART, along
|
|
with numerous others, has been invented:--such capacity has not been
|
|
lacking in France for three centuries; and owing to its reverence for
|
|
the "small number," it has again and again made a sort of chamber
|
|
music of literature possible, which is sought for in vain elsewhere
|
|
in Europe.--The SECOND thing whereby the French can lay claim to
|
|
a superiority over Europe is their ancient, many-sided, MORALISTIC
|
|
culture, owing to which one finds on an average, even in the petty
|
|
ROMANCIERS of the newspapers and chance BOULEVARDIERS DE PARIS, a
|
|
psychological sensitiveness and curiosity, of which, for example, one
|
|
has no conception (to say nothing of the thing itself!) in Germany.
|
|
The Germans lack a couple of centuries of the moralistic work requisite
|
|
thereto, which, as we have said, France has not grudged: those who call
|
|
the Germans "naive" on that account give them commendation for a defect.
|
|
(As the opposite of the German inexperience and innocence IN VOLUPTATE
|
|
PSYCHOLOGICA, which is not too remotely associated with the tediousness
|
|
of German intercourse,--and as the most successful expression of
|
|
genuine French curiosity and inventive talent in this domain of delicate
|
|
thrills, Henri Beyle may be noted; that remarkable anticipatory and
|
|
forerunning man, who, with a Napoleonic TEMPO, traversed HIS Europe,
|
|
in fact, several centuries of the European soul, as a surveyor and
|
|
discoverer thereof:--it has required two generations to OVERTAKE him
|
|
one way or other, to divine long afterwards some of the riddles
|
|
that perplexed and enraptured him--this strange Epicurean and man of
|
|
interrogation, the last great psychologist of France).--There is yet
|
|
a THIRD claim to superiority: in the French character there is a
|
|
successful half-way synthesis of the North and South, which makes them
|
|
comprehend many things, and enjoins upon them other things, which an
|
|
Englishman can never comprehend. Their temperament, turned alternately
|
|
to and from the South, in which from time to time the Provencal and
|
|
Ligurian blood froths over, preserves them from the dreadful, northern
|
|
grey-in-grey, from sunless conceptual-spectrism and from poverty of
|
|
blood--our GERMAN infirmity of taste, for the excessive prevalence
|
|
of which at the present moment, blood and iron, that is to say "high
|
|
politics," has with great resolution been prescribed (according to
|
|
a dangerous healing art, which bids me wait and wait, but not yet
|
|
hope).--There is also still in France a pre-understanding and
|
|
ready welcome for those rarer and rarely gratified men, who are too
|
|
comprehensive to find satisfaction in any kind of fatherlandism, and
|
|
know how to love the South when in the North and the North when in the
|
|
South--the born Midlanders, the "good Europeans." For them BIZET
|
|
has made music, this latest genius, who has seen a new beauty and
|
|
seduction,--who has discovered a piece of the SOUTH IN MUSIC.
|
|
|
|
255. I hold that many precautions should be taken against German music.
|
|
Suppose a person loves the South as I love it--as a great school
|
|
of recovery for the most spiritual and the most sensuous ills, as a
|
|
boundless solar profusion and effulgence which o'erspreads a sovereign
|
|
existence believing in itself--well, such a person will learn to be
|
|
somewhat on his guard against German music, because, in injuring his
|
|
taste anew, it will also injure his health anew. Such a Southerner, a
|
|
Southerner not by origin but by BELIEF, if he should dream of the future
|
|
of music, must also dream of it being freed from the influence of the
|
|
North; and must have in his ears the prelude to a deeper, mightier, and
|
|
perhaps more perverse and mysterious music, a super-German music, which
|
|
does not fade, pale, and die away, as all German music does, at the
|
|
sight of the blue, wanton sea and the Mediterranean clearness of sky--a
|
|
super-European music, which holds its own even in presence of the brown
|
|
sunsets of the desert, whose soul is akin to the palm-tree, and can be
|
|
at home and can roam with big, beautiful, lonely beasts of prey... I
|
|
could imagine a music of which the rarest charm would be that it knew
|
|
nothing more of good and evil; only that here and there perhaps some
|
|
sailor's home-sickness, some golden shadows and tender weaknesses might
|
|
sweep lightly over it; an art which, from the far distance, would see
|
|
the colours of a sinking and almost incomprehensible MORAL world fleeing
|
|
towards it, and would be hospitable enough and profound enough to
|
|
receive such belated fugitives.
|
|
|
|
256. Owing to the morbid estrangement which the nationality-craze has
|
|
induced and still induces among the nations of Europe, owing also to the
|
|
short-sighted and hasty-handed politicians, who with the help of this
|
|
craze, are at present in power, and do not suspect to what extent the
|
|
disintegrating policy they pursue must necessarily be only an interlude
|
|
policy--owing to all this and much else that is altogether unmentionable
|
|
at present, the most unmistakable signs that EUROPE WISHES TO BE ONE,
|
|
are now overlooked, or arbitrarily and falsely misinterpreted. With all
|
|
the more profound and large-minded men of this century, the real general
|
|
tendency of the mysterious labour of their souls was to prepare the way
|
|
for that new SYNTHESIS, and tentatively to anticipate the European of
|
|
the future; only in their simulations, or in their weaker moments, in
|
|
old age perhaps, did they belong to the "fatherlands"--they only rested
|
|
from themselves when they became "patriots." I think of such men as
|
|
Napoleon, Goethe, Beethoven, Stendhal, Heinrich Heine, Schopenhauer: it
|
|
must not be taken amiss if I also count Richard Wagner among them, about
|
|
whom one must not let oneself be deceived by his own misunderstandings
|
|
(geniuses like him have seldom the right to understand themselves),
|
|
still less, of course, by the unseemly noise with which he is now
|
|
resisted and opposed in France: the fact remains, nevertheless, that
|
|
Richard Wagner and the LATER FRENCH ROMANTICISM of the forties, are
|
|
most closely and intimately related to one another. They are akin,
|
|
fundamentally akin, in all the heights and depths of their requirements;
|
|
it is Europe, the ONE Europe, whose soul presses urgently and longingly,
|
|
outwards and upwards, in their multifarious and boisterous art--whither?
|
|
into a new light? towards a new sun? But who would attempt to express
|
|
accurately what all these masters of new modes of speech could not
|
|
express distinctly? It is certain that the same storm and stress
|
|
tormented them, that they SOUGHT in the same manner, these last great
|
|
seekers! All of them steeped in literature to their eyes and ears--the
|
|
first artists of universal literary culture--for the most part even
|
|
themselves writers, poets, intermediaries and blenders of the arts and
|
|
the senses (Wagner, as musician is reckoned among painters, as poet
|
|
among musicians, as artist generally among actors); all of them fanatics
|
|
for EXPRESSION "at any cost"--I specially mention Delacroix, the nearest
|
|
related to Wagner; all of them great discoverers in the realm of the
|
|
sublime, also of the loathsome and dreadful, still greater discoverers
|
|
in effect, in display, in the art of the show-shop; all of them talented
|
|
far beyond their genius, out and out VIRTUOSI, with mysterious accesses
|
|
to all that seduces, allures, constrains, and upsets; born enemies of
|
|
logic and of the straight line, hankering after the strange, the
|
|
exotic, the monstrous, the crooked, and the self-contradictory; as men,
|
|
Tantaluses of the will, plebeian parvenus, who knew themselves to be
|
|
incapable of a noble TEMPO or of a LENTO in life and action--think
|
|
of Balzac, for instance,--unrestrained workers, almost destroying
|
|
themselves by work; antinomians and rebels in manners, ambitious and
|
|
insatiable, without equilibrium and enjoyment; all of them finally
|
|
shattering and sinking down at the Christian cross (and with right
|
|
and reason, for who of them would have been sufficiently profound and
|
|
sufficiently original for an ANTI-CHRISTIAN philosophy?);--on the
|
|
whole, a boldly daring, splendidly overbearing, high-flying, and
|
|
aloft-up-dragging class of higher men, who had first to teach their
|
|
century--and it is the century of the MASSES--the conception "higher
|
|
man."... Let the German friends of Richard Wagner advise together as to
|
|
whether there is anything purely German in the Wagnerian art, or whether
|
|
its distinction does not consist precisely in coming from SUPER-GERMAN
|
|
sources and impulses: in which connection it may not be underrated
|
|
how indispensable Paris was to the development of his type, which the
|
|
strength of his instincts made him long to visit at the most
|
|
decisive time--and how the whole style of his proceedings, of his
|
|
self-apostolate, could only perfect itself in sight of the French
|
|
socialistic original. On a more subtle comparison it will perhaps be
|
|
found, to the honour of Richard Wagner's German nature, that he has
|
|
acted in everything with more strength, daring, severity, and elevation
|
|
than a nineteenth-century Frenchman could have done--owing to the
|
|
circumstance that we Germans are as yet nearer to barbarism than the
|
|
French;--perhaps even the most remarkable creation of Richard Wagner is
|
|
not only at present, but for ever inaccessible, incomprehensible, and
|
|
inimitable to the whole latter-day Latin race: the figure of Siegfried,
|
|
that VERY FREE man, who is probably far too free, too hard, too
|
|
cheerful, too healthy, too ANTI-CATHOLIC for the taste of old and mellow
|
|
civilized nations. He may even have been a sin against Romanticism, this
|
|
anti-Latin Siegfried: well, Wagner atoned amply for this sin in his old
|
|
sad days, when--anticipating a taste which has meanwhile passed into
|
|
politics--he began, with the religious vehemence peculiar to him, to
|
|
preach, at least, THE WAY TO ROME, if not to walk therein.--That
|
|
these last words may not be misunderstood, I will call to my aid a few
|
|
powerful rhymes, which will even betray to less delicate ears what I
|
|
mean--what I mean COUNTER TO the "last Wagner" and his Parsifal music:--
|
|
|
|
--Is this our mode?--From German heart came this vexed ululating? From
|
|
German body, this self-lacerating? Is ours this priestly hand-dilation,
|
|
This incense-fuming exaltation? Is ours this faltering, falling,
|
|
shambling, This quite uncertain ding-dong-dangling? This sly
|
|
nun-ogling, Ave-hour-bell ringing, This wholly false enraptured
|
|
heaven-o'erspringing?--Is this our mode?--Think well!--ye still wait for
|
|
admission--For what ye hear is ROME--ROME'S FAITH BY INTUITION!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX. WHAT IS NOBLE?
|
|
|
|
|
|
257. EVERY elevation of the type "man," has hitherto been the work of an
|
|
aristocratic society and so it will always be--a society believing in
|
|
a long scale of gradations of rank and differences of worth among human
|
|
beings, and requiring slavery in some form or other. Without the PATHOS
|
|
OF DISTANCE, such as grows out of the incarnated difference of classes,
|
|
out of the constant out-looking and down-looking of the ruling caste on
|
|
subordinates and instruments, and out of their equally constant
|
|
practice of obeying and commanding, of keeping down and keeping at a
|
|
distance--that other more mysterious pathos could never have arisen, the
|
|
longing for an ever new widening of distance within the soul itself,
|
|
the formation of ever higher, rarer, further, more extended, more
|
|
comprehensive states, in short, just the elevation of the type "man,"
|
|
the continued "self-surmounting of man," to use a moral formula in
|
|
a supermoral sense. To be sure, one must not resign oneself to
|
|
any humanitarian illusions about the history of the origin of an
|
|
aristocratic society (that is to say, of the preliminary condition for
|
|
the elevation of the type "man"): the truth is hard. Let us acknowledge
|
|
unprejudicedly how every higher civilization hitherto has ORIGINATED!
|
|
Men with a still natural nature, barbarians in every terrible sense of
|
|
the word, men of prey, still in possession of unbroken strength of will
|
|
and desire for power, threw themselves upon weaker, more moral, more
|
|
peaceful races (perhaps trading or cattle-rearing communities), or upon
|
|
old mellow civilizations in which the final vital force was flickering
|
|
out in brilliant fireworks of wit and depravity. At the commencement,
|
|
the noble caste was always the barbarian caste: their superiority did
|
|
not consist first of all in their physical, but in their psychical
|
|
power--they were more COMPLETE men (which at every point also implies
|
|
the same as "more complete beasts").
|
|
|
|
258. Corruption--as the indication that anarchy threatens to break out
|
|
among the instincts, and that the foundation of the emotions, called
|
|
"life," is convulsed--is something radically different according to
|
|
the organization in which it manifests itself. When, for instance, an
|
|
aristocracy like that of France at the beginning of the Revolution,
|
|
flung away its privileges with sublime disgust and sacrificed itself
|
|
to an excess of its moral sentiments, it was corruption:--it was really
|
|
only the closing act of the corruption which had existed for centuries,
|
|
by virtue of which that aristocracy had abdicated step by step its
|
|
lordly prerogatives and lowered itself to a FUNCTION of royalty (in
|
|
the end even to its decoration and parade-dress). The essential thing,
|
|
however, in a good and healthy aristocracy is that it should not regard
|
|
itself as a function either of the kingship or the commonwealth, but
|
|
as the SIGNIFICANCE and highest justification thereof--that it should
|
|
therefore accept with a good conscience the sacrifice of a legion
|
|
of individuals, who, FOR ITS SAKE, must be suppressed and reduced to
|
|
imperfect men, to slaves and instruments. Its fundamental belief must
|
|
be precisely that society is NOT allowed to exist for its own sake, but
|
|
only as a foundation and scaffolding, by means of which a select class
|
|
of beings may be able to elevate themselves to their higher duties, and
|
|
in general to a higher EXISTENCE: like those sun-seeking climbing plants
|
|
in Java--they are called Sipo Matador,--which encircle an oak so
|
|
long and so often with their arms, until at last, high above it, but
|
|
supported by it, they can unfold their tops in the open light, and
|
|
exhibit their happiness.
|
|
|
|
259. To refrain mutually from injury, from violence, from exploitation,
|
|
and put one's will on a par with that of others: this may result in a
|
|
certain rough sense in good conduct among individuals when the necessary
|
|
conditions are given (namely, the actual similarity of the individuals
|
|
in amount of force and degree of worth, and their co-relation within one
|
|
organization). As soon, however, as one wished to take this principle
|
|
more generally, and if possible even as the FUNDAMENTAL PRINCIPLE OF
|
|
SOCIETY, it would immediately disclose what it really is--namely, a Will
|
|
to the DENIAL of life, a principle of dissolution and decay. Here one
|
|
must think profoundly to the very basis and resist all sentimental
|
|
weakness: life itself is ESSENTIALLY appropriation, injury, conquest
|
|
of the strange and weak, suppression, severity, obtrusion of
|
|
peculiar forms, incorporation, and at the least, putting it mildest,
|
|
exploitation;--but why should one for ever use precisely these words
|
|
on which for ages a disparaging purpose has been stamped? Even the
|
|
organization within which, as was previously supposed, the
|
|
individuals treat each other as equal--it takes place in every
|
|
healthy aristocracy--must itself, if it be a living and not a dying
|
|
organization, do all that towards other bodies, which the individuals
|
|
within it refrain from doing to each other it will have to be the
|
|
incarnated Will to Power, it will endeavour to grow, to gain ground,
|
|
attract to itself and acquire ascendancy--not owing to any morality or
|
|
immorality, but because it LIVES, and because life IS precisely Will to
|
|
Power. On no point, however, is the ordinary consciousness of Europeans
|
|
more unwilling to be corrected than on this matter, people now rave
|
|
everywhere, even under the guise of science, about coming conditions of
|
|
society in which "the exploiting character" is to be absent--that sounds
|
|
to my ears as if they promised to invent a mode of life which should
|
|
refrain from all organic functions. "Exploitation" does not belong to a
|
|
depraved, or imperfect and primitive society it belongs to the nature of
|
|
the living being as a primary organic function, it is a consequence
|
|
of the intrinsic Will to Power, which is precisely the Will to
|
|
Life--Granting that as a theory this is a novelty--as a reality it is
|
|
the FUNDAMENTAL FACT of all history let us be so far honest towards
|
|
ourselves!
|
|
|
|
260. In a tour through the many finer and coarser moralities which have
|
|
hitherto prevailed or still prevail on the earth, I found certain traits
|
|
recurring regularly together, and connected with one another, until
|
|
finally two primary types revealed themselves to me, and a radical
|
|
distinction was brought to light. There is MASTER-MORALITY and
|
|
SLAVE-MORALITY,--I would at once add, however, that in all higher and
|
|
mixed civilizations, there are also attempts at the reconciliation of
|
|
the two moralities, but one finds still oftener the confusion and
|
|
mutual misunderstanding of them, indeed sometimes their close
|
|
juxtaposition--even in the same man, within one soul. The distinctions
|
|
of moral values have either originated in a ruling caste, pleasantly
|
|
conscious of being different from the ruled--or among the ruled class,
|
|
the slaves and dependents of all sorts. In the first case, when it is
|
|
the rulers who determine the conception "good," it is the exalted, proud
|
|
disposition which is regarded as the distinguishing feature, and that
|
|
which determines the order of rank. The noble type of man separates
|
|
from himself the beings in whom the opposite of this exalted, proud
|
|
disposition displays itself he despises them. Let it at once be noted
|
|
that in this first kind of morality the antithesis "good" and "bad"
|
|
means practically the same as "noble" and "despicable",--the antithesis
|
|
"good" and "EVIL" is of a different origin. The cowardly, the timid, the
|
|
insignificant, and those thinking merely of narrow utility are despised;
|
|
moreover, also, the distrustful, with their constrained glances, the
|
|
self-abasing, the dog-like kind of men who let themselves be abused,
|
|
the mendicant flatterers, and above all the liars:--it is a fundamental
|
|
belief of all aristocrats that the common people are untruthful. "We
|
|
truthful ones"--the nobility in ancient Greece called themselves. It is
|
|
obvious that everywhere the designations of moral value were at first
|
|
applied to MEN; and were only derivatively and at a later period applied
|
|
to ACTIONS; it is a gross mistake, therefore, when historians of morals
|
|
start with questions like, "Why have sympathetic actions been praised?"
|
|
The noble type of man regards HIMSELF as a determiner of values; he
|
|
does not require to be approved of; he passes the judgment: "What is
|
|
injurious to me is injurious in itself;" he knows that it is he himself
|
|
only who confers honour on things; he is a CREATOR OF VALUES. He
|
|
honours whatever he recognizes in himself: such morality equals
|
|
self-glorification. In the foreground there is the feeling of plenitude,
|
|
of power, which seeks to overflow, the happiness of high tension, the
|
|
consciousness of a wealth which would fain give and bestow:--the noble
|
|
man also helps the unfortunate, but not--or scarcely--out of pity, but
|
|
rather from an impulse generated by the super-abundance of power. The
|
|
noble man honours in himself the powerful one, him also who has power
|
|
over himself, who knows how to speak and how to keep silence, who
|
|
takes pleasure in subjecting himself to severity and hardness, and has
|
|
reverence for all that is severe and hard. "Wotan placed a hard heart in
|
|
my breast," says an old Scandinavian Saga: it is thus rightly expressed
|
|
from the soul of a proud Viking. Such a type of man is even proud of not
|
|
being made for sympathy; the hero of the Saga therefore adds warningly:
|
|
"He who has not a hard heart when young, will never have one." The noble
|
|
and brave who think thus are the furthest removed from the morality
|
|
which sees precisely in sympathy, or in acting for the good of others,
|
|
or in DESINTERESSEMENT, the characteristic of the moral; faith
|
|
in oneself, pride in oneself, a radical enmity and irony towards
|
|
"selflessness," belong as definitely to noble morality, as do a careless
|
|
scorn and precaution in presence of sympathy and the "warm heart."--It
|
|
is the powerful who KNOW how to honour, it is their art, their domain
|
|
for invention. The profound reverence for age and for tradition--all law
|
|
rests on this double reverence,--the belief and prejudice in favour of
|
|
ancestors and unfavourable to newcomers, is typical in the morality of
|
|
the powerful; and if, reversely, men of "modern ideas" believe almost
|
|
instinctively in "progress" and the "future," and are more and more
|
|
lacking in respect for old age, the ignoble origin of these "ideas" has
|
|
complacently betrayed itself thereby. A morality of the ruling class,
|
|
however, is more especially foreign and irritating to present-day taste
|
|
in the sternness of its principle that one has duties only to one's
|
|
equals; that one may act towards beings of a lower rank, towards all
|
|
that is foreign, just as seems good to one, or "as the heart desires,"
|
|
and in any case "beyond good and evil": it is here that sympathy and
|
|
similar sentiments can have a place. The ability and obligation to
|
|
exercise prolonged gratitude and prolonged revenge--both only within the
|
|
circle of equals,--artfulness in retaliation, RAFFINEMENT of the idea
|
|
in friendship, a certain necessity to have enemies (as outlets for the
|
|
emotions of envy, quarrelsomeness, arrogance--in fact, in order to be
|
|
a good FRIEND): all these are typical characteristics of the noble
|
|
morality, which, as has been pointed out, is not the morality of "modern
|
|
ideas," and is therefore at present difficult to realize, and also to
|
|
unearth and disclose.--It is otherwise with the second type of morality,
|
|
SLAVE-MORALITY. Supposing that the abused, the oppressed, the suffering,
|
|
the unemancipated, the weary, and those uncertain of themselves should
|
|
moralize, what will be the common element in their moral estimates?
|
|
Probably a pessimistic suspicion with regard to the entire situation of
|
|
man will find expression, perhaps a condemnation of man, together with
|
|
his situation. The slave has an unfavourable eye for the virtues of the
|
|
powerful; he has a skepticism and distrust, a REFINEMENT of distrust of
|
|
everything "good" that is there honoured--he would fain persuade himself
|
|
that the very happiness there is not genuine. On the other hand, THOSE
|
|
qualities which serve to alleviate the existence of sufferers are
|
|
brought into prominence and flooded with light; it is here that
|
|
sympathy, the kind, helping hand, the warm heart, patience, diligence,
|
|
humility, and friendliness attain to honour; for here these are the most
|
|
useful qualities, and almost the only means of supporting the burden of
|
|
existence. Slave-morality is essentially the morality of utility.
|
|
Here is the seat of the origin of the famous antithesis "good" and
|
|
"evil":--power and dangerousness are assumed to reside in the evil,
|
|
a certain dreadfulness, subtlety, and strength, which do not admit of
|
|
being despised. According to slave-morality, therefore, the "evil" man
|
|
arouses fear; according to master-morality, it is precisely the "good"
|
|
man who arouses fear and seeks to arouse it, while the bad man is
|
|
regarded as the despicable being. The contrast attains its maximum when,
|
|
in accordance with the logical consequences of slave-morality, a shade
|
|
of depreciation--it may be slight and well-intentioned--at last attaches
|
|
itself to the "good" man of this morality; because, according to the
|
|
servile mode of thought, the good man must in any case be the SAFE
|
|
man: he is good-natured, easily deceived, perhaps a little stupid, un
|
|
bonhomme. Everywhere that slave-morality gains the ascendancy, language
|
|
shows a tendency to approximate the significations of the words "good"
|
|
and "stupid."--A last fundamental difference: the desire for FREEDOM,
|
|
the instinct for happiness and the refinements of the feeling of liberty
|
|
belong as necessarily to slave-morals and morality, as artifice and
|
|
enthusiasm in reverence and devotion are the regular symptoms of an
|
|
aristocratic mode of thinking and estimating.--Hence we can understand
|
|
without further detail why love AS A PASSION--it is our European
|
|
specialty--must absolutely be of noble origin; as is well known, its
|
|
invention is due to the Provencal poet-cavaliers, those brilliant,
|
|
ingenious men of the "gai saber," to whom Europe owes so much, and
|
|
almost owes itself.
|
|
|
|
261. Vanity is one of the things which are perhaps most difficult for
|
|
a noble man to understand: he will be tempted to deny it, where another
|
|
kind of man thinks he sees it self-evidently. The problem for him is
|
|
to represent to his mind beings who seek to arouse a good opinion of
|
|
themselves which they themselves do not possess--and consequently also
|
|
do not "deserve,"--and who yet BELIEVE in this good opinion
|
|
afterwards. This seems to him on the one hand such bad taste and so
|
|
self-disrespectful, and on the other hand so grotesquely unreasonable,
|
|
that he would like to consider vanity an exception, and is doubtful
|
|
about it in most cases when it is spoken of. He will say, for
|
|
instance: "I may be mistaken about my value, and on the other hand
|
|
may nevertheless demand that my value should be acknowledged by others
|
|
precisely as I rate it:--that, however, is not vanity (but self-conceit,
|
|
or, in most cases, that which is called 'humility,' and also
|
|
'modesty')." Or he will even say: "For many reasons I can delight in
|
|
the good opinion of others, perhaps because I love and honour them,
|
|
and rejoice in all their joys, perhaps also because their good opinion
|
|
endorses and strengthens my belief in my own good opinion, perhaps
|
|
because the good opinion of others, even in cases where I do not share
|
|
it, is useful to me, or gives promise of usefulness:--all this, however,
|
|
is not vanity." The man of noble character must first bring it home
|
|
forcibly to his mind, especially with the aid of history, that, from
|
|
time immemorial, in all social strata in any way dependent, the ordinary
|
|
man WAS only that which he PASSED FOR:--not being at all accustomed to
|
|
fix values, he did not assign even to himself any other value than that
|
|
which his master assigned to him (it is the peculiar RIGHT OF MASTERS to
|
|
create values). It may be looked upon as the result of an extraordinary
|
|
atavism, that the ordinary man, even at present, is still always WAITING
|
|
for an opinion about himself, and then instinctively submitting himself
|
|
to it; yet by no means only to a "good" opinion, but also to a bad
|
|
and unjust one (think, for instance, of the greater part of the
|
|
self-appreciations and self-depreciations which believing women learn
|
|
from their confessors, and which in general the believing Christian
|
|
learns from his Church). In fact, conformably to the slow rise of the
|
|
democratic social order (and its cause, the blending of the blood
|
|
of masters and slaves), the originally noble and rare impulse of
|
|
the masters to assign a value to themselves and to "think well" of
|
|
themselves, will now be more and more encouraged and extended; but
|
|
it has at all times an older, ampler, and more radically ingrained
|
|
propensity opposed to it--and in the phenomenon of "vanity" this older
|
|
propensity overmasters the younger. The vain person rejoices over EVERY
|
|
good opinion which he hears about himself (quite apart from the point
|
|
of view of its usefulness, and equally regardless of its truth or
|
|
falsehood), just as he suffers from every bad opinion: for he subjects
|
|
himself to both, he feels himself subjected to both, by that oldest
|
|
instinct of subjection which breaks forth in him.--It is "the slave"
|
|
in the vain man's blood, the remains of the slave's craftiness--and how
|
|
much of the "slave" is still left in woman, for instance!--which
|
|
seeks to SEDUCE to good opinions of itself; it is the slave, too, who
|
|
immediately afterwards falls prostrate himself before these opinions, as
|
|
though he had not called them forth.--And to repeat it again: vanity is
|
|
an atavism.
|
|
|
|
262. A SPECIES originates, and a type becomes established and strong in
|
|
the long struggle with essentially constant UNFAVOURABLE conditions. On
|
|
the other hand, it is known by the experience of breeders that species
|
|
which receive super-abundant nourishment, and in general a surplus of
|
|
protection and care, immediately tend in the most marked way to develop
|
|
variations, and are fertile in prodigies and monstrosities (also in
|
|
monstrous vices). Now look at an aristocratic commonwealth, say
|
|
an ancient Greek polis, or Venice, as a voluntary or involuntary
|
|
contrivance for the purpose of REARING human beings; there are there men
|
|
beside one another, thrown upon their own resources, who want to make
|
|
their species prevail, chiefly because they MUST prevail, or else
|
|
run the terrible danger of being exterminated. The favour, the
|
|
super-abundance, the protection are there lacking under which variations
|
|
are fostered; the species needs itself as species, as something which,
|
|
precisely by virtue of its hardness, its uniformity, and simplicity of
|
|
structure, can in general prevail and make itself permanent in
|
|
constant struggle with its neighbours, or with rebellious or
|
|
rebellion-threatening vassals. The most varied experience teaches it
|
|
what are the qualities to which it principally owes the fact that
|
|
it still exists, in spite of all Gods and men, and has hitherto been
|
|
victorious: these qualities it calls virtues, and these virtues alone
|
|
it develops to maturity. It does so with severity, indeed it desires
|
|
severity; every aristocratic morality is intolerant in the education
|
|
of youth, in the control of women, in the marriage customs, in the
|
|
relations of old and young, in the penal laws (which have an eye only
|
|
for the degenerating): it counts intolerance itself among the virtues,
|
|
under the name of "justice." A type with few, but very marked features,
|
|
a species of severe, warlike, wisely silent, reserved, and reticent
|
|
men (and as such, with the most delicate sensibility for the charm and
|
|
nuances of society) is thus established, unaffected by the vicissitudes
|
|
of generations; the constant struggle with uniform UNFAVOURABLE
|
|
conditions is, as already remarked, the cause of a type becoming
|
|
stable and hard. Finally, however, a happy state of things results, the
|
|
enormous tension is relaxed; there are perhaps no more enemies among the
|
|
neighbouring peoples, and the means of life, even of the enjoyment
|
|
of life, are present in superabundance. With one stroke the bond and
|
|
constraint of the old discipline severs: it is no longer regarded as
|
|
necessary, as a condition of existence--if it would continue, it can
|
|
only do so as a form of LUXURY, as an archaizing TASTE. Variations,
|
|
whether they be deviations (into the higher, finer, and rarer), or
|
|
deteriorations and monstrosities, appear suddenly on the scene in the
|
|
greatest exuberance and splendour; the individual dares to be individual
|
|
and detach himself. At this turning-point of history there manifest
|
|
themselves, side by side, and often mixed and entangled together, a
|
|
magnificent, manifold, virgin-forest-like up-growth and up-striving, a
|
|
kind of TROPICAL TEMPO in the rivalry of growth, and an extraordinary
|
|
decay and self-destruction, owing to the savagely opposing and seemingly
|
|
exploding egoisms, which strive with one another "for sun and light,"
|
|
and can no longer assign any limit, restraint, or forbearance for
|
|
themselves by means of the hitherto existing morality. It was this
|
|
morality itself which piled up the strength so enormously, which bent
|
|
the bow in so threatening a manner:--it is now "out of date," it is
|
|
getting "out of date." The dangerous and disquieting point has been
|
|
reached when the greater, more manifold, more comprehensive life IS
|
|
LIVED BEYOND the old morality; the "individual" stands out, and is
|
|
obliged to have recourse to his own law-giving, his own arts and
|
|
artifices for self-preservation, self-elevation, and self-deliverance.
|
|
Nothing but new "Whys," nothing but new "Hows," no common formulas any
|
|
longer, misunderstanding and disregard in league with each other, decay,
|
|
deterioration, and the loftiest desires frightfully entangled, the
|
|
genius of the race overflowing from all the cornucopias of good and bad,
|
|
a portentous simultaneousness of Spring and Autumn, full of new charms
|
|
and mysteries peculiar to the fresh, still inexhausted, still unwearied
|
|
corruption. Danger is again present, the mother of morality, great
|
|
danger; this time shifted into the individual, into the neighbour and
|
|
friend, into the street, into their own child, into their own heart,
|
|
into all the most personal and secret recesses of their desires and
|
|
volitions. What will the moral philosophers who appear at this time have
|
|
to preach? They discover, these sharp onlookers and loafers, that the
|
|
end is quickly approaching, that everything around them decays and
|
|
produces decay, that nothing will endure until the day after tomorrow,
|
|
except one species of man, the incurably MEDIOCRE. The mediocre alone
|
|
have a prospect of continuing and propagating themselves--they will
|
|
be the men of the future, the sole survivors; "be like them! become
|
|
mediocre!" is now the only morality which has still a significance,
|
|
which still obtains a hearing.--But it is difficult to preach this
|
|
morality of mediocrity! it can never avow what it is and what it
|
|
desires! it has to talk of moderation and dignity and duty and brotherly
|
|
love--it will have difficulty IN CONCEALING ITS IRONY!
|
|
|
|
263. There is an INSTINCT FOR RANK, which more than anything else is
|
|
already the sign of a HIGH rank; there is a DELIGHT in the NUANCES
|
|
of reverence which leads one to infer noble origin and habits. The
|
|
refinement, goodness, and loftiness of a soul are put to a perilous test
|
|
when something passes by that is of the highest rank, but is not
|
|
yet protected by the awe of authority from obtrusive touches and
|
|
incivilities: something that goes its way like a living touchstone,
|
|
undistinguished, undiscovered, and tentative, perhaps voluntarily veiled
|
|
and disguised. He whose task and practice it is to investigate souls,
|
|
will avail himself of many varieties of this very art to determine the
|
|
ultimate value of a soul, the unalterable, innate order of rank to which
|
|
it belongs: he will test it by its INSTINCT FOR REVERENCE. DIFFERENCE
|
|
ENGENDRE HAINE: the vulgarity of many a nature spurts up suddenly like
|
|
dirty water, when any holy vessel, any jewel from closed shrines, any
|
|
book bearing the marks of great destiny, is brought before it; while
|
|
on the other hand, there is an involuntary silence, a hesitation of the
|
|
eye, a cessation of all gestures, by which it is indicated that a soul
|
|
FEELS the nearness of what is worthiest of respect. The way in which, on
|
|
the whole, the reverence for the BIBLE has hitherto been maintained
|
|
in Europe, is perhaps the best example of discipline and refinement of
|
|
manners which Europe owes to Christianity: books of such profoundness
|
|
and supreme significance require for their protection an external
|
|
tyranny of authority, in order to acquire the PERIOD of thousands of
|
|
years which is necessary to exhaust and unriddle them. Much has been
|
|
achieved when the sentiment has been at last instilled into the masses
|
|
(the shallow-pates and the boobies of every kind) that they are not
|
|
allowed to touch everything, that there are holy experiences before
|
|
which they must take off their shoes and keep away the unclean hand--it
|
|
is almost their highest advance towards humanity. On the contrary, in
|
|
the so-called cultured classes, the believers in "modern ideas," nothing
|
|
is perhaps so repulsive as their lack of shame, the easy insolence of
|
|
eye and hand with which they touch, taste, and finger everything; and it
|
|
is possible that even yet there is more RELATIVE nobility of taste, and
|
|
more tact for reverence among the people, among the lower classes of
|
|
the people, especially among peasants, than among the newspaper-reading
|
|
DEMIMONDE of intellect, the cultured class.
|
|
|
|
264. It cannot be effaced from a man's soul what his ancestors have
|
|
preferably and most constantly done: whether they were perhaps diligent
|
|
economizers attached to a desk and a cash-box, modest and citizen-like
|
|
in their desires, modest also in their virtues; or whether they were
|
|
accustomed to commanding from morning till night, fond of rude pleasures
|
|
and probably of still ruder duties and responsibilities; or whether,
|
|
finally, at one time or another, they have sacrificed old privileges of
|
|
birth and possession, in order to live wholly for their faith--for their
|
|
"God,"--as men of an inexorable and sensitive conscience, which blushes
|
|
at every compromise. It is quite impossible for a man NOT to have
|
|
the qualities and predilections of his parents and ancestors in his
|
|
constitution, whatever appearances may suggest to the contrary. This is
|
|
the problem of race. Granted that one knows something of the parents,
|
|
it is admissible to draw a conclusion about the child: any kind
|
|
of offensive incontinence, any kind of sordid envy, or of clumsy
|
|
self-vaunting--the three things which together have constituted the
|
|
genuine plebeian type in all times--such must pass over to the child, as
|
|
surely as bad blood; and with the help of the best education and culture
|
|
one will only succeed in DECEIVING with regard to such heredity.--And
|
|
what else does education and culture try to do nowadays! In our very
|
|
democratic, or rather, very plebeian age, "education" and "culture" MUST
|
|
be essentially the art of deceiving--deceiving with regard to origin,
|
|
with regard to the inherited plebeianism in body and soul. An educator
|
|
who nowadays preached truthfulness above everything else, and called out
|
|
constantly to his pupils: "Be true! Be natural! Show yourselves as you
|
|
are!"--even such a virtuous and sincere ass would learn in a short time
|
|
to have recourse to the FURCA of Horace, NATURAM EXPELLERE: with what
|
|
results? "Plebeianism" USQUE RECURRET. [FOOTNOTE: Horace's "Epistles,"
|
|
I. x. 24.]
|
|
|
|
265. At the risk of displeasing innocent ears, I submit that egoism
|
|
belongs to the essence of a noble soul, I mean the unalterable belief
|
|
that to a being such as "we," other beings must naturally be in
|
|
subjection, and have to sacrifice themselves. The noble soul accepts the
|
|
fact of his egoism without question, and also without consciousness of
|
|
harshness, constraint, or arbitrariness therein, but rather as something
|
|
that may have its basis in the primary law of things:--if he sought a
|
|
designation for it he would say: "It is justice itself." He acknowledges
|
|
under certain circumstances, which made him hesitate at first, that
|
|
there are other equally privileged ones; as soon as he has settled this
|
|
question of rank, he moves among those equals and equally privileged
|
|
ones with the same assurance, as regards modesty and delicate respect,
|
|
which he enjoys in intercourse with himself--in accordance with an
|
|
innate heavenly mechanism which all the stars understand. It is an
|
|
ADDITIONAL instance of his egoism, this artfulness and self-limitation
|
|
in intercourse with his equals--every star is a similar egoist; he
|
|
honours HIMSELF in them, and in the rights which he concedes to them, he
|
|
has no doubt that the exchange of honours and rights, as the ESSENCE of
|
|
all intercourse, belongs also to the natural condition of things. The
|
|
noble soul gives as he takes, prompted by the passionate and sensitive
|
|
instinct of requital, which is at the root of his nature. The notion of
|
|
"favour" has, INTER PARES, neither significance nor good repute; there
|
|
may be a sublime way of letting gifts as it were light upon one from
|
|
above, and of drinking them thirstily like dew-drops; but for those
|
|
arts and displays the noble soul has no aptitude. His egoism hinders him
|
|
here: in general, he looks "aloft" unwillingly--he looks either FORWARD,
|
|
horizontally and deliberately, or downwards--HE KNOWS THAT HE IS ON A
|
|
HEIGHT.
|
|
|
|
266. "One can only truly esteem him who does not LOOK OUT FOR
|
|
himself."--Goethe to Rath Schlosser.
|
|
|
|
267. The Chinese have a proverb which mothers even teach their children:
|
|
"SIAO-SIN" ("MAKE THY HEART SMALL"). This is the essentially fundamental
|
|
tendency in latter-day civilizations. I have no doubt that an ancient
|
|
Greek, also, would first of all remark the self-dwarfing in us Europeans
|
|
of today--in this respect alone we should immediately be "distasteful"
|
|
to him.
|
|
|
|
268. What, after all, is ignobleness?--Words are vocal symbols for
|
|
ideas; ideas, however, are more or less definite mental symbols
|
|
for frequently returning and concurring sensations, for groups of
|
|
sensations. It is not sufficient to use the same words in order to
|
|
understand one another: we must also employ the same words for the same
|
|
kind of internal experiences, we must in the end have experiences IN
|
|
COMMON. On this account the people of one nation understand one another
|
|
better than those belonging to different nations, even when they use
|
|
the same language; or rather, when people have lived long together under
|
|
similar conditions (of climate, soil, danger, requirement, toil) there
|
|
ORIGINATES therefrom an entity that "understands itself"--namely, a
|
|
nation. In all souls a like number of frequently recurring experiences
|
|
have gained the upper hand over those occurring more rarely: about
|
|
these matters people understand one another rapidly and always more
|
|
rapidly--the history of language is the history of a process of
|
|
abbreviation; on the basis of this quick comprehension people always
|
|
unite closer and closer. The greater the danger, the greater is the
|
|
need of agreeing quickly and readily about what is necessary; not to
|
|
misunderstand one another in danger--that is what cannot at all be
|
|
dispensed with in intercourse. Also in all loves and friendships one has
|
|
the experience that nothing of the kind continues when the discovery
|
|
has been made that in using the same words, one of the two parties has
|
|
feelings, thoughts, intuitions, wishes, or fears different from those of
|
|
the other. (The fear of the "eternal misunderstanding": that is the good
|
|
genius which so often keeps persons of different sexes from too
|
|
hasty attachments, to which sense and heart prompt them--and NOT some
|
|
Schopenhauerian "genius of the species"!) Whichever groups of sensations
|
|
within a soul awaken most readily, begin to speak, and give the word of
|
|
command--these decide as to the general order of rank of its values, and
|
|
determine ultimately its list of desirable things. A man's estimates of
|
|
value betray something of the STRUCTURE of his soul, and wherein it
|
|
sees its conditions of life, its intrinsic needs. Supposing now that
|
|
necessity has from all time drawn together only such men as could
|
|
express similar requirements and similar experiences by similar symbols,
|
|
it results on the whole that the easy COMMUNICABILITY of need,
|
|
which implies ultimately the undergoing only of average and COMMON
|
|
experiences, must have been the most potent of all the forces which
|
|
have hitherto operated upon mankind. The more similar, the more ordinary
|
|
people, have always had and are still having the advantage; the more
|
|
select, more refined, more unique, and difficultly comprehensible, are
|
|
liable to stand alone; they succumb to accidents in their isolation, and
|
|
seldom propagate themselves. One must appeal to immense opposing forces,
|
|
in order to thwart this natural, all-too-natural PROGRESSUS IN SIMILE,
|
|
the evolution of man to the similar, the ordinary, the average, the
|
|
gregarious--to the IGNOBLE--!
|
|
|
|
269. The more a psychologist--a born, an unavoidable psychologist
|
|
and soul-diviner--turns his attention to the more select cases and
|
|
individuals, the greater is his danger of being suffocated by sympathy:
|
|
he NEEDS sternness and cheerfulness more than any other man. For
|
|
the corruption, the ruination of higher men, of the more unusually
|
|
constituted souls, is in fact, the rule: it is dreadful to have such a
|
|
rule always before one's eyes. The manifold torment of the psychologist
|
|
who has discovered this ruination, who discovers once, and then
|
|
discovers ALMOST repeatedly throughout all history, this universal
|
|
inner "desperateness" of higher men, this eternal "too late!" in every
|
|
sense--may perhaps one day be the cause of his turning with
|
|
bitterness against his own lot, and of his making an attempt at
|
|
self-destruction--of his "going to ruin" himself. One may perceive
|
|
in almost every psychologist a tell-tale inclination for delightful
|
|
intercourse with commonplace and well-ordered men; the fact is thereby
|
|
disclosed that he always requires healing, that he needs a sort
|
|
of flight and forgetfulness, away from what his insight and
|
|
incisiveness--from what his "business"--has laid upon his conscience.
|
|
The fear of his memory is peculiar to him. He is easily silenced by the
|
|
judgment of others; he hears with unmoved countenance how people honour,
|
|
admire, love, and glorify, where he has PERCEIVED--or he even conceals
|
|
his silence by expressly assenting to some plausible opinion. Perhaps
|
|
the paradox of his situation becomes so dreadful that, precisely
|
|
where he has learnt GREAT SYMPATHY, together with great CONTEMPT, the
|
|
multitude, the educated, and the visionaries, have on their part learnt
|
|
great reverence--reverence for "great men" and marvelous animals, for
|
|
the sake of whom one blesses and honours the fatherland, the earth, the
|
|
dignity of mankind, and one's own self, to whom one points the young,
|
|
and in view of whom one educates them. And who knows but in all great
|
|
instances hitherto just the same happened: that the multitude worshipped
|
|
a God, and that the "God" was only a poor sacrificial animal! SUCCESS
|
|
has always been the greatest liar--and the "work" itself is a success;
|
|
the great statesman, the conqueror, the discoverer, are disguised in
|
|
their creations until they are unrecognizable; the "work" of the artist,
|
|
of the philosopher, only invents him who has created it, is REPUTED
|
|
to have created it; the "great men," as they are reverenced, are poor
|
|
little fictions composed afterwards; in the world of historical values
|
|
spurious coinage PREVAILS. Those great poets, for example, such as
|
|
Byron, Musset, Poe, Leopardi, Kleist, Gogol (I do not venture to mention
|
|
much greater names, but I have them in my mind), as they now appear, and
|
|
were perhaps obliged to be: men of the moment, enthusiastic, sensuous,
|
|
and childish, light-minded and impulsive in their trust and distrust;
|
|
with souls in which usually some flaw has to be concealed; often taking
|
|
revenge with their works for an internal defilement, often seeking
|
|
forgetfulness in their soaring from a too true memory, often lost in
|
|
the mud and almost in love with it, until they become like the
|
|
Will-o'-the-Wisps around the swamps, and PRETEND TO BE stars--the people
|
|
then call them idealists,--often struggling with protracted disgust,
|
|
with an ever-reappearing phantom of disbelief, which makes them cold,
|
|
and obliges them to languish for GLORIA and devour "faith as it is"
|
|
out of the hands of intoxicated adulators:--what a TORMENT these great
|
|
artists are and the so-called higher men in general, to him who has once
|
|
found them out! It is thus conceivable that it is just from woman--who
|
|
is clairvoyant in the world of suffering, and also unfortunately eager
|
|
to help and save to an extent far beyond her powers--that THEY have
|
|
learnt so readily those outbreaks of boundless devoted SYMPATHY, which
|
|
the multitude, above all the reverent multitude, do not understand,
|
|
and overwhelm with prying and self-gratifying interpretations. This
|
|
sympathizing invariably deceives itself as to its power; woman would
|
|
like to believe that love can do EVERYTHING--it is the SUPERSTITION
|
|
peculiar to her. Alas, he who knows the heart finds out how poor,
|
|
helpless, pretentious, and blundering even the best and deepest love
|
|
is--he finds that it rather DESTROYS than saves!--It is possible that
|
|
under the holy fable and travesty of the life of Jesus there is hidden
|
|
one of the most painful cases of the martyrdom of KNOWLEDGE ABOUT LOVE:
|
|
the martyrdom of the most innocent and most craving heart, that
|
|
never had enough of any human love, that DEMANDED love, that demanded
|
|
inexorably and frantically to be loved and nothing else, with terrible
|
|
outbursts against those who refused him their love; the story of a poor
|
|
soul insatiated and insatiable in love, that had to invent hell to send
|
|
thither those who WOULD NOT love him--and that at last, enlightened
|
|
about human love, had to invent a God who is entire love, entire
|
|
CAPACITY for love--who takes pity on human love, because it is so
|
|
paltry, so ignorant! He who has such sentiments, he who has such
|
|
KNOWLEDGE about love--SEEKS for death!--But why should one deal with
|
|
such painful matters? Provided, of course, that one is not obliged to do
|
|
so.
|
|
|
|
270. The intellectual haughtiness and loathing of every man who has
|
|
suffered deeply--it almost determines the order of rank HOW deeply men
|
|
can suffer--the chilling certainty, with which he is thoroughly imbued
|
|
and coloured, that by virtue of his suffering he KNOWS MORE than the
|
|
shrewdest and wisest can ever know, that he has been familiar with,
|
|
and "at home" in, many distant, dreadful worlds of which "YOU know
|
|
nothing"!--this silent intellectual haughtiness of the sufferer, this
|
|
pride of the elect of knowledge, of the "initiated," of the almost
|
|
sacrificed, finds all forms of disguise necessary to protect itself from
|
|
contact with officious and sympathizing hands, and in general from all
|
|
that is not its equal in suffering. Profound suffering makes noble:
|
|
it separates.--One of the most refined forms of disguise is Epicurism,
|
|
along with a certain ostentatious boldness of taste, which takes
|
|
suffering lightly, and puts itself on the defensive against all that
|
|
is sorrowful and profound. They are "gay men" who make use of gaiety,
|
|
because they are misunderstood on account of it--they WISH to be
|
|
misunderstood. There are "scientific minds" who make use of science,
|
|
because it gives a gay appearance, and because scientificness leads to
|
|
the conclusion that a person is superficial--they WISH to mislead to a
|
|
false conclusion. There are free insolent minds which would fain conceal
|
|
and deny that they are broken, proud, incurable hearts (the cynicism of
|
|
Hamlet--the case of Galiani); and occasionally folly itself is the mask
|
|
of an unfortunate OVER-ASSURED knowledge.--From which it follows that it
|
|
is the part of a more refined humanity to have reverence "for the mask,"
|
|
and not to make use of psychology and curiosity in the wrong place.
|
|
|
|
271. That which separates two men most profoundly is a different sense
|
|
and grade of purity. What does it matter about all their honesty and
|
|
reciprocal usefulness, what does it matter about all their mutual
|
|
good-will: the fact still remains--they "cannot smell each other!" The
|
|
highest instinct for purity places him who is affected with it in the
|
|
most extraordinary and dangerous isolation, as a saint: for it is just
|
|
holiness--the highest spiritualization of the instinct in question. Any
|
|
kind of cognizance of an indescribable excess in the joy of the bath,
|
|
any kind of ardour or thirst which perpetually impels the soul out
|
|
of night into the morning, and out of gloom, out of "affliction" into
|
|
clearness, brightness, depth, and refinement:--just as much as such a
|
|
tendency DISTINGUISHES--it is a noble tendency--it also SEPARATES.--The
|
|
pity of the saint is pity for the FILTH of the human, all-too-human.
|
|
And there are grades and heights where pity itself is regarded by him as
|
|
impurity, as filth.
|
|
|
|
272. Signs of nobility: never to think of lowering our duties to the
|
|
rank of duties for everybody; to be unwilling to renounce or to share
|
|
our responsibilities; to count our prerogatives, and the exercise of
|
|
them, among our DUTIES.
|
|
|
|
273. A man who strives after great things, looks upon every one whom
|
|
he encounters on his way either as a means of advance, or a delay and
|
|
hindrance--or as a temporary resting-place. His peculiar lofty BOUNTY
|
|
to his fellow-men is only possible when he attains his elevation and
|
|
dominates. Impatience, and the consciousness of being always condemned
|
|
to comedy up to that time--for even strife is a comedy, and conceals the
|
|
end, as every means does--spoil all intercourse for him; this kind of
|
|
man is acquainted with solitude, and what is most poisonous in it.
|
|
|
|
274. THE PROBLEM OF THOSE WHO WAIT.--Happy chances are necessary, and
|
|
many incalculable elements, in order that a higher man in whom the
|
|
solution of a problem is dormant, may yet take action, or "break forth,"
|
|
as one might say--at the right moment. On an average it DOES NOT happen;
|
|
and in all corners of the earth there are waiting ones sitting who
|
|
hardly know to what extent they are waiting, and still less that they
|
|
wait in vain. Occasionally, too, the waking call comes too late--the
|
|
chance which gives "permission" to take action--when their best youth,
|
|
and strength for action have been used up in sitting still; and how many
|
|
a one, just as he "sprang up," has found with horror that his limbs are
|
|
benumbed and his spirits are now too heavy! "It is too late," he has
|
|
said to himself--and has become self-distrustful and henceforth for ever
|
|
useless.--In the domain of genius, may not the "Raphael without
|
|
hands" (taking the expression in its widest sense) perhaps not be the
|
|
exception, but the rule?--Perhaps genius is by no means so rare: but
|
|
rather the five hundred HANDS which it requires in order to tyrannize
|
|
over the [GREEK INSERTED HERE], "the right time"--in order to take
|
|
chance by the forelock!
|
|
|
|
275. He who does not WISH to see the height of a man, looks all the
|
|
more sharply at what is low in him, and in the foreground--and thereby
|
|
betrays himself.
|
|
|
|
276. In all kinds of injury and loss the lower and coarser soul is
|
|
better off than the nobler soul: the dangers of the latter must be
|
|
greater, the probability that it will come to grief and perish is in
|
|
fact immense, considering the multiplicity of the conditions of its
|
|
existence.--In a lizard a finger grows again which has been lost; not so
|
|
in man.--
|
|
|
|
277. It is too bad! Always the old story! When a man has finished
|
|
building his house, he finds that he has learnt unawares something
|
|
which he OUGHT absolutely to have known before he--began to build. The
|
|
eternal, fatal "Too late!" The melancholia of everything COMPLETED--!
|
|
|
|
278.--Wanderer, who art thou? I see thee follow thy path without scorn,
|
|
without love, with unfathomable eyes, wet and sad as a plummet which has
|
|
returned to the light insatiated out of every depth--what did it seek
|
|
down there?--with a bosom that never sighs, with lips that conceal their
|
|
loathing, with a hand which only slowly grasps: who art thou? what
|
|
hast thou done? Rest thee here: this place has hospitality for every
|
|
one--refresh thyself! And whoever thou art, what is it that now pleases
|
|
thee? What will serve to refresh thee? Only name it, whatever I have
|
|
I offer thee! "To refresh me? To refresh me? Oh, thou prying one,
|
|
what sayest thou! But give me, I pray thee---" What? what? Speak out!
|
|
"Another mask! A second mask!"
|
|
|
|
279. Men of profound sadness betray themselves when they are happy: they
|
|
have a mode of seizing upon happiness as though they would choke and
|
|
strangle it, out of jealousy--ah, they know only too well that it will
|
|
flee from them!
|
|
|
|
280. "Bad! Bad! What? Does he not--go back?" Yes! But you misunderstand
|
|
him when you complain about it. He goes back like every one who is about
|
|
to make a great spring.
|
|
|
|
281.--"Will people believe it of me? But I insist that they believe it
|
|
of me: I have always thought very unsatisfactorily of myself and about
|
|
myself, only in very rare cases, only compulsorily, always without
|
|
delight in 'the subject,' ready to digress from 'myself,' and always
|
|
without faith in the result, owing to an unconquerable distrust of the
|
|
POSSIBILITY of self-knowledge, which has led me so far as to feel a
|
|
CONTRADICTIO IN ADJECTO even in the idea of 'direct knowledge' which
|
|
theorists allow themselves:--this matter of fact is almost the most
|
|
certain thing I know about myself. There must be a sort of repugnance
|
|
in me to BELIEVE anything definite about myself.--Is there perhaps
|
|
some enigma therein? Probably; but fortunately nothing for my own
|
|
teeth.--Perhaps it betrays the species to which I belong?--but not to
|
|
myself, as is sufficiently agreeable to me."
|
|
|
|
282.--"But what has happened to you?"--"I do not know," he said,
|
|
hesitatingly; "perhaps the Harpies have flown over my table."--It
|
|
sometimes happens nowadays that a gentle, sober, retiring man becomes
|
|
suddenly mad, breaks the plates, upsets the table, shrieks, raves,
|
|
and shocks everybody--and finally withdraws, ashamed, and raging at
|
|
himself--whither? for what purpose? To famish apart? To suffocate with
|
|
his memories?--To him who has the desires of a lofty and dainty soul,
|
|
and only seldom finds his table laid and his food prepared, the danger
|
|
will always be great--nowadays, however, it is extraordinarily so.
|
|
Thrown into the midst of a noisy and plebeian age, with which he does
|
|
not like to eat out of the same dish, he may readily perish of hunger
|
|
and thirst--or, should he nevertheless finally "fall to," of sudden
|
|
nausea.--We have probably all sat at tables to which we did not belong;
|
|
and precisely the most spiritual of us, who are most difficult to
|
|
nourish, know the dangerous DYSPEPSIA which originates from a sudden
|
|
insight and disillusionment about our food and our messmates--the
|
|
AFTER-DINNER NAUSEA.
|
|
|
|
283. If one wishes to praise at all, it is a delicate and at the
|
|
same time a noble self-control, to praise only where one DOES NOT
|
|
agree--otherwise in fact one would praise oneself, which is contrary
|
|
to good taste:--a self-control, to be sure, which offers excellent
|
|
opportunity and provocation to constant MISUNDERSTANDING. To be able to
|
|
allow oneself this veritable luxury of taste and morality, one must
|
|
not live among intellectual imbeciles, but rather among men whose
|
|
misunderstandings and mistakes amuse by their refinement--or one will
|
|
have to pay dearly for it!--"He praises me, THEREFORE he acknowledges me
|
|
to be right"--this asinine method of inference spoils half of the life
|
|
of us recluses, for it brings the asses into our neighbourhood and
|
|
friendship.
|
|
|
|
284. To live in a vast and proud tranquility; always beyond... To have,
|
|
or not to have, one's emotions, one's For and Against, according to
|
|
choice; to lower oneself to them for hours; to SEAT oneself on them as
|
|
upon horses, and often as upon asses:--for one must know how to make
|
|
use of their stupidity as well as of their fire. To conserve one's
|
|
three hundred foregrounds; also one's black spectacles: for there are
|
|
circumstances when nobody must look into our eyes, still less into our
|
|
"motives." And to choose for company that roguish and cheerful vice,
|
|
politeness. And to remain master of one's four virtues, courage,
|
|
insight, sympathy, and solitude. For solitude is a virtue with us, as
|
|
a sublime bent and bias to purity, which divines that in the contact of
|
|
man and man--"in society"--it must be unavoidably impure. All society
|
|
makes one somehow, somewhere, or sometime--"commonplace."
|
|
|
|
285. The greatest events and thoughts--the greatest thoughts, however,
|
|
are the greatest events--are longest in being comprehended: the
|
|
generations which are contemporary with them do not EXPERIENCE such
|
|
events--they live past them. Something happens there as in the realm of
|
|
stars. The light of the furthest stars is longest in reaching man; and
|
|
before it has arrived man DENIES--that there are stars there. "How
|
|
many centuries does a mind require to be understood?"--that is also a
|
|
standard, one also makes a gradation of rank and an etiquette therewith,
|
|
such as is necessary for mind and for star.
|
|
|
|
286. "Here is the prospect free, the mind exalted." [FOOTNOTE: Goethe's
|
|
"Faust," Part II, Act V. The words of Dr. Marianus.]--But there is a
|
|
reverse kind of man, who is also upon a height, and has also a free
|
|
prospect--but looks DOWNWARDS.
|
|
|
|
287. What is noble? What does the word "noble" still mean for us
|
|
nowadays? How does the noble man betray himself, how is he recognized
|
|
under this heavy overcast sky of the commencing plebeianism, by which
|
|
everything is rendered opaque and leaden?--It is not his actions which
|
|
establish his claim--actions are always ambiguous, always inscrutable;
|
|
neither is it his "works." One finds nowadays among artists and scholars
|
|
plenty of those who betray by their works that a profound longing for
|
|
nobleness impels them; but this very NEED of nobleness is radically
|
|
different from the needs of the noble soul itself, and is in fact the
|
|
eloquent and dangerous sign of the lack thereof. It is not the works,
|
|
but the BELIEF which is here decisive and determines the order of
|
|
rank--to employ once more an old religious formula with a new and deeper
|
|
meaning--it is some fundamental certainty which a noble soul has about
|
|
itself, something which is not to be sought, is not to be found, and
|
|
perhaps, also, is not to be lost.--THE NOBLE SOUL HAS REVERENCE FOR
|
|
ITSELF.--
|
|
|
|
288. There are men who are unavoidably intellectual, let them turn
|
|
and twist themselves as they will, and hold their hands before their
|
|
treacherous eyes--as though the hand were not a betrayer; it always
|
|
comes out at last that they have something which they hide--namely,
|
|
intellect. One of the subtlest means of deceiving, at least as long as
|
|
possible, and of successfully representing oneself to be stupider
|
|
than one really is--which in everyday life is often as desirable as
|
|
an umbrella,--is called ENTHUSIASM, including what belongs to it, for
|
|
instance, virtue. For as Galiani said, who was obliged to know it: VERTU
|
|
EST ENTHOUSIASME.
|
|
|
|
289. In the writings of a recluse one always hears something of the echo
|
|
of the wilderness, something of the murmuring tones and timid vigilance
|
|
of solitude; in his strongest words, even in his cry itself, there
|
|
sounds a new and more dangerous kind of silence, of concealment. He who
|
|
has sat day and night, from year's end to year's end, alone with his
|
|
soul in familiar discord and discourse, he who has become a cave-bear,
|
|
or a treasure-seeker, or a treasure-guardian and dragon in his cave--it
|
|
may be a labyrinth, but can also be a gold-mine--his ideas themselves
|
|
eventually acquire a twilight-colour of their own, and an odour, as much
|
|
of the depth as of the mould, something uncommunicative and repulsive,
|
|
which blows chilly upon every passer-by. The recluse does not believe
|
|
that a philosopher--supposing that a philosopher has always in the first
|
|
place been a recluse--ever expressed his actual and ultimate opinions in
|
|
books: are not books written precisely to hide what is in us?--indeed,
|
|
he will doubt whether a philosopher CAN have "ultimate and actual"
|
|
opinions at all; whether behind every cave in him there is not, and must
|
|
necessarily be, a still deeper cave: an ampler, stranger, richer
|
|
world beyond the surface, an abyss behind every bottom, beneath every
|
|
"foundation." Every philosophy is a foreground philosophy--this is a
|
|
recluse's verdict: "There is something arbitrary in the fact that the
|
|
PHILOSOPHER came to a stand here, took a retrospect, and looked around;
|
|
that he HERE laid his spade aside and did not dig any deeper--there
|
|
is also something suspicious in it." Every philosophy also CONCEALS a
|
|
philosophy; every opinion is also a LURKING-PLACE, every word is also a
|
|
MASK.
|
|
|
|
290. Every deep thinker is more afraid of being understood than of being
|
|
misunderstood. The latter perhaps wounds his vanity; but the former
|
|
wounds his heart, his sympathy, which always says: "Ah, why would you
|
|
also have as hard a time of it as I have?"
|
|
|
|
291. Man, a COMPLEX, mendacious, artful, and inscrutable animal, uncanny
|
|
to the other animals by his artifice and sagacity, rather than by his
|
|
strength, has invented the good conscience in order finally to enjoy his
|
|
soul as something SIMPLE; and the whole of morality is a long, audacious
|
|
falsification, by virtue of which generally enjoyment at the sight of
|
|
the soul becomes possible. From this point of view there is perhaps much
|
|
more in the conception of "art" than is generally believed.
|
|
|
|
292. A philosopher: that is a man who constantly experiences, sees,
|
|
hears, suspects, hopes, and dreams extraordinary things; who is struck
|
|
by his own thoughts as if they came from the outside, from above and
|
|
below, as a species of events and lightning-flashes PECULIAR TO HIM; who
|
|
is perhaps himself a storm pregnant with new lightnings; a portentous
|
|
man, around whom there is always rumbling and mumbling and gaping and
|
|
something uncanny going on. A philosopher: alas, a being who often
|
|
runs away from himself, is often afraid of himself--but whose curiosity
|
|
always makes him "come to himself" again.
|
|
|
|
293. A man who says: "I like that, I take it for my own, and mean to
|
|
guard and protect it from every one"; a man who can conduct a case,
|
|
carry out a resolution, remain true to an opinion, keep hold of a woman,
|
|
punish and overthrow insolence; a man who has his indignation and his
|
|
sword, and to whom the weak, the suffering, the oppressed, and even the
|
|
animals willingly submit and naturally belong; in short, a man who is a
|
|
MASTER by nature--when such a man has sympathy, well! THAT sympathy has
|
|
value! But of what account is the sympathy of those who suffer! Or of
|
|
those even who preach sympathy! There is nowadays, throughout almost the
|
|
whole of Europe, a sickly irritability and sensitiveness towards pain,
|
|
and also a repulsive irrestrainableness in complaining, an effeminizing,
|
|
which, with the aid of religion and philosophical nonsense, seeks
|
|
to deck itself out as something superior--there is a regular cult of
|
|
suffering. The UNMANLINESS of that which is called "sympathy" by such
|
|
groups of visionaries, is always, I believe, the first thing that
|
|
strikes the eye.--One must resolutely and radically taboo this latest
|
|
form of bad taste; and finally I wish people to put the good amulet,
|
|
"GAI SABER" ("gay science," in ordinary language), on heart and neck, as
|
|
a protection against it.
|
|
|
|
294. THE OLYMPIAN VICE.--Despite the philosopher who, as a genuine
|
|
Englishman, tried to bring laughter into bad repute in all thinking
|
|
minds--"Laughing is a bad infirmity of human nature, which every
|
|
thinking mind will strive to overcome" (Hobbes),--I would even
|
|
allow myself to rank philosophers according to the quality of their
|
|
laughing--up to those who are capable of GOLDEN laughter. And supposing
|
|
that Gods also philosophize, which I am strongly inclined to believe,
|
|
owing to many reasons--I have no doubt that they also know how to laugh
|
|
thereby in an overman-like and new fashion--and at the expense of all
|
|
serious things! Gods are fond of ridicule: it seems that they cannot
|
|
refrain from laughter even in holy matters.
|
|
|
|
295. The genius of the heart, as that great mysterious one possesses
|
|
it, the tempter-god and born rat-catcher of consciences, whose voice can
|
|
descend into the nether-world of every soul, who neither speaks a word
|
|
nor casts a glance in which there may not be some motive or touch
|
|
of allurement, to whose perfection it pertains that he knows how to
|
|
appear,--not as he is, but in a guise which acts as an ADDITIONAL
|
|
constraint on his followers to press ever closer to him, to follow him
|
|
more cordially and thoroughly;--the genius of the heart, which imposes
|
|
silence and attention on everything loud and self-conceited, which
|
|
smoothes rough souls and makes them taste a new longing--to lie placid
|
|
as a mirror, that the deep heavens may be reflected in them;--the genius
|
|
of the heart, which teaches the clumsy and too hasty hand to hesitate,
|
|
and to grasp more delicately; which scents the hidden and forgotten
|
|
treasure, the drop of goodness and sweet spirituality under thick dark
|
|
ice, and is a divining-rod for every grain of gold, long buried and
|
|
imprisoned in mud and sand; the genius of the heart, from contact with
|
|
which every one goes away richer; not favoured or surprised, not as
|
|
though gratified and oppressed by the good things of others; but richer
|
|
in himself, newer than before, broken up, blown upon, and sounded by a
|
|
thawing wind; more uncertain, perhaps, more delicate, more fragile, more
|
|
bruised, but full of hopes which as yet lack names, full of a new will
|
|
and current, full of a new ill-will and counter-current... but what am I
|
|
doing, my friends? Of whom am I talking to you? Have I forgotten myself
|
|
so far that I have not even told you his name? Unless it be that you
|
|
have already divined of your own accord who this questionable God
|
|
and spirit is, that wishes to be PRAISED in such a manner? For, as it
|
|
happens to every one who from childhood onward has always been on his
|
|
legs, and in foreign lands, I have also encountered on my path many
|
|
strange and dangerous spirits; above all, however, and again and again,
|
|
the one of whom I have just spoken: in fact, no less a personage than
|
|
the God DIONYSUS, the great equivocator and tempter, to whom, as you
|
|
know, I once offered in all secrecy and reverence my first-fruits--the
|
|
last, as it seems to me, who has offered a SACRIFICE to him, for I
|
|
have found no one who could understand what I was then doing. In
|
|
the meantime, however, I have learned much, far too much, about the
|
|
philosophy of this God, and, as I said, from mouth to mouth--I, the last
|
|
disciple and initiate of the God Dionysus: and perhaps I might at last
|
|
begin to give you, my friends, as far as I am allowed, a little taste of
|
|
this philosophy? In a hushed voice, as is but seemly: for it has to do
|
|
with much that is secret, new, strange, wonderful, and uncanny. The
|
|
very fact that Dionysus is a philosopher, and that therefore Gods also
|
|
philosophize, seems to me a novelty which is not unensnaring, and might
|
|
perhaps arouse suspicion precisely among philosophers;--among you, my
|
|
friends, there is less to be said against it, except that it comes too
|
|
late and not at the right time; for, as it has been disclosed to me, you
|
|
are loth nowadays to believe in God and gods. It may happen, too, that
|
|
in the frankness of my story I must go further than is agreeable to the
|
|
strict usages of your ears? Certainly the God in question went further,
|
|
very much further, in such dialogues, and was always many paces ahead of
|
|
me... Indeed, if it were allowed, I should have to give him, according
|
|
to human usage, fine ceremonious tides of lustre and merit, I should
|
|
have to extol his courage as investigator and discoverer, his fearless
|
|
honesty, truthfulness, and love of wisdom. But such a God does not know
|
|
what to do with all that respectable trumpery and pomp. "Keep that," he
|
|
would say, "for thyself and those like thee, and whoever else require
|
|
it! I--have no reason to cover my nakedness!" One suspects that this
|
|
kind of divinity and philosopher perhaps lacks shame?--He once said:
|
|
"Under certain circumstances I love mankind"--and referred thereby to
|
|
Ariadne, who was present; "in my opinion man is an agreeable, brave,
|
|
inventive animal, that has not his equal upon earth, he makes his way
|
|
even through all labyrinths. I like man, and often think how I can
|
|
still further advance him, and make him stronger, more evil, and more
|
|
profound."--"Stronger, more evil, and more profound?" I asked in horror.
|
|
"Yes," he said again, "stronger, more evil, and more profound; also more
|
|
beautiful"--and thereby the tempter-god smiled with his halcyon smile,
|
|
as though he had just paid some charming compliment. One here sees at
|
|
once that it is not only shame that this divinity lacks;--and in general
|
|
there are good grounds for supposing that in some things the Gods could
|
|
all of them come to us men for instruction. We men are--more human.--
|
|
|
|
296. Alas! what are you, after all, my written and painted thoughts! Not
|
|
long ago you were so variegated, young and malicious, so full of thorns
|
|
and secret spices, that you made me sneeze and laugh--and now? You
|
|
have already doffed your novelty, and some of you, I fear, are ready
|
|
to become truths, so immortal do they look, so pathetically honest, so
|
|
tedious! And was it ever otherwise? What then do we write and paint,
|
|
we mandarins with Chinese brush, we immortalisers of things which LEND
|
|
themselves to writing, what are we alone capable of painting? Alas, only
|
|
that which is just about to fade and begins to lose its odour! Alas,
|
|
only exhausted and departing storms and belated yellow sentiments! Alas,
|
|
only birds strayed and fatigued by flight, which now let themselves be
|
|
captured with the hand--with OUR hand! We immortalize what cannot live
|
|
and fly much longer, things only which are exhausted and mellow! And it
|
|
is only for your AFTERNOON, you, my written and painted thoughts, for
|
|
which alone I have colours, many colours, perhaps, many variegated
|
|
softenings, and fifty yellows and browns and greens and reds;--but
|
|
nobody will divine thereby how ye looked in your morning, you sudden
|
|
sparks and marvels of my solitude, you, my old, beloved--EVIL thoughts!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
FROM THE HEIGHTS
|
|
|
|
By F W Nietzsche
|
|
|
|
Translated by L. A. Magnus
|
|
|
|
|
|
1.
|
|
|
|
MIDDAY of Life! Oh, season of delight!
|
|
My summer's park!
|
|
Uneaseful joy to look, to lurk, to hark--
|
|
I peer for friends, am ready day and night,--
|
|
Where linger ye, my friends? The time is right!
|
|
|
|
2.
|
|
|
|
Is not the glacier's grey today for you
|
|
Rose-garlanded?
|
|
The brooklet seeks you, wind, cloud, with longing thread
|
|
And thrust themselves yet higher to the blue,
|
|
To spy for you from farthest eagle's view.
|
|
|
|
3.
|
|
|
|
My table was spread out for you on high--
|
|
Who dwelleth so
|
|
Star-near, so near the grisly pit below?--
|
|
My realm--what realm hath wider boundary?
|
|
My honey--who hath sipped its fragrancy?
|
|
|
|
4.
|
|
|
|
Friends, ye are there! Woe me,--yet I am not
|
|
He whom ye seek?
|
|
Ye stare and stop--better your wrath could speak!
|
|
I am not I? Hand, gait, face, changed? And what
|
|
I am, to you my friends, now am I not?
|
|
|
|
5.
|
|
|
|
Am I an other? Strange am I to Me?
|
|
Yet from Me sprung?
|
|
A wrestler, by himself too oft self-wrung?
|
|
Hindering too oft my own self's potency,
|
|
Wounded and hampered by self-victory?
|
|
|
|
6.
|
|
|
|
I sought where-so the wind blows keenest. There
|
|
I learned to dwell
|
|
Where no man dwells, on lonesome ice-lorn fell,
|
|
And unlearned Man and God and curse and prayer?
|
|
Became a ghost haunting the glaciers bare?
|
|
|
|
7.
|
|
|
|
Ye, my old friends! Look! Ye turn pale, filled o'er
|
|
With love and fear!
|
|
Go! Yet not in wrath. Ye could ne'er live here.
|
|
Here in the farthest realm of ice and scaur,
|
|
A huntsman must one be, like chamois soar.
|
|
|
|
8.
|
|
|
|
An evil huntsman was I? See how taut
|
|
My bow was bent!
|
|
Strongest was he by whom such bolt were sent--
|
|
Woe now! That arrow is with peril fraught,
|
|
Perilous as none.--Have yon safe home ye sought!
|
|
|
|
9.
|
|
|
|
Ye go! Thou didst endure enough, oh, heart;--
|
|
Strong was thy hope;
|
|
Unto new friends thy portals widely ope,
|
|
Let old ones be. Bid memory depart!
|
|
Wast thou young then, now--better young thou art!
|
|
|
|
10.
|
|
|
|
What linked us once together, one hope's tie--
|
|
(Who now doth con
|
|
Those lines, now fading, Love once wrote thereon?)--
|
|
Is like a parchment, which the hand is shy
|
|
To touch--like crackling leaves, all seared, all dry.
|
|
|
|
11.
|
|
|
|
Oh! Friends no more! They are--what name for those?--
|
|
Friends' phantom-flight
|
|
Knocking at my heart's window-pane at night,
|
|
Gazing on me, that speaks "We were" and goes,--
|
|
Oh, withered words, once fragrant as the rose!
|
|
|
|
12.
|
|
|
|
Pinings of youth that might not understand!
|
|
For which I pined,
|
|
Which I deemed changed with me, kin of my kind:
|
|
But they grew old, and thus were doomed and banned:
|
|
None but new kith are native of my land!
|
|
|
|
13.
|
|
|
|
Midday of life! My second youth's delight!
|
|
My summer's park!
|
|
Unrestful joy to long, to lurk, to hark!
|
|
I peer for friends!--am ready day and night,
|
|
For my new friends. Come! Come! The time is right!
|
|
|
|
14.
|
|
|
|
This song is done,--the sweet sad cry of rue
|
|
Sang out its end;
|
|
A wizard wrought it, he the timely friend,
|
|
The midday-friend,--no, do not ask me who;
|
|
At midday 'twas, when one became as two.
|
|
|
|
15.
|
|
|
|
We keep our Feast of Feasts, sure of our bourne,
|
|
Our aims self-same:
|
|
The Guest of Guests, friend Zarathustra, came!
|
|
The world now laughs, the grisly veil was torn,
|
|
And Light and Dark were one that wedding-morn.
|
|
|
|
PREFACE.
|
|
|
|
|
|
1
|
|
|
|
It is often enough, and always with great surprise, intimated to me that
|
|
there is something both ordinary and unusual in all my writings, from
|
|
the "Birth of Tragedy" to the recently published "Prelude to a
|
|
Philosophy of the Future": they all contain, I have been told, snares
|
|
and nets for short sighted birds, and something that is almost a
|
|
constant, subtle, incitement to an overturning of habitual opinions and
|
|
of approved customs. What!? Everything is merely--human--all too human?
|
|
With this exclamation my writings are gone through, not without a
|
|
certain dread and mistrust of ethic itself and not without a disposition
|
|
to ask the exponent of evil things if those things be not simply
|
|
misrepresented. My writings have been termed a school of distrust, still
|
|
more of disdain: also, and more happily, of courage, audacity even. And
|
|
in fact, I myself do not believe that anybody ever looked into the world
|
|
with a distrust as deep as mine, seeming, as I do, not simply the timely
|
|
advocate of the devil, but, to employ theological terms, an enemy and
|
|
challenger of God; and whosoever has experienced any of the consequences
|
|
of such deep distrust, anything of the chills and the agonies of
|
|
isolation to which such an unqualified difference of standpoint condemns
|
|
him endowed with it, will also understand how often I must have sought
|
|
relief and self-forgetfulness from any source--through any object of
|
|
veneration or enmity, of scientific seriousness or wanton lightness;
|
|
also why I, when I could not find what I was in need of, had to fashion
|
|
it for myself, counterfeiting it or imagining it (and what poet or
|
|
writer has ever done anything else, and what other purpose can all the
|
|
art in the world possibly have?) That which I always stood most in need
|
|
of in order to effect my cure and self-recovery was faith, faith enough
|
|
not to be thus isolated, not to look at life from so singular a point of
|
|
view--a magic apprehension (in eye and mind) of relationship and
|
|
equality, a calm confidence in friendship, a blindness, free from
|
|
suspicion and questioning, to two sidedness; a pleasure in externals,
|
|
superficialities, the near, the accessible, in all things possessed of
|
|
color, skin and seeming. Perhaps I could be fairly reproached with much
|
|
"art" in this regard, many fine counterfeitings; for example, that,
|
|
wisely or wilfully, I had shut my eyes to Schopenhauer's blind will
|
|
towards ethic, at a time when I was already clear sighted enough on the
|
|
subject of ethic; likewise that I had deceived myself concerning Richard
|
|
Wagner's incurable romanticism, as if it were a beginning and not an
|
|
end; likewise concerning the Greeks, likewise concerning the Germans and
|
|
their future--and there may be, perhaps, a long list of such likewises.
|
|
Granted, however, that all this were true, and with justice urged
|
|
against me, what does it signify, what can it signify in regard to how
|
|
much of the self-sustaining capacity, how much of reason and higher
|
|
protection are embraced in such self-deception?--and how much more
|
|
falsity is still necessary to me that I may therewith always reassure
|
|
myself regarding the luxury of my truth. Enough, I still live; and life
|
|
is not considered now apart from ethic; it _will_ [have] deception; it
|
|
thrives (lebt) on deception ... but am I not beginning to do all over
|
|
again what I have always done, I, the old immoralist, and bird
|
|
snarer--talk unmorally, ultramorally, "beyond good and evil"?
|
|
|
|
|
|
2
|
|
|
|
Thus, then, have I evolved for myself the "free spirits" to whom this
|
|
discouraging-encouraging work, under the general title "Human, All Too
|
|
Human," is dedicated. Such "free spirits" do not really exist and never
|
|
did exist. But I stood in need of them, as I have pointed out, in order
|
|
that some good might be mixed with my evils (illness, loneliness,
|
|
strangeness, _acedia_, incapacity): to serve as gay spirits and
|
|
comrades, with whom one may talk and laugh when one is disposed to talk
|
|
and laugh, and whom one may send to the devil when they grow wearisome.
|
|
They are some compensation for the lack of friends. That such free
|
|
spirits can possibly exist, that our Europe will yet number among her
|
|
sons of to-morrow or of the day after to-morrow, such a brilliant and
|
|
enthusiastic company, alive and palpable and not merely, as in my case,
|
|
fantasms and imaginary shades, I, myself, can by no means doubt. I see
|
|
them already coming, slowly, slowly. May it not be that I am doing a
|
|
little something to expedite their coming when I describe in advance the
|
|
influences under which I see them evolving and the ways along which they
|
|
travel?
|
|
|
|
|
|
3
|
|
|
|
It may be conjectured that a soul in which the type of "free spirit" can
|
|
attain maturity and completeness had its decisive and deciding event in
|
|
the form of a great emancipation or unbinding, and that prior to that
|
|
event it seemed only the more firmly and forever chained to its place
|
|
and pillar. What binds strongest? What cords seem almost unbreakable? In
|
|
the case of mortals of a choice and lofty nature they will be those of
|
|
duty: that reverence, which in youth is most typical, that timidity and
|
|
tenderness in the presence of the traditionally honored and the worthy,
|
|
that gratitude to the soil from which we sprung, for the hand that
|
|
guided us, for the relic before which we were taught to pray--their
|
|
sublimest moments will themselves bind these souls most strongly. The
|
|
great liberation comes suddenly to such prisoners, like an earthquake:
|
|
the young soul is all at once shaken, torn apart, cast forth--it
|
|
comprehends not itself what is taking place. An involuntary onward
|
|
impulse rules them with the mastery of command; a will, a wish are
|
|
developed to go forward, anywhere, at any price; a strong, dangerous
|
|
curiosity regarding an undiscovered world flames and flashes in all
|
|
their being. "Better to die than live _here_"--so sounds the tempting
|
|
voice: and this "here," this "at home" constitutes all they have
|
|
hitherto loved. A sudden dread and distrust of that which they loved, a
|
|
flash of contempt for that which is called their "duty," a mutinous,
|
|
wilful, volcanic-like longing for a far away journey, strange scenes and
|
|
people, annihilation, petrifaction, a hatred surmounting love, perhaps a
|
|
sacrilegious impulse and look backwards, to where they so long prayed
|
|
and loved, perhaps a flush of shame for what they did and at the same
|
|
time an exultation at having done it, an inner, intoxicating,
|
|
delightful tremor in which is betrayed the sense of victory--a victory?
|
|
over what? over whom? a riddle-like victory, fruitful in questioning and
|
|
well worth questioning, but the _first_ victory, for all--such things of
|
|
pain and ill belong to the history of the great liberation. And it is at
|
|
the same time a malady that can destroy a man, this first outbreak of
|
|
strength and will for self-destination, self-valuation, this will for
|
|
free will: and how much illness is forced to the surface in the frantic
|
|
strivings and singularities with which the freedman, the liberated seeks
|
|
henceforth to attest his mastery over things! He roves fiercely around,
|
|
with an unsatisfied longing and whatever objects he may encounter must
|
|
suffer from the perilous expectancy of his pride; he tears to pieces
|
|
whatever attracts him. With a sardonic laugh he overturns whatever he
|
|
finds veiled or protected by any reverential awe: he would see what
|
|
these things look like when they are overturned. It is wilfulness and
|
|
delight in the wilfulness of it, if he now, perhaps, gives his approval
|
|
to that which has heretofore been in ill repute--if, in curiosity and
|
|
experiment, he penetrates stealthily to the most forbidden things. In
|
|
the background during all his plunging and roaming--for he is as
|
|
restless and aimless in his course as if lost in a wilderness--is the
|
|
interrogation mark of a curiosity growing ever more dangerous. "Can we
|
|
not upset every standard? and is good perhaps evil? and God only an
|
|
invention and a subtlety of the devil? Is everything, in the last
|
|
resort, false? And if we are dupes are we not on that very account
|
|
dupers also? _must_ we not be dupers also?" Such reflections lead and
|
|
mislead him, ever further on, ever further away. Solitude, that dread
|
|
goddess and mater saeva cupidinum, encircles and besets him, ever more
|
|
threatening, more violent, more heart breaking--but who to-day knows
|
|
what solitude is?
|
|
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
From this morbid solitude, from the deserts of such trial years, the way
|
|
is yet far to that great, overflowing certainty and healthiness which
|
|
cannot dispense even with sickness as a means and a grappling hook of
|
|
knowledge; to that matured freedom of the spirit which is, in an equal
|
|
degree, self mastery and discipline of the heart, and gives access to
|
|
the path of much and various reflection--to that inner comprehensiveness
|
|
and self satisfaction of over-richness which precludes all danger that
|
|
the spirit has gone astray even in its own path and is sitting
|
|
intoxicated in some corner or other; to that overplus of plastic,
|
|
healing, imitative and restorative power which is the very sign of
|
|
vigorous health, that overplus which confers upon the free spirit the
|
|
perilous prerogative of spending a life in experiment and of running
|
|
adventurous risks: the past-master-privilege of the free spirit. In the
|
|
interval there may be long years of convalescence, years filled with
|
|
many hued painfully-bewitching transformations, dominated and led to the
|
|
goal by a tenacious will for health that is often emboldened to assume
|
|
the guise and the disguise of health. There is a middle ground to this,
|
|
which a man of such destiny can not subsequently recall without emotion;
|
|
he basks in a special fine sun of his own, with a feeling of birdlike
|
|
freedom, birdlike visual power, birdlike irrepressibleness, a something
|
|
extraneous (Drittes) in which curiosity and delicate disdain have
|
|
united. A "free spirit"--this refreshing term is grateful in any mood,
|
|
it almost sets one aglow. One lives--no longer in the bonds of love and
|
|
hate, without a yes or no, here or there indifferently, best pleased to
|
|
evade, to avoid, to beat about, neither advancing nor retreating. One is
|
|
habituated to the bad, like a person who all at once sees a fearful
|
|
hurly-burly _beneath_ him--and one was the counterpart of him who
|
|
bothers himself with things that do not concern him. As a matter of fact
|
|
the free spirit is bothered with mere things--and how many
|
|
things--which no longer _concern_ him.
|
|
|
|
|
|
5
|
|
|
|
A step further in recovery: and the free spirit draws near to life
|
|
again, slowly indeed, almost refractorily, almost distrustfully. There
|
|
is again warmth and mellowness: feeling and fellow feeling acquire
|
|
depth, lambent airs stir all about him. He almost feels: it seems as if
|
|
now for the first time his eyes are open to things _near_. He is in
|
|
amaze and sits hushed: for where had he been? These near and immediate
|
|
things: how changed they seem to him! He looks gratefully back--grateful
|
|
for his wandering, his self exile and severity, his lookings afar and
|
|
his bird flights in the cold heights. How fortunate that he has not,
|
|
like a sensitive, dull home body, remained always "in the house" and "at
|
|
home!" He had been beside himself, beyond a doubt. Now for the first
|
|
time he really sees himself--and what surprises in the process. What
|
|
hitherto unfelt tremors! Yet what joy in the exhaustion, the old
|
|
sickness, the relapses of the convalescent! How it delights him,
|
|
suffering, to sit still, to exercise patience, to lie in the sun! Who so
|
|
well as he appreciates the fact that there comes balmy weather even in
|
|
winter, who delights more in the sunshine athwart the wall? They are
|
|
the most appreciative creatures in the world, and also the most humble,
|
|
these convalescents and lizards, crawling back towards life: there are
|
|
some among them who can let no day slip past them without addressing
|
|
some song of praise to its retreating light. And speaking seriously, it
|
|
is a fundamental cure for all pessimism (the cankerous vice, as is well
|
|
known, of all idealists and humbugs), to become ill in the manner of
|
|
these free spirits, to remain ill quite a while and then bit by bit grow
|
|
healthy--I mean healthier. It is wisdom, worldly wisdom, to administer
|
|
even health to oneself for a long time in small doses.
|
|
|
|
|
|
6
|
|
|
|
About this time it becomes at last possible, amid the flash lights of a
|
|
still unestablished, still precarious health, for the free, the ever
|
|
freer spirit to begin to read the riddle of that great liberation, a
|
|
riddle which has hitherto lingered, obscure, well worth questioning,
|
|
almost impalpable, in his memory. If once he hardly dared to ask "why so
|
|
apart? so alone? renouncing all I loved? renouncing respect itself? why
|
|
this coldness, this suspicion, this hate for one's very virtues?"--now
|
|
he dares, and asks it loudly, already hearing the answer, "you had to
|
|
become master over yourself, master of your own good qualities. Formerly
|
|
they were your masters: but they should be merely your tools along with
|
|
other tools. You had to acquire power over your aye and no and learn to
|
|
hold and withhold them in accordance with your higher aims. You had to
|
|
grasp the perspective of every representation (Werthschätzung)--the
|
|
dislocation, distortion and the apparent end or teleology of the
|
|
horizon, besides whatever else appertains to the perspective: also the
|
|
element of demerit in its relation to opposing merit, and the whole
|
|
intellectual cost of every affirmative, every negative. You had to find
|
|
out the _inevitable_ error[1] in every Yes and in every No, error as
|
|
inseparable from life, life itself as conditioned by the perspective and
|
|
its inaccuracy.[1] Above all, you had to see with your own eyes where
|
|
the error[1] is always greatest: there, namely, where life is littlest,
|
|
narrowest, meanest, least developed and yet cannot help looking upon
|
|
itself as the goal and standard of things, and smugly and ignobly and
|
|
incessantly tearing to tatters all that is highest and greatest and
|
|
richest, and putting the shreds into the form of questions from the
|
|
standpoint of its own well being. You had to see with your own eyes the
|
|
problem of classification, (Rangordnung, regulation concerning rank and
|
|
station) and how strength and sweep and reach of perspective wax upward
|
|
together: You had"--enough, the free spirit knows henceforward which
|
|
"you had" it has obeyed and also what it now can do and what it now, for
|
|
the first time, _dare_.
|
|
|
|
[1] Ungerechtigkeit, literally wrongfulness, injustice, unrighteousness.
|
|
|
|
|
|
7
|
|
|
|
Accordingly, the free spirit works out for itself an answer to that
|
|
riddle of its liberation and concludes by generalizing upon its
|
|
experience in the following fashion: "What I went through everyone must
|
|
go through" in whom any problem is germinated and strives to body itself
|
|
forth. The inner power and inevitability of this problem will assert
|
|
themselves in due course, as in the case of any unsuspected
|
|
pregnancy--long before the spirit has seen this problem in its true
|
|
aspect and learned to call it by its right name. Our destiny exercises
|
|
its influence over us even when, as yet, we have not learned its nature:
|
|
it is our future that lays down the law to our to-day. Granted, that it
|
|
is the problem of classification[2] of which we free spirits may say,
|
|
this is _our_ problem, yet it is only now, in the midday of our life,
|
|
that we fully appreciate what preparations, shifts, trials, ordeals,
|
|
stages, were essential to that problem before it could emerge to our
|
|
view, and why we had to go through the various and contradictory
|
|
longings and satisfactions of body and soul, as circumnavigators and
|
|
adventurers of that inner world called "man"; as surveyors of that
|
|
"higher" and of that "progression"[3] that is also called
|
|
"man"--crowding in everywhere, almost without fear, disdaining nothing,
|
|
missing nothing, testing everything, sifting everything and eliminating
|
|
the chance impurities--until at last we could say, we free spirits:
|
|
"Here--a _new_ problem! Here, a long ladder on the rungs of which we
|
|
ourselves have rested and risen, which we have actually been at times.
|
|
Here is a something higher, a something deeper, a something below us, a
|
|
vastly extensive order, (Ordnung) a comparative classification
|
|
(Rangordnung), that we perceive: here--_our_ problem!"
|
|
|
|
[2] Rangordnung: the meaning is "the problem of grasping the relative
|
|
importance of things."
|
|
|
|
[3] Uebereinander: one over another.
|
|
|
|
|
|
8
|
|
|
|
To what stage in the development just outlined the present book belongs
|
|
(or is assigned) is something that will be hidden from no augur or
|
|
psychologist for an instant. But where are there psychologists to-day?
|
|
In France, certainly; in Russia, perhaps; certainly not in Germany.
|
|
Grounds are not wanting, to be sure, upon which the Germans of to-day
|
|
may adduce this fact to their credit: unhappily for one who in this
|
|
matter is fashioned and mentored in an un-German school! This _German_
|
|
book, which has found its readers in a wide circle of lands and
|
|
peoples--it has been some ten years on its rounds--and which must make
|
|
its way by means of any musical art and tune that will captivate the
|
|
foreign ear as well as the native--this book has been read most
|
|
indifferently in Germany itself and little heeded there: to what is that
|
|
due? "It requires too much," I have been told, "it addresses itself to
|
|
men free from the press of petty obligations, it demands fine and
|
|
trained perceptions, it requires a surplus, a surplus of time, of the
|
|
lightness of heaven and of the heart, of otium in the most unrestricted
|
|
sense: mere good things that we Germans of to-day have not got and
|
|
therefore cannot give." After so graceful a retort, my philosophy bids
|
|
me be silent and ask no more questions: at times, as the proverb says,
|
|
one remains a philosopher only because one says--nothing!
|
|
|
|
Nice, Spring, 1886.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
OF THE FIRST AND LAST THINGS.
|
|
|
|
|
|
1
|
|
|
|
=Chemistry of the Notions and the Feelings.=--Philosophical problems, in
|
|
almost all their aspects, present themselves in the same interrogative
|
|
formula now that they did two thousand years ago: how can a thing
|
|
develop out of its antithesis? for example, the reasonable from the
|
|
non-reasonable, the animate from the inanimate, the logical from the
|
|
illogical, altruism from egoism, disinterestedness from greed, truth
|
|
from error? The metaphysical philosophy formerly steered itself clear of
|
|
this difficulty to such extent as to repudiate the evolution of one
|
|
thing from another and to assign a miraculous origin to what it deemed
|
|
highest and best, due to the very nature and being of the
|
|
"thing-in-itself." The historical philosophy, on the other hand, which
|
|
can no longer be viewed apart from physical science, the youngest of all
|
|
philosophical methods, discovered experimentally (and its results will
|
|
probably always be the same) that there is no antithesis whatever,
|
|
except in the usual exaggerations of popular or metaphysical
|
|
comprehension, and that an error of the reason is at the bottom of such
|
|
contradiction. According to its explanation, there is, strictly
|
|
speaking, neither unselfish conduct, nor a wholly disinterested point of
|
|
view. Both are simply sublimations in which the basic element seems
|
|
almost evaporated and betrays its presence only to the keenest
|
|
observation. All that we need and that could possibly be given us in the
|
|
present state of development of the sciences, is a chemistry of the
|
|
moral, religious, aesthetic conceptions and feeling, as well as of those
|
|
emotions which we experience in the affairs, great and small, of society
|
|
and civilization, and which we are sensible of even in solitude. But
|
|
what if this chemistry established the fact that, even in _its_ domain,
|
|
the most magnificent results were attained with the basest and most
|
|
despised ingredients? Would many feel disposed to continue such
|
|
investigations? Mankind loves to put by the questions of its origin and
|
|
beginning: must one not be almost inhuman in order to follow the
|
|
opposite course?
|
|
|
|
|
|
2
|
|
|
|
=The Traditional Error of Philosophers.=--All philosophers make the
|
|
common mistake of taking contemporary man as their starting point and of
|
|
trying, through an analysis of him, to reach a conclusion. "Man"
|
|
involuntarily presents himself to them as an aeterna veritas as a
|
|
passive element in every hurly-burly, as a fixed standard of things. Yet
|
|
everything uttered by the philosopher on the subject of man is, in the
|
|
last resort, nothing more than a piece of testimony concerning man
|
|
during a very limited period of time. Lack of the historical sense is
|
|
the traditional defect in all philosophers. Many innocently take man in
|
|
his most childish state as fashioned through the influence of certain
|
|
religious and even of certain political developments, as the permanent
|
|
form under which man must be viewed. They will not learn that man has
|
|
evolved,[4] that the intellectual faculty itself is an evolution,
|
|
whereas some philosophers make the whole cosmos out of this intellectual
|
|
faculty. But everything essential in human evolution took place aeons
|
|
ago, long before the four thousand years or so of which we know
|
|
anything: during these man may not have changed very much. However, the
|
|
philosopher ascribes "instinct" to contemporary man and assumes that
|
|
this is one of the unalterable facts regarding man himself, and hence
|
|
affords a clue to the understanding of the universe in general. The
|
|
whole teleology is so planned that man during the last four thousand
|
|
years shall be spoken of as a being existing from all eternity, and
|
|
with reference to whom everything in the cosmos from its very inception
|
|
is naturally ordered. Yet everything evolved: there are no eternal facts
|
|
as there are no absolute truths. Accordingly, historical philosophising
|
|
is henceforth indispensable, and with it honesty of judgment.
|
|
|
|
[4] geworden.
|
|
|
|
|
|
3
|
|
|
|
=Appreciation of Simple Truths.=--It is the characteristic of an
|
|
advanced civilization to set a higher value upon little, simple truths,
|
|
ascertained by scientific method, than upon the pleasing and magnificent
|
|
errors originating in metaphysical and æsthetical epochs and peoples. To
|
|
begin with, the former are spoken of with contempt as if there could be
|
|
no question of comparison respecting them, so rigid, homely, prosaic and
|
|
even discouraging is the aspect of the first, while so beautiful,
|
|
decorative, intoxicating and perhaps beatific appear the last named.
|
|
Nevertheless, the hardwon, the certain, the lasting and, therefore, the
|
|
fertile in new knowledge, is the higher; to hold fast to it is manly and
|
|
evinces courage, directness, endurance. And not only individual men but
|
|
all mankind will by degrees be uplifted to this manliness when they are
|
|
finally habituated to the proper appreciation of tenable, enduring
|
|
knowledge and have lost all faith in inspiration and in the miraculous
|
|
revelation of truth. The reverers of forms, indeed, with their standards
|
|
of beauty and taste, may have good reason to laugh when the appreciation
|
|
of little truths and the scientific spirit begin to prevail, but that
|
|
will be only because their eyes are not yet opened to the charm of the
|
|
utmost simplicity of form or because men though reared in the rightly
|
|
appreciative spirit, will still not be fully permeated by it, so that
|
|
they continue unwittingly imitating ancient forms (and that ill enough,
|
|
as anybody does who no longer feels any interest in a thing). Formerly
|
|
the mind was not brought into play through the medium of exact thought.
|
|
Its serious business lay in the working out of forms and symbols. That
|
|
has now changed. Any seriousness in symbolism is at present the
|
|
indication of a deficient education. As our very acts become more
|
|
intellectual, our tendencies more rational, and our judgment, for
|
|
example, as to what seems reasonable, is very different from what it was
|
|
a hundred years ago: so the forms of our lives grow ever more
|
|
intellectual and, to the old fashioned eye, perhaps, uglier, but only
|
|
because it cannot see that the richness of inner, rational beauty always
|
|
spreads and deepens, and that the inner, rational aspect of all things
|
|
should now be of more consequence to us than the most beautiful
|
|
externality and the most exquisite limning.
|
|
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
=Astrology and the Like.=--It is presumable that the objects of the
|
|
religious, moral, aesthetic and logical notions pertain simply to the
|
|
superficialities of things, although man flatters himself with the
|
|
thought that here at least he is getting to the heart of the cosmos. He
|
|
deceives himself because these things have power to make him so happy
|
|
and so wretched, and so he evinces, in this respect, the same conceit
|
|
that characterises astrology. Astrology presupposes that the heavenly
|
|
bodies are regulated in their movements in harmony with the destiny of
|
|
mortals: the moral man presupposes that that which concerns himself most
|
|
nearly must also be the heart and soul of things.
|
|
|
|
|
|
5
|
|
|
|
=Misconception of Dreams.=--In the dream, mankind, in epochs of crude
|
|
primitive civilization, thought they were introduced to a second,
|
|
substantial world: here we have the source of all metaphysic. Without
|
|
the dream, men would never have been incited to an analysis of the
|
|
world. Even the distinction between soul and body is wholly due to the
|
|
primitive conception of the dream, as also the hypothesis of the
|
|
embodied soul, whence the development of all superstition, and also,
|
|
probably, the belief in god. "The dead still live: for they appear to
|
|
the living in dreams." So reasoned mankind at one time, and through many
|
|
thousands of years.
|
|
|
|
|
|
6
|
|
|
|
=The Scientific Spirit Prevails only Partially, not Wholly.=--The
|
|
specialized, minutest departments of science are dealt with purely
|
|
objectively. But the general universal sciences, considered as a great,
|
|
basic unity, posit the question--truly a very living question--: to what
|
|
purpose? what is the use? Because of this reference to utility they are,
|
|
as a whole, less impersonal than when looked at in their specialized
|
|
aspects. Now in the case of philosophy, as forming the apex of the
|
|
scientific pyramid, this question of the utility of knowledge is
|
|
necessarily brought very conspicuously forward, so that every philosophy
|
|
has, unconsciously, the air of ascribing the highest utility to itself.
|
|
It is for this reason that all philosophies contain such a great amount
|
|
of high flying metaphysic, and such a shrinking from the seeming
|
|
insignificance of the deliverances of physical science: for the
|
|
significance of knowledge in relation to life must be made to appear as
|
|
great as possible. This constitutes the antagonism between the
|
|
specialties of science and philosophy. The latter aims, as art aims, at
|
|
imparting to life and conduct the utmost depth and significance: in the
|
|
former mere knowledge is sought and nothing else--whatever else be
|
|
incidentally obtained. Heretofore there has never been a philosophical
|
|
system in which philosophy itself was not made the apologist of
|
|
knowledge [in the abstract]. On this point, at least, each is optimistic
|
|
and insists that to knowledge the highest utility must be ascribed. They
|
|
are all under the tyranny of logic, which is, from its very nature,
|
|
optimism.
|
|
|
|
|
|
7
|
|
|
|
=The Discordant Element in Science.=--Philosophy severed itself from
|
|
science when it put the question: what is that knowledge of the world
|
|
and of life through which mankind may be made happiest? This happened
|
|
when the Socratic school arose: with the standpoint of _happiness_ the
|
|
arteries of investigating science were compressed too tightly to permit
|
|
of any circulation of the blood--and are so compressed to-day.
|
|
|
|
|
|
8
|
|
|
|
=Pneumatic Explanation of Nature.=[5]--Metaphysic reads the message of
|
|
nature as if it were written purely pneumatically, as the church and its
|
|
learned ones formerly did where the bible was concerned. It requires a
|
|
great deal of expertness to apply to nature the same strict science of
|
|
interpretation that the philologists have devised for all literature,
|
|
and to apply it for the purpose of a simple, direct interpretation of
|
|
the message, and at the same time, not bring out a double meaning. But,
|
|
as in the case of books and literature, errors of exposition are far
|
|
from being completely eliminated, and vestiges of allegorical and
|
|
mystical interpretations are still to be met with in the most cultivated
|
|
circles, so where nature is concerned the case is--actually much worse.
|
|
|
|
[5] Pneumatic is here used in the sense of spiritual. Pneuma being the
|
|
Greek word in the New Testament for the Holy Spirit.--Ed.
|
|
|
|
|
|
9
|
|
|
|
=Metaphysical World.=--It is true, there may be a metaphysical world;
|
|
the absolute possibility of it can scarcely be disputed. We see all
|
|
things through the medium of the human head and we cannot well cut off
|
|
this head: although there remains the question what part of the world
|
|
would be left after it had been cut off. But that is a purely abstract
|
|
scientific problem and one not much calculated to give men uneasiness:
|
|
yet everything that has heretofore made metaphysical assumptions
|
|
valuable, fearful or delightful to men, all that gave rise to them is
|
|
passion, error and self deception: the worst systems of knowledge, not
|
|
the best, pin their tenets of belief thereto. When such methods are once
|
|
brought to view as the basis of all existing religions and metaphysics,
|
|
they are already discredited. There always remains, however, the
|
|
possibility already conceded: but nothing at all can be made out of
|
|
that, to say not a word about letting happiness, salvation and life hang
|
|
upon the threads spun from such a possibility. Accordingly, nothing
|
|
could be predicated of the metaphysical world beyond the fact that it is
|
|
an elsewhere,[6] another sphere, inaccessible and incomprehensible to
|
|
us: it would become a thing of negative properties. Even were the
|
|
existence of such a world absolutely established, it would nevertheless
|
|
remain incontrovertible that of all kinds of knowledge, knowledge of
|
|
such a world would be of least consequence--of even less consequence
|
|
than knowledge of the chemical analysis of water would be to a storm
|
|
tossed mariner.
|
|
|
|
[6] Anderssein.
|
|
|
|
|
|
10
|
|
|
|
=The Harmlessness of Metaphysic in the Future.=--As soon as religion,
|
|
art and ethics are so understood that a full comprehension of them can
|
|
be gained without taking refuge in the postulates of metaphysical
|
|
claptrap at any point in the line of reasoning, there will be a complete
|
|
cessation of interest in the purely theoretical problem of the "thing in
|
|
itself" and the "phenomenon." For here, too, the same truth applies: in
|
|
religion, art and ethics we are not concerned with the "essence of the
|
|
cosmos".[7] We are in the sphere of pure conception. No presentiment [or
|
|
intuition] can carry us any further. With perfect tranquility the
|
|
question of how our conception of the world could differ so sharply from
|
|
the actual world as it is manifest to us, will be relegated to the
|
|
physiological sciences and to the history of the evolution of ideas and
|
|
organisms.
|
|
|
|
[7] "Wesen der Welt an sich."
|
|
|
|
|
|
11
|
|
|
|
=Language as a Presumptive Science.=--The importance of language in the
|
|
development of civilization consists in the fact that by means of it
|
|
man placed one world, his own, alongside another, a place of leverage
|
|
that he thought so firm as to admit of his turning the rest of the
|
|
cosmos on a pivot that he might master it. In so far as man for ages
|
|
looked upon mere ideas and names of things as upon aeternae veritates,
|
|
he evinced the very pride with which he raised himself above the brute.
|
|
He really supposed that in language he possessed a knowledge of the
|
|
cosmos. The language builder was not so modest as to believe that he was
|
|
only giving names to things. On the contrary he thought he embodied the
|
|
highest wisdom concerning things in [mere] words; and, in truth,
|
|
language is the first movement in all strivings for wisdom. Here, too,
|
|
it is _faith in ascertained truth_[8] from which the mightiest fountains
|
|
of strength have flowed. Very tardily--only now--it dawns upon men that
|
|
they have propagated a monstrous error in their belief in language.
|
|
Fortunately, it is too late now to arrest and turn back the evolutionary
|
|
process of the reason, which had its inception in this belief. Logic
|
|
itself rests upon assumptions to which nothing in the world of reality
|
|
corresponds. For example, the correspondence of certain things to one
|
|
another and the identity of those things at different periods of time
|
|
are assumptions pure and simple, but the science of logic originated in
|
|
the positive belief that they were not assumptions at all but
|
|
established facts. It is the same with the science of mathematics which
|
|
certainly would never have come into existence if mankind had known from
|
|
the beginning that in all nature there is no perfectly straight line, no
|
|
true circle, no standard of measurement.
|
|
|
|
[8] Glaube an die gefundene Wahrheit, as distinguished from faith in
|
|
what is taken on trust as truth.
|
|
|
|
|
|
12
|
|
|
|
=Dream and Civilization.=--The function of the brain which is most
|
|
encroached upon in slumber is the memory; not that it is wholly
|
|
suspended, but it is reduced to a state of imperfection as, in primitive
|
|
ages of mankind, was probably the case with everyone, whether waking or
|
|
sleeping. Uncontrolled and entangled as it is, it perpetually confuses
|
|
things as a result of the most trifling similarities, yet in the same
|
|
mental confusion and lack of control the nations invented their
|
|
mythologies, while nowadays travelers habitually observe how prone the
|
|
savage is to forgetfulness, how his mind, after the least exertion of
|
|
memory, begins to wander and lose itself until finally he utters
|
|
falsehood and nonsense from sheer exhaustion. Yet, in dreams, we all
|
|
resemble this savage. Inadequacy of distinction and error of comparison
|
|
are the basis of the preposterous things we do and say in dreams, so
|
|
that when we clearly recall a dream we are startled that so much idiocy
|
|
lurks within us. The absolute distinctness of all dream-images, due to
|
|
implicit faith in their substantial reality, recalls the conditions in
|
|
which earlier mankind were placed, for whom hallucinations had
|
|
extraordinary vividness, entire communities and even entire nations
|
|
laboring simultaneously under them. Therefore: in sleep and in dream we
|
|
make the pilgrimage of early mankind over again.
|
|
|
|
|
|
13
|
|
|
|
=Logic of the Dream.=--During sleep the nervous system, through various
|
|
inner provocatives, is in constant agitation. Almost all the organs act
|
|
independently and vigorously. The blood circulates rapidly. The posture
|
|
of the sleeper compresses some portions of the body. The coverlets
|
|
influence the sensations in different ways. The stomach carries on the
|
|
digestive process and acts upon other organs thereby. The intestines are
|
|
in motion. The position of the head induces unaccustomed action. The
|
|
feet, shoeless, no longer pressing the ground, are the occasion of other
|
|
sensations of novelty, as is, indeed, the changed garb of the entire
|
|
body. All these things, following the bustle and change of the day,
|
|
result, through their novelty, in a movement throughout the entire
|
|
system that extends even to the brain functions. Thus there are a
|
|
hundred circumstances to induce perplexity in the mind, a questioning as
|
|
to the cause of this excitation. Now, the dream is a _seeking and
|
|
presenting of reasons_ for these excitations of feeling, of the supposed
|
|
reasons, that is to say. Thus, for example, whoever has his feet bound
|
|
with two threads will probably dream that a pair of serpents are coiled
|
|
about his feet. This is at first a hypothesis, then a belief with an
|
|
accompanying imaginative picture and the argument: "these snakes must be
|
|
the _causa_ of those sensations which I, the sleeper, now have." So
|
|
reasons the mind of the sleeper. The conditions precedent, as thus
|
|
conjectured, become, owing to the excitation of the fancy, present
|
|
realities. Everyone knows from experience how a dreamer will transform
|
|
one piercing sound, for example, that of a bell, into another of quite a
|
|
different nature, say, the report of cannon. In his dream he becomes
|
|
aware first of the effects, which he explains by a subsequent hypothesis
|
|
and becomes persuaded of the purely conjectural nature of the sound. But
|
|
how comes it that the mind of the dreamer goes so far astray when the
|
|
same mind, awake, is habitually cautious, careful, and so conservative
|
|
in its dealings with hypotheses? why does the first plausible
|
|
hypothesis of the cause of a sensation gain credit in the dreaming
|
|
state? (For in a dream we look upon that dream as reality, that is, we
|
|
accept our hypotheses as fully established). I have no doubt that as men
|
|
argue in their dreams to-day, mankind argued, even in their waking
|
|
moments, for thousands of years: the first _causa_, that occurred to the
|
|
mind with reference to anything that stood in need of explanation, was
|
|
accepted as the true explanation and served as such. (Savages show the
|
|
same tendency in operation, as the reports of travelers agree). In the
|
|
dream this atavistic relic of humanity manifests its existence within
|
|
us, for it is the foundation upon which the higher rational faculty
|
|
developed itself and still develops itself in every individual. Dreams
|
|
carry us back to the earlier stages of human culture and afford us a
|
|
means of understanding it more clearly. Dream thought comes so easily to
|
|
us now because we are so thoroughly trained to it through the
|
|
interminable stages of evolution during which this fanciful and facile
|
|
form of theorising has prevailed. To a certain extent the dream is a
|
|
restorative for the brain, which, during the day, is called upon to meet
|
|
the many demands for trained thought made upon it by the conditions of a
|
|
higher civilization.--We may, if we please, become sensible, even in our
|
|
waking moments, of a condition that is as a door and vestibule to
|
|
dreaming. If we close our eyes the brain immediately conjures up a
|
|
medley of impressions of light and color, apparently a sort of imitation
|
|
and echo of the impressions forced in upon the brain during its waking
|
|
moments. And now the mind, in co-operation with the imagination,
|
|
transforms this formless play of light and color into definite figures,
|
|
moving groups, landscapes. What really takes place is a sort of
|
|
reasoning from effect back to cause. As the brain inquires: whence these
|
|
impressions of light and color? it posits as the inducing causes of such
|
|
lights and colors, those shapes and figures. They serve the brain as the
|
|
occasions of those lights and colors because the brain, when the eyes
|
|
are open and the senses awake, is accustomed to perceiving the cause of
|
|
every impression of light and color made upon it. Here again the
|
|
imagination is continually interposing its images inasmuch as it
|
|
participates in the production of the impressions made through the
|
|
senses day by day: and the dream-fancy does exactly the same thing--that
|
|
is, the presumed cause is determined from the effect and _after_ the
|
|
effect: all this, too, with extraordinary rapidity, so that in this
|
|
matter, as in a matter of jugglery or sleight-of-hand, a confusion of
|
|
the mind is produced and an after effect is made to appear a
|
|
simultaneous action, an inverted succession of events, even.--From
|
|
these considerations we can see how _late_ strict, logical thought, the
|
|
true notion of cause and effect must have been in developing, since our
|
|
intellectual and rational faculties to this very day revert to these
|
|
primitive processes of deduction, while practically half our lifetime is
|
|
spent in the super-inducing conditions.--Even the poet, the artist,
|
|
ascribes to his sentimental and emotional states causes which are not
|
|
the true ones. To that extent he is a reminder of early mankind and can
|
|
aid us in its comprehension.
|
|
|
|
|
|
14
|
|
|
|
=Association.=[9]--All strong feelings are associated with a variety of
|
|
allied sentiments and emotions. They stir up the memory at the same
|
|
time. When we are under their influence we are reminded of similar
|
|
states and we feel a renewal of them within us. Thus are formed habitual
|
|
successions of feelings and notions, which, at last, when they follow
|
|
one another with lightning rapidity are no longer felt as complexities
|
|
but as unities. In this sense we hear of moral feelings, of religious
|
|
feelings, as if they were absolute unities. In reality they are streams
|
|
with a hundred sources and tributaries. Here again, the unity of the
|
|
word speaks nothing for the unity of the thing.
|
|
|
|
[9] Miterklingen: to sound simultaneously with.
|
|
|
|
|
|
15
|
|
|
|
=No Within and Without in the World.=[10]--As Democritus transferred the
|
|
notions above and below to limitless space, where they are destitute of
|
|
meaning, so the philosophers do generally with the idea "within and
|
|
without," as regards the form and substance (Wesen und Erscheinung) of
|
|
the world. What they claim is that through the medium of profound
|
|
feelings one can penetrate deep into the soul of things (Innre), draw
|
|
close to the heart of nature. But these feelings are deep only in so far
|
|
as with them are simultaneously aroused, although almost imperceptibly,
|
|
certain complicated groups of thoughts (Gedankengruppen) which we call
|
|
deep: a feeling is deep because we deem the thoughts accompanying it
|
|
deep. But deep thought can nevertheless be very widely sundered from
|
|
truth, as for instance every metaphysical thought. Take from deep
|
|
feeling the element of thought blended with it and all that remains is
|
|
_strength_ of feeling which is no voucher for the validity of
|
|
knowledge, as intense faith is evidence only of its own intensity and
|
|
not of the truth of that in which the faith is felt.
|
|
|
|
[10] Kein Innen und Aussen in der Welt: the above translation may seem
|
|
too literal but some dispute has arisen concerning the precise idea the
|
|
author means to convey.
|
|
|
|
|
|
16
|
|
|
|
=Phenomenon and Thing-in-Itself.=--The philosophers are in the habit of
|
|
placing themselves in front of life and experience--that which they call
|
|
the world of phenomena--as if they were standing before a picture that
|
|
is unrolled before them in its final completeness. This panorama, they
|
|
think, must be studied in every detail in order to reach some conclusion
|
|
regarding the object represented by the picture. From effect,
|
|
accordingly is deduced cause and from cause is deduced the
|
|
unconditioned. This process is generally looked upon as affording the
|
|
all sufficient explanation of the world of phenomena. On the other hand
|
|
one must, (while putting the conception of the metaphysical distinctly
|
|
forward as that of the unconditioned, and consequently of the
|
|
unconditioning) absolutely deny any connection between the unconditioned
|
|
(of the metaphysical world) and the world known to us: so that
|
|
throughout phenomena there is no manifestation of the thing-in-itself,
|
|
and getting from one to the other is out of the question. Thus is left
|
|
quite ignored the circumstance that the picture--that which we now call
|
|
life and experience--is a gradual evolution, is, indeed, still in
|
|
process of evolution and for that reason should not be regarded as an
|
|
enduring whole from which any conclusion as to its author (the
|
|
all-sufficient reason) could be arrived at, or even pronounced out of
|
|
the question. It is because we have for thousands of years looked into
|
|
the world with moral, aesthetic, religious predispositions, with blind
|
|
prejudice, passion or fear, and surfeited ourselves with indulgence in
|
|
the follies of illogical thought, that the world has gradually become so
|
|
wondrously motley, frightful, significant, soulful: it has taken on
|
|
tints, but we have been the colorists: the human intellect, upon the
|
|
foundation of human needs, of human passions, has reared all these
|
|
"phenomena" and injected its own erroneous fundamental conceptions into
|
|
things. Late, very late, the human intellect checks itself: and now the
|
|
world of experience and the thing-in-itself seem to it so severed and so
|
|
antithetical that it denies the possibility of one's hinging upon the
|
|
other--or else summons us to surrender our intellect, our personal will,
|
|
to the secret and the awe-inspiring in order that thereby we may attain
|
|
certainty of certainty hereafter. Again, there are those who have
|
|
combined all the characteristic features of our world of
|
|
phenomena--that is, the conception of the world which has been formed
|
|
and inherited through a series of intellectual vagaries--and instead of
|
|
holding the intellect responsible for it all, have pronounced the very
|
|
nature of things accountable for the present very sinister aspect of the
|
|
world, and preached annihilation of existence. Through all these views
|
|
and opinions the toilsome, steady process of science (which now for the
|
|
first time begins to celebrate its greatest triumph in the genesis of
|
|
thought) will definitely work itself out, the result, being, perhaps, to
|
|
the following effect: That which we now call the world is the result of
|
|
a crowd of errors and fancies which gradually developed in the general
|
|
evolution of organic nature, have grown together and been transmitted to
|
|
us as the accumulated treasure of all the past--as the _treasure_, for
|
|
whatever is worth anything in our humanity rests upon it. From this
|
|
world of conception it is in the power of science to release us only to
|
|
a slight extent--and this is all that could be wished--inasmuch as it
|
|
cannot eradicate the influence of hereditary habits of feeling, but it
|
|
can light up by degrees the stages of the development of that world of
|
|
conception, and lift us, at least for a time, above the whole spectacle.
|
|
Perhaps we may then perceive that the thing-in-itself is a meet subject
|
|
for Homeric laughter: that it seemed so much, everything, indeed, and
|
|
is really a void--void, that is to say, of meaning.
|
|
|
|
|
|
17
|
|
|
|
=Metaphysical Explanation.=--Man, when he is young, prizes metaphysical
|
|
explanations, because they make him see matters of the highest import in
|
|
things he found disagreeable or contemptible: and if he is not satisfied
|
|
with himself, this feeling of dissatisfaction is soothed when he sees
|
|
the most hidden world-problem or world-pain in that which he finds so
|
|
displeasing in himself. To feel himself more unresponsible and at the
|
|
same time to find things (Dinge) more interesting--that is to him the
|
|
double benefit he owes to metaphysics. Later, indeed, he acquires
|
|
distrust of the whole metaphysical method of explaining things: he then
|
|
perceives, perhaps, that those effects could have been attained just as
|
|
well and more scientifically by another method: that physical and
|
|
historical explanations would, at least, have given that feeling of
|
|
freedom from personal responsibility just as well, while interest in
|
|
life and its problems would be stimulated, perhaps, even more.
|
|
|
|
|
|
18
|
|
|
|
=The Fundamental Problems of Metaphysics.=--If a history of the
|
|
development of thought is ever written, the following proposition,
|
|
advanced by a distinguished logician, will be illuminated with a new
|
|
light: "The universal, primordial law of the apprehending subject
|
|
consists in the inner necessity of cognizing every object by itself, as
|
|
in its essence a thing unto itself, therefore as self-existing and
|
|
unchanging, in short, as a substance." Even this law, which is here
|
|
called "primordial," is an evolution: it has yet to be shown how
|
|
gradually this evolution takes place in lower organizations: how the
|
|
dim, mole eyes of such organizations see, at first, nothing but a blank
|
|
sameness: how later, when the various excitations of desire and aversion
|
|
manifest themselves, various substances are gradually distinguished, but
|
|
each with an attribute, that is, a special relationship to such an
|
|
organization. The first step towards the logical is judgment, the
|
|
essence of which, according to the best logicians, is belief. At the
|
|
foundation of all beliefs lie sensations of pleasure or pain in relation
|
|
to the apprehending subject. A third feeling, as the result of two
|
|
prior, single, separate feelings, is judgment in its crudest form. We
|
|
organic beings are primordially interested by nothing whatever in any
|
|
thing (Ding) except its relation to ourselves with reference to pleasure
|
|
and pain. Between the moments in which we are conscious of this
|
|
relation, (the states of feeling) lie the moments of rest, of
|
|
not-feeling: then the world and every thing (Ding) have no interest for
|
|
us: we observe no change in them (as at present a person absorbed in
|
|
something does not notice anyone passing by). To plants all things are,
|
|
as a rule, at rest, eternal, every object like itself. From the period
|
|
of lower organisms has been handed down to man the belief that there are
|
|
like things (gleiche Dinge): only the trained experience attained
|
|
through the most advanced science contradicts this postulate. The
|
|
primordial belief of all organisms is, perhaps, that all the rest of the
|
|
world is one thing and motionless.--Furthest away from this first step
|
|
towards the logical is the notion of causation: even to-day we think
|
|
that all our feelings and doings are, at bottom, acts of the free will;
|
|
when the sentient individual contemplates himself he deems every
|
|
feeling, every change, a something isolated, disconnected, that is to
|
|
say, unqualified by any thing; it comes suddenly to the surface,
|
|
independent of anything that went before or came after. We are hungry,
|
|
but originally we do not know that the organism must be nourished: on
|
|
the contrary that feeling seems to manifest itself without reason or
|
|
purpose; it stands out by itself and seems quite independent. Therefore:
|
|
the belief in the freedom of the will is a primordial error of
|
|
everything organic as old as the very earliest inward prompting of the
|
|
logical faculty; belief in unconditioned substances and in like things
|
|
(gleiche Dinge) is also a primordial and equally ancient error of
|
|
everything organic. Inasmuch as all metaphysic has concerned itself
|
|
particularly with substance and with freedom of the will, it should be
|
|
designated as the science that deals with the fundamental errors of
|
|
mankind as if they were fundamental truths.
|
|
|
|
|
|
19
|
|
|
|
=Number.=--The invention of the laws of number has as its basis the
|
|
primordial and prior-prevailing delusion that many like things exist
|
|
(although in point of fact there is no such thing is a duplicate), or
|
|
that, at least, there are things (but there is no "thing"). The
|
|
assumption of plurality always presupposes that _something_ exists which
|
|
manifests itself repeatedly, but just here is where the delusion
|
|
prevails; in this very matter we feign realities, unities, that have no
|
|
existence. Our feelings, notions, of space and time are false for they
|
|
lead, when duly tested, to logical contradictions. In all scientific
|
|
demonstrations we always unavoidably base our calculation upon some
|
|
false standards [of duration or measurement] but as these standards are
|
|
at least _constant_, as, for example, our notions of time and space, the
|
|
results arrived at by science possess absolute accuracy and certainty in
|
|
their relationship to one another: one can keep on building upon
|
|
them--until is reached that final limit at which the erroneous
|
|
fundamental conceptions, (the invariable breakdown) come into conflict
|
|
with the results established--as, for example, in the case of the atomic
|
|
theory. Here we always find ourselves obliged to give credence to a
|
|
"thing" or material "substratum" that is set in motion, although, at the
|
|
same time, the whole scientific programme has had as its aim the
|
|
resolving of everything material into motions [themselves]: here again
|
|
we distinguish with our feeling [that which does the] moving and [that
|
|
which is] moved,[11] and we never get out of this circle, because the
|
|
belief in things[12] has been from time immemorial rooted in our
|
|
nature.--When Kant says "the intellect does not derive its laws from
|
|
nature, but dictates them to her" he states the full truth as regards
|
|
the _idea of nature_ which we form (nature = world, as notion, that is,
|
|
as error) but which is merely the synthesis of a host of errors of the
|
|
intellect. To a world not [the outcome of] our conception, the laws of
|
|
number are wholly inapplicable: such laws are valid only in the world of
|
|
mankind.
|
|
|
|
[11] Wir scheiden auch hier noch mit unserer Empfindung Bewegendes und
|
|
Bewegtes.
|
|
|
|
[12] Glaube an Dinge.
|
|
|
|
|
|
20
|
|
|
|
=Some Backward Steps.=--One very forward step in education is taken when
|
|
man emerges from his superstitious and religious ideas and fears and,
|
|
for instance, no longer believes in the dear little angels or in
|
|
original sin, and has stopped talking about the salvation of the soul:
|
|
when he has taken this step to freedom he has, nevertheless, through the
|
|
utmost exertion of his mental power, to overcome metaphysics. Then a
|
|
backward movement is necessary: he must appreciate the historical
|
|
justification, and to an equal extent the psychological considerations,
|
|
in such a movement. He must understand that the greatest advances made
|
|
by mankind have resulted from such a course and that without this very
|
|
backward movement the highest achievements of man hitherto would have
|
|
been impossible.--With regard to philosophical metaphysics I see ever
|
|
more and more who have arrived at the negative goal (that all positive
|
|
metaphysic is a delusion) but as yet very few who go a few steps
|
|
backward: one should look out over the last rungs of the ladder, but not
|
|
try to stand on them, that is to say. The most advanced as yet go only
|
|
far enough to free themselves from metaphysic and look back at it with
|
|
an air of superiority: whereas here, no less than in the hippodrome, it
|
|
is necessary to turn around in order to reach the end of the course.
|
|
|
|
|
|
21
|
|
|
|
=Presumable [Nature of the] Victory of Doubt.=--Let us assume for a
|
|
moment the validity of the skeptical standpoint: granted that there is
|
|
no metaphysical world, and that all the metaphysical explanations of the
|
|
only world we know are useless to us, how would we then contemplate men
|
|
and things? [Menschen und Dinge]. This can be thought out and it is
|
|
worth while doing so, even if the question whether anything metaphysical
|
|
has ever been demonstrated by or through Kant and Schopenhauer, be put
|
|
altogether aside. For it is, to all appearances, highly probable that
|
|
men, on this point, will be, in the mass, skeptical. The question thus
|
|
becomes: what sort of a notion will human society, under the influence
|
|
of such a state of mind, form of itself? Perhaps the _scientific
|
|
demonstration_ of any metaphysical world is now so difficult that
|
|
mankind will never be free from a distrust of it. And when there is
|
|
formed a feeling of distrust of metaphysics, the results are, in the
|
|
mass, the same as if metaphysics were refuted altogether and _could_ no
|
|
longer be believed. In both cases the historical question, with regard
|
|
to an unmetaphysical disposition in mankind, remains the same.
|
|
|
|
|
|
22
|
|
|
|
=Disbelief in the "monumentum aere perennius".=[13]--A decided
|
|
disadvantage, attending the termination of metaphysical modes of
|
|
thought, is that the individual fixes his mind too attentively upon his
|
|
own brief lifetime and feels no strong inducement to aid in the
|
|
foundation of institutions capable of enduring for centuries: he wishes
|
|
himself to gather the fruit from the tree that he plants and
|
|
consequently he no longer plants those trees which require centuries of
|
|
constant cultivation and are destined to afford shade to generation
|
|
after generation in the future. For metaphysical views inspire the
|
|
belief that in them is afforded the final sure foundation upon which
|
|
henceforth the whole future of mankind may rest and be built up: the
|
|
individual promotes his own salvation; when, for example, he builds a
|
|
church or a monastery he is of opinion that he is doing something for
|
|
the salvation of his immortal soul:--Can science, as well, inspire such
|
|
faith in the efficacy of her results? In actual fact, science requires
|
|
doubt and distrust as her surest auxiliaries; nevertheless, the sum of
|
|
the irresistible (that is all the onslaughts of skepticism, all the
|
|
disintegrating effects of surviving truths) can easily become so great
|
|
(as, for instance, in the case of hygienic science) as to inspire the
|
|
determination to build "eternal" works upon it. At present the contrast
|
|
between our excitated ephemeral existence and the tranquil repose of
|
|
metaphysical epochs is too great because both are as yet in too close
|
|
juxtaposition. The individual man himself now goes through too many
|
|
stages of inner and outer evolution for him to venture to make a plan
|
|
even for his life time alone. A perfectly modern man, indeed, who wants
|
|
to build himself a house feels as if he were walling himself up alive in
|
|
a mausoleum.
|
|
|
|
[13] Monument more enduring than brass: Horace, Odes III:XXX.
|
|
|
|
|
|
23
|
|
|
|
=Age of Comparison.=--The less men are bound by tradition, the greater
|
|
is the inner activity of motives, the greater, correspondingly, the
|
|
outer restlessness, the promiscuous flow of humanity, the polyphony of
|
|
strivings. Who now feels any great impulse to establish himself and his
|
|
posterity in a particular place? For whom, moreover, does there exist,
|
|
at present, any strong tie? As all the methods of the arts were copied
|
|
from one another, so were all the methods and advancements of moral
|
|
codes, of manners, of civilizations.--Such an age derives its
|
|
significance from the fact that in it the various ideas, codes, manners
|
|
and civilizations can be compared and experienced side by side; which
|
|
was impossible at an earlier period in view of the localised nature of
|
|
the rule of every civilization, corresponding to the limitation of all
|
|
artistic effects by time and place. To-day the growth of the aesthetic
|
|
feeling is decided, owing to the great number of [artistic] forms which
|
|
offer themselves for comparison. The majority--those that are condemned
|
|
by the method of comparison--will be allowed to die out. In the same way
|
|
there is to-day taking place a selection of the forms and customs of the
|
|
higher morality which can result only in the extinction of the vulgar
|
|
moralities. This is the age of comparison! That is its glory--but also
|
|
its pain. Let us not, however shrink from this pain. Rather would we
|
|
comprehend the nature of the task imposed upon us by our age as
|
|
adequately as we can: posterity will bless us for doing so--a posterity
|
|
that knows itself to be [developed] through and above the narrow, early
|
|
race-civilizations as well as the culture-civilization of comparison,
|
|
but yet looks gratefully back upon both as venerable monuments of
|
|
antiquity.
|
|
|
|
|
|
24
|
|
|
|
=Possibility of Progress.=--When a master of the old civilization (den
|
|
alten Cultur) vows to hold no more discussion with men who believe in
|
|
progress, he is quite right. For the old civilization[14] has its
|
|
greatness and its advantages behind it, and historic training forces one
|
|
to acknowledge that it can never again acquire vigor: only intolerable
|
|
stupidity or equally intolerable fanaticism could fail to perceive this
|
|
fact. But men may consciously determine to evolve to a new civilization
|
|
where formerly they evolved unconsciously and accidentally. They can now
|
|
devise better conditions for the advancement of mankind, for their
|
|
nourishment, training and education, they can administer the earth as an
|
|
economic power, and, particularly, compare the capacities of men and
|
|
select them accordingly. This new, conscious civilization is killing the
|
|
other which, on the whole, has led but an unreflective animal and plant
|
|
life: it is also destroying the doubt of progress itself--progress is
|
|
possible. I mean: it is hasty and almost unreflective to assume that
|
|
progress must _necessarily_ take place: but how can it be doubted that
|
|
progress is possible? On the other hand, progress in the sense and along
|
|
the lines of the old civilization is not even conceivable. If romantic
|
|
fantasy employs the word progress in connection with certain aims and
|
|
ends identical with those of the circumscribed primitive national
|
|
civilizations, the picture presented of progress is always borrowed from
|
|
the past. The idea and the image of progress thus formed are quite
|
|
without originality.
|
|
|
|
[14] Cultur, culture, civilisation etc., but there is no exact English
|
|
equivalent.
|
|
|
|
|
|
25
|
|
|
|
=Private Ethics and World Ethics.=--Since the extinction of the belief
|
|
that a god guides the general destiny of the world and, notwithstanding
|
|
all the contortions and windings of the path of mankind, leads it
|
|
gloriously forward, men must shape oecumenical, world-embracing ends for
|
|
themselves. The older ethics, namely Kant's, required of the individual
|
|
such a course of conduct as he wishes all men to follow. This evinces
|
|
much simplicity--as if any individual could determine off hand what
|
|
course of conduct would conduce to the welfare of humanity, and what
|
|
course of conduct is preëminently desirable! This is a theory like that
|
|
of freedom of competition, which takes it for granted that the general
|
|
harmony [of things] _must_ prevail of itself in accordance with some
|
|
inherent law of betterment or amelioration. It may be that a later
|
|
contemplation of the needs of mankind will reveal that it is by no means
|
|
desirable that all men should regulate their conduct according to the
|
|
same principle; it may be best, from the standpoint of certain ends yet
|
|
to be attained, that men, during long periods should regulate their
|
|
conduct with reference to special, and even, in certain circumstances,
|
|
evil, objects. At any rate, if mankind is not to be led astray by such a
|
|
universal rule of conduct, it behooves it to attain a _knowledge of the
|
|
condition of culture_ that will serve as a scientific standard of
|
|
comparison in connection with cosmical ends. Herein is comprised the
|
|
tremendous mission of the great spirits of the next century.
|
|
|
|
|
|
26
|
|
|
|
=Reaction as Progress.=--Occasionally harsh, powerful, impetuous, yet
|
|
nevertheless backward spirits, appear, who try to conjure back some past
|
|
era in the history of mankind: they serve as evidence that the new
|
|
tendencies which they oppose, are not yet potent enough, that there is
|
|
something lacking in them: otherwise they [the tendencies] would better
|
|
withstand the effects of this conjuring back process. Thus Luther's
|
|
reformation shows that in his century all the impulses to freedom of the
|
|
spirit were still uncertain, lacking in vigor, and immature. Science
|
|
could not yet rear her head. Indeed the whole Renaissance appears but as
|
|
an early spring smothered in snow. But even in the present century
|
|
Schopenhauer's metaphysic shows that the scientific spirit is not yet
|
|
powerful enough: for the whole mediaeval Christian world-standpoint
|
|
(Weltbetrachtung) and conception of man (Mensch-Empfindung)[15] once
|
|
again, notwithstanding the slowly wrought destruction of all Christian
|
|
dogma, celebrated a resurrection in Schopenhauer's doctrine. There is
|
|
much science in his teaching although the science does not dominate,
|
|
but, instead of it, the old, trite "metaphysical necessity." It is one
|
|
of the greatest and most priceless advantages of Schopenhauer's teaching
|
|
that by it our feelings are temporarily forced back to those old human
|
|
and cosmical standpoints to which no other path could conduct us so
|
|
easily. The gain for history and justice is very great. I believe that
|
|
without Schopenhauer's aid it would be no easy matter for anyone now to
|
|
do justice to Christianity and its Asiatic relatives--a thing impossible
|
|
as regards the christianity that still survives. After according this
|
|
great triumph to justice, after we have corrected in so essential a
|
|
respect the historical point of view which the age of learning brought
|
|
with it, we may begin to bear still farther onward the banner of
|
|
enlightenment--a banner bearing the three names: Petrarch, Erasmus,
|
|
Voltaire. We have taken a forward step out of reaction.
|
|
|
|
[15] Literally man-feeling or human outlook.
|
|
|
|
|
|
27
|
|
|
|
=A Substitute for Religion.=--It is supposed to be a recommendation for
|
|
philosophy to say of it that it provides the people with a substitute
|
|
for religion. And in fact, the training of the intellect does
|
|
necessitate the convenient laying out of the track of thought, since the
|
|
transition from religion by way of science entails a powerful, perilous
|
|
leap,--something that should be advised against. With this
|
|
qualification, the recommendation referred to is a just one. At the same
|
|
time, it should be further explained that the needs which religion
|
|
satisfies and which science must now satisfy, are not immutable. Even
|
|
they can be diminished and uprooted. Think, for instance, of the
|
|
christian soul-need, the sighs over one's inner corruption, the anxiety
|
|
regarding salvation--all notions that arise simply out of errors of the
|
|
reason and require no satisfaction at all, but annihilation. A
|
|
philosophy can either so affect these needs as to appease them or else
|
|
put them aside altogether, for they are acquired, circumscribed needs,
|
|
based upon hypotheses which those of science explode. Here, for the
|
|
purpose of affording the means of transition, for the sake of lightening
|
|
the spirit overburdened with feeling, art can be employed to far better
|
|
purpose, as these hypotheses receive far less support from art than from
|
|
a metaphysical philosophy. Then from art it is easier to go over to a
|
|
really emancipating philosophical science.
|
|
|
|
|
|
28
|
|
|
|
=Discredited Words.=--Away with the disgustingly over-used words
|
|
optimism and pessimism! For the occasion for using them grows daily
|
|
less; only drivelers now find them indispensably necessary. What earthly
|
|
reason could anyone have for being an optimist unless he had a god to
|
|
defend who _must_ have created the best of all possible worlds, since he
|
|
is himself all goodness and perfection?--but what thinking man has now
|
|
any need for the hypothesis that there is a god?--There is also no
|
|
occasion whatever for a pessimistic confession of faith, unless one has
|
|
a personal interest in denouncing the advocate of god, the theologian or
|
|
the theological philosopher, and maintaining the counter proposition
|
|
that evil reigns, that wretchedness is more potent than joy, that the
|
|
world is a piece of botch work, that phenomenon (Erscheinung) is but the
|
|
manifestation of some evil spirit. But who bothers his head about the
|
|
theologians any more--except the theologians themselves? Apart from all
|
|
theology and its antagonism, it is manifest that the world is neither
|
|
good nor bad, (to say nothing about its being the best or the worst) and
|
|
that these ideas of "good" and "bad" have significance only in relation
|
|
to men, indeed, are without significance at all, in view of the sense in
|
|
which they are usually employed. The contemptuous and the eulogistic
|
|
point of view must, in every case, be repudiated.
|
|
|
|
|
|
29
|
|
|
|
=Intoxicated by the Perfume of Flowers.=--The ship of humanity, it is
|
|
thought, acquires an ever deeper draught the more it is laden. It is
|
|
believed that the more profoundly man thinks, the more exquisitely he
|
|
feels, the higher the standard he sets for himself, the greater his
|
|
distance from the other animals--the more he appears as a genius
|
|
(Genie) among animals--the nearer he gets to the true nature of the
|
|
world and to comprehension thereof: this, indeed, he really does through
|
|
science, but he thinks he does it far more adequately through his
|
|
religions and arts. These are, certainly, a blossoming of the world, but
|
|
not, therefore, _nearer the roots of the world_ than is the stalk. One
|
|
cannot learn best from it the nature of the world, although nearly
|
|
everyone thinks so. _Error_ has made men so deep, sensitive and
|
|
imaginative in order to bring forth such flowers as religions and arts.
|
|
Pure apprehension would be unable to do that. Whoever should disclose to
|
|
us the essence of the world would be undeceiving us most cruelly. Not
|
|
the world as thing-in-itself but the world as idea[16] (as error) is
|
|
rich in portent, deep, wonderful, carrying happiness and unhappiness in
|
|
its womb. This result leads to a philosophy of world negation: which, at
|
|
any rate, can be as well combined with a practical world affirmation as
|
|
with its opposite.
|
|
|
|
[16] Vorstellung: this word sometimes corresponds to the English word
|
|
"idea", at others to "conception" or "notion."
|
|
|
|
|
|
30
|
|
|
|
=Evil Habits in Reaching Conclusions.=--The most usual erroneous
|
|
conclusions of men are these: a thing[17] exists, therefore it is right:
|
|
Here from capacity to live is deduced fitness, from fitness, is deduced
|
|
justification. So also: an opinion gives happiness, therefore it is the
|
|
true one, its effect is good, therefore it is itself good and true. Here
|
|
is predicated of the effect that it gives happiness, that it is good in
|
|
the sense of utility, and there is likewise predicated of the cause that
|
|
it is good, but good in the sense of logical validity. Conversely, the
|
|
proposition would run: a thing[17] cannot attain success, cannot
|
|
maintain itself, therefore it is evil: a belief troubles [the believer],
|
|
occasions pain, therefore it is false. The free spirit, who is sensible
|
|
of the defect in this method of reaching conclusions and has had to
|
|
suffer its consequences, often succumbs to the temptation to come to the
|
|
very opposite conclusions (which, in general, are, of course, equally
|
|
erroneous): a thing cannot maintain itself: therefore it is good; a
|
|
belief is troublesome, therefore it is true.
|
|
|
|
[17] Sache, thing but not in the sense of Ding. Sache is of very
|
|
indefinite application (res).
|
|
|
|
|
|
31
|
|
|
|
=The Illogical is Necessary.=--Among the things which can bring a
|
|
thinker to distraction is the knowledge that the illogical is necessary
|
|
to mankind and that from the illogical springs much that is good. The
|
|
illogical is so imbedded in the passions, in language, in art, in
|
|
religion and, above all, in everything that imparts value to life that
|
|
it cannot be taken away without irreparably injuring those beautiful
|
|
things. Only men of the utmost simplicity can believe that the nature
|
|
man knows can be changed into a purely logical nature. Yet were there
|
|
steps affording approach to this goal, how utterly everything would be
|
|
lost on the way! Even the most rational man needs nature again, from
|
|
time to time, that is, his illogical fundamental relation
|
|
(Grundstellung) to all things.
|
|
|
|
|
|
32
|
|
|
|
=Being Unjust is Essential.=--All judgments of the value of life are
|
|
illogically developed and therefore unjust. The vice of the judgment
|
|
consists, first, in the way in which the subject matter comes under
|
|
observation, that is, very incompletely; secondly in the way in which
|
|
the total is summed up; and, thirdly, in the fact that each single item
|
|
in the totality of the subject matter is itself the result of defective
|
|
perception, and this from absolute necessity. No practical knowledge of
|
|
a man, for example, stood he never so near to us, can be complete--so
|
|
that we could have a logical right to form a total estimate of him; all
|
|
estimates are summary and must be so. Then the standard by which we
|
|
measure, (our being) is not an immutable quantity; we have moods and
|
|
variations, and yet we should know ourselves as an invariable standard
|
|
before we undertake to establish the nature of the relation of any thing
|
|
(Sache) to ourselves. Perhaps it will follow from all this that one
|
|
should form no judgments whatever; if one could but merely _live_
|
|
without having to form estimates, without aversion and without
|
|
partiality!--for everything most abhorred is closely connected with an
|
|
estimate, as well as every strongest partiality. An inclination towards
|
|
a thing, or from a thing, without an accompanying feeling that the
|
|
beneficial is desired and the pernicious contemned, an inclination
|
|
without a sort of experiential estimation of the desirability of an end,
|
|
does not exist in man. We are primordially illogical and hence unjust
|
|
beings _and can recognise this fact_: this is one of the greatest and
|
|
most baffling discords of existence.
|
|
|
|
|
|
33
|
|
|
|
=Error Respecting Living for the Sake of Living Essential.=--Every
|
|
belief in the value and worthiness of life rests upon defective
|
|
thinking; it is for this reason alone possible that sympathy with the
|
|
general life and suffering of mankind is so imperfectly developed in the
|
|
individual. Even exceptional men, who can think beyond their own
|
|
personalities, do not have this general life in view, but isolated
|
|
portions of it. If one is capable of fixing his observation upon
|
|
exceptional cases, I mean upon highly endowed individuals and pure
|
|
souled beings, if their development is taken as the true end of
|
|
world-evolution and if joy be felt in their existence, then it is
|
|
possible to believe in the value of life, because in that case the rest
|
|
of humanity is overlooked: hence we have here defective thinking. So,
|
|
too, it is even if all mankind be taken into consideration, and one
|
|
species only of impulses (the less egoistic) brought under review and
|
|
those, in consideration of the other impulses, exalted: then something
|
|
could still be hoped of mankind in the mass and to that extent there
|
|
could exist belief in the value of life: here, again, as a result of
|
|
defective thinking. Whatever attitude, thus, one may assume, one is, as
|
|
a result of this attitude, an exception among mankind. Now, the great
|
|
majority of mankind endure life without any great protest, and believe,
|
|
to this extent, in the value of existence, but that is because each
|
|
individual decides and determines alone, and never comes out of his own
|
|
personality like these exceptions: everything outside of the personal
|
|
has no existence for them or at the utmost is observed as but a faint
|
|
shadow. Consequently the value of life for the generality of mankind
|
|
consists simply in the fact that the individual attaches more importance
|
|
to himself than he does to the world. The great lack of imagination from
|
|
which he suffers is responsible for his inability to enter into the
|
|
feelings of beings other than himself, and hence his sympathy with their
|
|
fate and suffering is of the slightest possible description. On the
|
|
other hand, whosoever really _could_ sympathise, necessarily doubts the
|
|
value of life; were it possible for him to sum up and to feel in himself
|
|
the total consciousness of mankind, he would collapse with a malediction
|
|
against existence,--for mankind is, in the mass, without a goal, and
|
|
hence man cannot find, in the contemplation of his whole course,
|
|
anything to serve him as a mainstay and a comfort, but rather a reason
|
|
to despair. If he looks beyond the things that immediately engage him to
|
|
the final aimlessness of humanity, his own conduct assumes in his eyes
|
|
the character of a frittering away. To feel oneself, however, as
|
|
humanity (not alone as an individual) frittered away exactly as we see
|
|
the stray leaves frittered away by nature, is a feeling transcending all
|
|
feeling. But who is capable of it? Only a poet, certainly: and poets
|
|
always know how to console themselves.
|
|
|
|
|
|
34
|
|
|
|
=For Tranquility.=--But will not our philosophy become thus a tragedy?
|
|
Will not truth prove the enemy of life, of betterment? A question seems
|
|
to weigh upon our tongue and yet will not put itself into words: whether
|
|
one _can_ knowingly remain in the domain of the untruthful? or, if one
|
|
_must_, whether, then, death would not be preferable? For there is no
|
|
longer any ought (Sollen), morality; so far as it is involved "ought,"
|
|
is, through our point of view, as utterly annihilated as religion. Our
|
|
knowledge can permit only pleasure and pain, benefit and injury, to
|
|
subsist as motives. But how can these motives be distinguished from the
|
|
desire for truth? Even they rest upon error (in so far, as already
|
|
stated, partiality and dislike and their very inaccurate estimates
|
|
palpably modify our pleasure and our pain). The whole of human life is
|
|
deeply involved in _untruth_. The individual cannot extricate it from
|
|
this pit without thereby fundamentally clashing with his whole past,
|
|
without finding his present motives of conduct, (as that of honor)
|
|
illegitimate, and without opposing scorn and contempt to the ambitions
|
|
which prompt one to have regard for the future and for one's happiness
|
|
in the future. Is it true, does there, then, remain but one way of
|
|
thinking, which, as a personal consequence brings in its train despair,
|
|
and as a theoretical [consequence brings in its train] a philosophy of
|
|
decay, disintegration, self annihilation? I believe the deciding
|
|
influence, as regards the after-effect of knowledge, will be the
|
|
_temperament_ of a man; I can, in addition to this after-effect just
|
|
mentioned, suppose another, by means of which a much simpler life, and
|
|
one freer from disturbances than the present, could be lived; so that at
|
|
first the old motives of vehement passion might still have strength,
|
|
owing to hereditary habit, but they would gradually grow weaker under
|
|
the influence of purifying knowledge. A man would live, at last, both
|
|
among men and unto himself, as in the natural state, without praise,
|
|
reproach, competition, feasting one's eyes, as if it were a play, upon
|
|
much that formerly inspired dread. One would be rid of the strenuous
|
|
element, and would no longer feel the goad of the reflection that man is
|
|
not even [as much as] nature, nor more than nature. To be sure, this
|
|
requires, as already stated, a good temperament, a fortified, gentle and
|
|
naturally cheerful soul, a disposition that has no need to be on its
|
|
guard against its own eccentricities and sudden outbreaks and that in
|
|
its utterances manifests neither sullenness nor a snarling tone--those
|
|
familiar, disagreeable characteristics of old dogs and old men that have
|
|
been a long time chained up. Rather must a man, from whom the ordinary
|
|
bondages of life have fallen away to so great an extent, so do that he
|
|
only lives on in order to grow continually in knowledge, and to learn to
|
|
resign, without envy and without disappointment, much, yes nearly
|
|
everything, that has value in the eyes of men. He must be content with
|
|
such a free, fearless soaring above men, manners, laws and traditional
|
|
estimates of things, as the most desirable of all situations. He will
|
|
freely share the joy of being in such a situation, and he has, perhaps,
|
|
nothing else to share--in which renunciation and self-denial really most
|
|
consist. But if more is asked of him, he will, with a benevolent shake
|
|
of the head, refer to his brother, the free man of fact, and will,
|
|
perhaps, not dissemble a little contempt: for, as regards his "freedom,"
|
|
thereby hangs a tale.[18]
|
|
|
|
[18] den mit dessen "Freiheit" hat es eine eigene Bewandtniss.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
HISTORY OF THE MORAL FEELINGS.
|
|
|
|
|
|
35
|
|
|
|
=Advantages of Psychological Observation.=--That reflection regarding
|
|
the human, all-too-human--or as the learned jargon is: psychological
|
|
observation--is among the means whereby the burden of life can be made
|
|
lighter, that practice in this art affords presence of mind in difficult
|
|
situations and entertainment amid a wearisome environment, aye, that
|
|
maxims may be culled in the thorniest and least pleasing paths of life
|
|
and invigoration thereby obtained: this much was believed, was known--in
|
|
former centuries. Why was this forgotten in our own century, during
|
|
which, at least in Germany, yes in Europe, poverty as regards
|
|
psychological observation would have been manifest in many ways had
|
|
there been anyone to whom this poverty could have manifested itself. Not
|
|
only in the novel, in the romance, in philosophical standpoints--these
|
|
are the works of exceptional men; still more in the state of opinion
|
|
regarding public events and personages; above all in general society,
|
|
which says much about men but nothing whatever about man, there is
|
|
totally lacking the art of psychological analysis and synthesis. But why
|
|
is the richest and most harmless source of entertainment thus allowed to
|
|
run to waste? Why is the greatest master of the psychological maxim no
|
|
longer read?--for, with no exaggeration whatever be it said: the
|
|
educated person in Europe who has read La Rochefoucauld and his
|
|
intellectual and artistic affinities is very hard to find; still harder,
|
|
the person who knows them and does not disparage them. Apparently, too,
|
|
this unusual reader takes far less pleasure in them than the form
|
|
adopted by these artists should afford him: for the subtlest mind cannot
|
|
adequately appreciate the art of maxim-making unless it has had training
|
|
in it, unless it has competed in it. Without such practical
|
|
acquaintance, one is apt to look upon this making and forming as a much
|
|
easier thing than it really is; one is not keenly enough alive to the
|
|
felicity and the charm of success. Hence present day readers of maxims
|
|
have but a moderate, tempered pleasure in them, scarcely, indeed, a true
|
|
perception of their merit, so that their experiences are about the same
|
|
as those of the average beholder of cameos: people who praise because
|
|
they cannot appreciate, and are very ready to admire and still readier
|
|
to turn away.
|
|
|
|
|
|
36
|
|
|
|
=Objection.=--Or is there a counter-proposition to the dictum that
|
|
psychological observation is one of the means of consoling, lightening,
|
|
charming existence? Have enough of the unpleasant effects of this art
|
|
been experienced to justify the person striving for culture in turning
|
|
his regard away from it? In all truth, a certain blind faith in the
|
|
goodness of human nature, an implanted distaste for any disparagement of
|
|
human concerns, a sort of shamefacedness at the nakedness of the soul,
|
|
may be far more desirable things in the general happiness of a man, than
|
|
this only occasionally advantageous quality of psychological
|
|
sharpsightedness; and perhaps belief in the good, in virtuous men and
|
|
actions, in a plenitude of disinterested benevolence has been more
|
|
productive of good in the world of men in so far as it has made men less
|
|
distrustful. If Plutarch's heroes are enthusiastically imitated and a
|
|
reluctance is experienced to looking too critically into the motives of
|
|
their actions, not the knowledge but the welfare of human society is
|
|
promoted thereby: psychological error and above all obtuseness in regard
|
|
to it, help human nature forward, whereas knowledge of the truth is more
|
|
promoted by means of the stimulating strength of a hypothesis; as La
|
|
Rochefoucauld in the first edition of his "Sentences and Moral Maxims"
|
|
has expressed it: "What the world calls virtue is ordinarily but a
|
|
phantom created by the passions, and to which we give a good name in
|
|
order to do whatever we please with impunity." La Rochefoucauld and
|
|
those other French masters of soul-searching (to the number of whom has
|
|
lately been added a German, the author of "Psychological Observations")
|
|
are like expert marksmen who again and again hit the black spot--but it
|
|
is the black spot in human nature. Their art inspires amazement, but
|
|
finally some spectator, inspired, not by the scientific spirit but by a
|
|
humanitarian feeling, execrates an art that seems to implant in the soul
|
|
a taste for belittling and impeaching mankind.
|
|
|
|
|
|
37
|
|
|
|
=Nevertheless.=--The matter therefore, as regards pro and con, stands
|
|
thus: in the present state of philosophy an awakening of the moral
|
|
observation is essential. The repulsive aspect of psychological
|
|
dissection, with the knife and tweezers entailed by the process, can no
|
|
longer be spared humanity. Such is the imperative duty of any science
|
|
that investigates the origin and history of the so-called moral feelings
|
|
and which, in its progress, is called upon to posit and to solve
|
|
advanced social problems:--The older philosophy does not recognize the
|
|
newer at all and, through paltry evasions, has always gone astray in the
|
|
investigation of the origin and history of human estimates
|
|
(Werthschätzungen). With what results may now be very clearly perceived,
|
|
since it has been shown by many examples, how the errors of the greatest
|
|
philosophers have their origin in a false explanation of certain human
|
|
actions and feelings; how upon the foundation of an erroneous analysis
|
|
(for example, of the so called disinterested actions), a false ethic is
|
|
reared, to support which religion and like mythological monstrosities
|
|
are called in, until finally the shades of these troubled spirits
|
|
collapse in physics and in the comprehensive world point of view. But if
|
|
it be established that superficiality of psychological observation has
|
|
heretofore set the most dangerous snares for human judgment and
|
|
deduction, and will continue to do so, all the greater need is there of
|
|
that steady continuance of labor that never wearies putting stone upon
|
|
stone, little stone upon little stone; all the greater need is there of
|
|
a courage that is not ashamed of such humble labor and that will oppose
|
|
persistence, to all contempt. It is, finally, also true that countless
|
|
single observations concerning the human, all-too-human, have been
|
|
first made and uttered in circles accustomed, not to furnish matter for
|
|
scientific knowledge, but for intellectual pleasure-seeking; and the
|
|
original home atmosphere--a very seductive atmosphere--of the moral
|
|
maxim has almost inextricably interpenetrated the entire species, so
|
|
that the scientific man involuntarily manifests a sort of mistrust of
|
|
this species and of its seriousness. But it is sufficient to point to
|
|
the consequences: for already it is becoming evident that events of the
|
|
most portentous nature are developing in the domain of psychological
|
|
observation. What is the leading conclusion arrived at by one of the
|
|
subtlest and calmest of thinkers, the author of the work "Concerning the
|
|
Origin of the Moral Feelings", as a result of his thorough and incisive
|
|
analysis of human conduct? "The moral man," he says, "stands no nearer
|
|
the knowable (metaphysical) world than the physical man."[19] This
|
|
dictum, grown hard and cutting beneath the hammer-blow of historical
|
|
knowledge, can some day, perhaps, in some future or other, serve as the
|
|
axe that will be laid to the root of the "metaphysical necessities" of
|
|
men--whether more to the blessing than to the banning of universal well
|
|
being who can say?--but in any event a dictum fraught with the most
|
|
momentous consequences, fruitful and fearful at once, and confronting
|
|
the world in the two faced way characteristic of all great facts.
|
|
|
|
[19] "Der moralische Mensch, sagt er, steht der intelligiblen
|
|
(metaphysischen) Welt nicht näher, als der physische Mensch."
|
|
|
|
|
|
38
|
|
|
|
=To What Extent Useful.=--Therefore, whether psychological observation
|
|
is more an advantage than a disadvantage to mankind may always remain
|
|
undetermined: but there is no doubt that it is necessary, because
|
|
science can no longer dispense with it. Science, however, recognizes no
|
|
considerations of ultimate goals or ends any more than nature does; but
|
|
as the latter duly matures things of the highest fitness for certain
|
|
ends without any intention of doing it, so will true science, doing with
|
|
ideas what nature does with matter,[20] promote the purposes and the
|
|
welfare of humanity, (as occasion may afford, and in many ways) and
|
|
attain fitness [to ends]--but likewise without having intended it.
|
|
|
|
[20] als die Nachahmung der Natur in Begriffen, literally: "as the
|
|
counterfeit of nature in (regard to) ideas."
|
|
|
|
He to whom the atmospheric conditions of such a prospect are too wintry,
|
|
has too little fire in him: let him look about him, and he will become
|
|
sensible of maladies requiring an icy air, and of people who are so
|
|
"kneaded together" out of ardor and intellect that they can scarcely
|
|
find anywhere an atmosphere too cold and cutting for them. Moreover: as
|
|
too serious individuals and nations stand in need of trivial
|
|
relaxations; as others, too volatile and excitable require onerous,
|
|
weighty ordeals to render them entirely healthy: should not we, the more
|
|
intellectual men of this age, which is swept more and more by
|
|
conflagrations, catch up every cooling and extinguishing appliance we
|
|
can find that we may always remain as self contained, steady and calm as
|
|
we are now, and thereby perhaps serve this age as its mirror and self
|
|
reflector, when the occasion arises?
|
|
|
|
|
|
39
|
|
|
|
=The Fable of Discretionary Freedom.=--The history of the feelings, on
|
|
the basis of which we make everyone responsible, hence, the so-called
|
|
moral feelings, is traceable in the following leading phases. At first
|
|
single actions are termed good or bad without any reference to their
|
|
motive, but solely because of the utilitarian or prejudicial
|
|
consequences they have for the community. In time, however, the origin
|
|
of these designations is forgotten [but] it is imagined that action in
|
|
itself, without reference to its consequences, contains the property
|
|
"good" or "bad": with the same error according to which language
|
|
designates the stone itself as hard[ness] the tree itself as
|
|
green[ness]--for the reason, therefore, that what is a consequence is
|
|
comprehended as a cause. Accordingly, the good[ness] or bad[ness] is
|
|
incorporated into the motive and [any] deed by itself is regarded as
|
|
morally ambiguous. A step further is taken, and the predication good or
|
|
bad is no longer made of the particular motives but of the entire nature
|
|
of a man, out of which motive grows as grow the plants out of the soil.
|
|
Thus man is successively made responsible for his [particular] acts,
|
|
then for his [course of] conduct, then for his motives and finally for
|
|
his nature. Now, at last, is it discovered that this nature, even,
|
|
cannot be responsible, inasmuch as it is only and wholly a necessary
|
|
consequence and is synthesised out of the elements and influence of past
|
|
and present things: therefore, that man is to be made responsible for
|
|
nothing, neither for his nature, nor his motives, nor his [course of]
|
|
conduct nor his [particular] acts. By this [process] is gained the
|
|
knowledge that the history of moral estimates is the history of error,
|
|
of the error of responsibility: as is whatever rests upon the error of
|
|
the freedom of the will. Schopenhauer concluded just the other way,
|
|
thus: since certain actions bring depression ("consciousness of guilt")
|
|
in their train, there must, then, exist responsibility, for there would
|
|
be no basis for this depression at hand if all man's affairs did not
|
|
follow their course of necessity--as they do, indeed, according to the
|
|
opinion of this philosopher, follow their course--but man himself,
|
|
subject to the same necessity, would be just the man that he is--which
|
|
Schopenhauer denies. From the fact of such depression Schopenhauer
|
|
believes himself able to prove a freedom which man in some way must have
|
|
had, not indeed in regard to his actions but in regard to his nature:
|
|
freedom, therefore, to be thus and so, not to act thus and so. Out of
|
|
the _esse_, the sphere of freedom and responsibility, follows, according
|
|
to his opinion, the _operari_, the spheres of invariable causation,
|
|
necessity and irresponsibility. This depression, indeed, is due
|
|
apparently to the _operari_--in so far as it be delusive--but in truth
|
|
to whatever _esse_ be the deed of a free will, the basic cause of the
|
|
existence of an individual: [in order to] let man become whatever he
|
|
wills to become, his [to] will (Wollen) must precede his
|
|
existence.--Here, apart from the absurdity of the statement just made,
|
|
there is drawn the wrong inference that the fact of the depression
|
|
explains its character, the rational admissibility of it: from such a
|
|
wrong inference does Schopenhauer first come to his fantastic consequent
|
|
of the so called discretionary freedom (intelligibeln Freiheit). (For
|
|
the origin of this fabulous entity Plato and Kant are equally
|
|
responsible). But depression after the act does not need to be rational:
|
|
indeed, it is certainly not so at all, for it rests upon the erroneous
|
|
assumption that the act need not necessarily have come to pass.
|
|
Therefore: only because man deems himself free, but not because
|
|
he is free, does he experience remorse and the stings of
|
|
conscience.--Moreover, this depression is something that can be grown
|
|
out of; in many men it is not present at all as a consequence of acts
|
|
which inspire it in many other men. It is a very varying thing and one
|
|
closely connected with the development of custom and civilization, and
|
|
perhaps manifest only during a relatively brief period of the world's
|
|
history.--No one is responsible for his acts, no one for his nature; to
|
|
judge is tantamount to being unjust. This applies as well when the
|
|
individual judges himself. The proposition is as clear as sunlight, and
|
|
yet here everyone prefers to go back to darkness and untruth: for fear
|
|
of the consequences.
|
|
|
|
|
|
40
|
|
|
|
=Above Animal.=--The beast in us must be wheedled: ethic is necessary,
|
|
that we may not be torn to pieces. Without the errors involved in the
|
|
assumptions of ethics, man would have remained an animal. Thus has he
|
|
taken himself as something higher and imposed rigid laws upon himself.
|
|
He feels hatred, consequently, for states approximating the animal:
|
|
whence the former contempt for the slave as a not-yet-man, as a thing,
|
|
is to be explained.
|
|
|
|
|
|
41
|
|
|
|
=Unalterable Character.=--That character is unalterable is not, in the
|
|
strict sense, true; rather is this favorite proposition valid only to
|
|
the extent that during the brief life period of a man the potent new
|
|
motives can not, usually, press down hard enough to obliterate the lines
|
|
imprinted by ages. Could we conceive of a man eighty thousand years old,
|
|
we should have in him an absolutely alterable character; so that the
|
|
maturities of successive, varying individuals would develop in him. The
|
|
shortness of human life leads to many erroneous assertions concerning
|
|
the qualities of man.
|
|
|
|
|
|
42
|
|
|
|
=Classification of Enjoyments and Ethic.=--The once accepted comparative
|
|
classification of enjoyments, according to which an inferior, higher,
|
|
highest egoism may crave one or another enjoyment, now decides as to
|
|
ethical status or unethical status. A lower enjoyment (for example,
|
|
sensual pleasure) preferred to a more highly esteemed one (for example,
|
|
health) rates as unethical, as does welfare preferred to freedom. The
|
|
comparative classification of enjoyments is not, however, alike or the
|
|
same at all periods; when anyone demands satisfaction of the law, he is,
|
|
from the point of view of an earlier civilization, moral, from that of
|
|
the present, non-moral. "Unethical" indicates, therefore, that a man is
|
|
not sufficiently sensible to the higher, finer impulses which the
|
|
present civilization has brought with it, or is not sensible to them at
|
|
all; it indicates backwardness, but only from the point of view of the
|
|
contemporary degree of distinction.--The comparative classification of
|
|
enjoyments itself is not determined according to absolute ethics; but
|
|
after each new ethical adjustment, it is then decided whether conduct be
|
|
ethical or the reverse.
|
|
|
|
|
|
43
|
|
|
|
=Inhuman Men as Survivals.=--Men who are now inhuman must serve us as
|
|
surviving specimens of earlier civilizations. The mountain height of
|
|
humanity here reveals its lower formations, which might otherwise remain
|
|
hidden from view. There are surviving specimens of humanity whose brains
|
|
through the vicissitudes of heredity, have escaped proper development.
|
|
They show us what we all were and thus appal us; but they are as little
|
|
responsible on this account as is a piece of granite for being granite.
|
|
In our own brains there must be courses and windings corresponding to
|
|
such characters, just as in the forms of some human organs there survive
|
|
traces of fishhood. But these courses and windings are no longer the bed
|
|
in which flows the stream of our feeling.
|
|
|
|
|
|
44
|
|
|
|
=Gratitude and Revenge.=--The reason the powerful man is grateful is
|
|
this. His benefactor has, through his benefaction, invaded the domain of
|
|
the powerful man and established himself on an equal footing: the
|
|
powerful man in turn invades the domain of the benefactor and gets
|
|
satisfaction through the act of gratitude. It is a mild form of revenge.
|
|
By not obtaining the satisfaction of gratitude the powerful would have
|
|
shown himself powerless and have ranked as such thenceforward. Hence
|
|
every society of the good, that is to say, of the powerful originally,
|
|
places gratitude among the first of duties.--Swift has added the dictum
|
|
that man is grateful in the same degree that he is revengeful.
|
|
|
|
|
|
45
|
|
|
|
=Two-fold Historical Origin of Good and Evil.=--The notion of good and
|
|
bad has a two-fold historical origin: namely, first, in the spirit of
|
|
ruling races and castes. Whoever has power to requite good with good and
|
|
evil with evil and actually brings requital, (that is, is grateful and
|
|
revengeful) acquires the name of being good; whoever is powerless and
|
|
cannot requite is called bad. A man belongs, as a good individual, to
|
|
the "good" of a community, who have a feeling in common, because all the
|
|
individuals are allied with one another through the requiting sentiment.
|
|
A man belongs, as a bad individual, to the "bad," to a mass of
|
|
subjugated, powerless men who have no feeling in common. The good are a
|
|
caste, the bad are a quantity, like dust. Good and bad is, for a
|
|
considerable period, tantamount to noble and servile, master and slave.
|
|
On the other hand an enemy is not looked upon as bad: he can requite.
|
|
The Trojan and the Greek are in Homer both good. Not he, who does no
|
|
harm, but he who is despised, is deemed bad. In the community of the
|
|
good individuals [the quality of] good[ness] is inherited; it is
|
|
impossible for a bad individual to grow from such a rich soil. If,
|
|
notwithstanding, one of the good individuals does something unworthy of
|
|
his goodness, recourse is had to exorcism; thus the guilt is ascribed to
|
|
a deity, the while it is declared that this deity bewitched the good man
|
|
into madness and blindness.--Second, in the spirit of the subjugated,
|
|
the powerless. Here every other man is, to the individual, hostile,
|
|
inconsiderate, greedy, inhuman, avaricious, be he noble or servile; bad
|
|
is the characteristic term for man, for every living being, indeed, that
|
|
is recognized at all, even for a god: human, divine, these notions are
|
|
tantamount to devilish, bad. Manifestations of goodness, sympathy,
|
|
helpfulness, are regarded with anxiety as trickiness, preludes to an
|
|
evil end, deception, subtlety, in short, as refined badness. With such a
|
|
predisposition in individuals, a feeling in common can scarcely arise at
|
|
all, at most only the rudest form of it: so that everywhere that this
|
|
conception of good and evil prevails, the destruction of the
|
|
individuals, their race and nation, is imminent.--Our existing morality
|
|
has developed upon the foundation laid by ruling races and castes.
|
|
|
|
|
|
46
|
|
|
|
=Sympathy Greater than Suffering.=--There are circumstances in which
|
|
sympathy is stronger than the suffering itself. We feel more pain, for
|
|
instance, when one of our friends becomes guilty of a reprehensible
|
|
action than if we had done the deed ourselves. We once, that is, had
|
|
more faith in the purity of his character than he had himself. Hence our
|
|
love for him, (apparently because of this very faith) is stronger than
|
|
is his own love for himself. If, indeed, his egoism really suffers more,
|
|
as a result, than our egoism, inasmuch as he must take the consequences
|
|
of his fault to a greater extent than ourselves, nevertheless, the
|
|
unegoistic--this word is not to be taken too strictly, but simply as a
|
|
modified form of expression--in us is more affected by his guilt than
|
|
the unegoistic in him.
|
|
|
|
|
|
47
|
|
|
|
=Hypochondria.=--There are people who, from sympathy and anxiety for
|
|
others become hypochondriacal. The resulting form of compassion is
|
|
nothing else than sickness. So, also, is there a Christian hypochondria,
|
|
from which those singular, religiously agitated people suffer who place
|
|
always before their eyes the suffering and death of Christ.
|
|
|
|
|
|
48
|
|
|
|
=Economy of Blessings.=--The advantageous and the pleasing, as the
|
|
healthiest growths and powers in the intercourse of men, are such
|
|
precious treasures that it is much to be wished the use made of these
|
|
balsamic means were as economical as possible: but this is impossible.
|
|
Economy in the use of blessings is the dream of the craziest of
|
|
Utopians.
|
|
|
|
|
|
49
|
|
|
|
=Well-Wishing.=--Among the small, but infinitely plentiful and therefore
|
|
very potent things to which science must pay more attention than to the
|
|
great, uncommon things, well-wishing[21] must be reckoned; I mean those
|
|
manifestations of friendly disposition in intercourse, that laughter of
|
|
the eye, every hand pressure, every courtesy from which, in general,
|
|
every human act gets its quality. Every teacher, every functionary adds
|
|
this element as a gratuity to whatever he does as a duty; it is the
|
|
perpetual well spring of humanity, like the waves of light in which
|
|
everything grows; thus, in the narrowest circles, within the family,
|
|
life blooms and flowers only through this kind feeling. The
|
|
cheerfulness, friendliness and kindness of a heart are unfailing
|
|
sources of unegoistic impulse and have made far more for civilization
|
|
than those other more noised manifestations of it that are styled
|
|
sympathy, benevolence and sacrifice. But it is customary to depreciate
|
|
these little tokens of kindly feeling, and, indeed, there is not much of
|
|
the unegoistic in them. The sum of these little doses is very great,
|
|
nevertheless; their combined strength is of the greatest of
|
|
strengths.--Thus, too, much more happiness is to be found in the world
|
|
than gloomy eyes discover: that is, if the calculation be just, and all
|
|
these pleasing moments in which every day, even the meanest human life,
|
|
is rich, be not forgotten.
|
|
|
|
[21] Wohl-wollen, kind feeling. It stands here for benevolence but not
|
|
benevolence in the restricted sense of the word now prevailing.
|
|
|
|
|
|
50
|
|
|
|
=The Desire to Inspire Compassion.=--La Rochefoucauld, in the most
|
|
notable part of his self portraiture (first printed 1658) reaches the
|
|
vital spot of truth when he warns all those endowed with reason to be on
|
|
their guard against compassion, when he advises that this sentiment be
|
|
left to men of the masses who stand in need of the promptings of the
|
|
emotions (since they are not guided by reason) to induce them to give
|
|
aid to the suffering and to be of service in misfortune: whereas
|
|
compassion, in his (and Plato's) view, deprives the heart of strength.
|
|
To be sure, sympathy should be manifested but men should take care not
|
|
to feel it; for the unfortunate are rendered so dull that the
|
|
manifestation of sympathy affords them the greatest happiness in the
|
|
world.--Perhaps a more effectual warning against this compassion can be
|
|
given if this need of the unfortunate be considered not simply as
|
|
stupidity and intellectual weakness, not as a sort of distraction of the
|
|
spirit entailed by misfortune itself (and thus, indeed, does La
|
|
Rochefoucauld seem to view it) but as something quite different and more
|
|
momentous. Let note be taken of children who cry and scream in order to
|
|
be compassionated and who, therefore, await the moment when their
|
|
condition will be observed; come into contact with the sick and the
|
|
oppressed in spirit and try to ascertain if the wailing and sighing, the
|
|
posturing and posing of misfortune do not have as end and aim the
|
|
causing of pain to the beholder: the sympathy which each beholder
|
|
manifests is a consolation to the weak and suffering only in as much as
|
|
they are made to perceive that at least they have the power,
|
|
notwithstanding all their weakness, to inflict pain. The unfortunate
|
|
experiences a species of joy in the sense of superiority which the
|
|
manifestation of sympathy entails; his imagination is exalted; he is
|
|
always strong enough, then, to cause the world pain. Thus is the thirst
|
|
for sympathy a thirst for self enjoyment and at the expense of one's
|
|
fellow creatures: it shows man in the whole ruthlessness of his own dear
|
|
self: not in his mere "dullness" as La Rochefoucauld thinks.--In social
|
|
conversation three fourths of all the questions are asked, and three
|
|
fourths of all the replies are made in order to inflict some little
|
|
pain; that is why so many people crave social intercourse: it gives them
|
|
a sense of their power. In these countless but very small doses in which
|
|
the quality of badness is administered it proves a potent stimulant of
|
|
life: to the same extent that well wishing--(Wohl-wollen) distributed
|
|
through the world in like manner, is one of the ever ready
|
|
restoratives.--But will many honorable people be found to admit that
|
|
there is any pleasure in administering pain? that entertainment--and
|
|
rare entertainment--is not seldom found in causing others, at least in
|
|
thought, some pain, and in raking them with the small shot of
|
|
wickedness? The majority are too ignoble and a few are too good to know
|
|
anything of this pudendum: the latter may, consequently, be prompt to
|
|
deny that Prosper Mérimée is right when he says: "Know, also, that
|
|
nothing is more common than to do wrong for the pleasure of doing it."
|
|
|
|
|
|
51
|
|
|
|
=How Appearance Becomes Reality.=--The actor cannot, at last, refrain,
|
|
even in moments of the deepest pain, from thinking of the effect
|
|
produced by his deportment and by his surroundings--for example, even at
|
|
the funeral of his own child: he will weep at his own sorrow and its
|
|
manifestations as though he were his own audience. The hypocrite who
|
|
always plays one and the same part, finally ceases to be a hypocrite; as
|
|
in the case of priests who, when young men, are always, either
|
|
consciously or unconsciously, hypocrites, and finally become naturally
|
|
and then really, without affectation, mere priests: or if the father
|
|
does not carry it to this extent, the son, who inherits his father's
|
|
calling and gets the advantage of the paternal progress, does. When
|
|
anyone, during a long period, and persistently, wishes to appear
|
|
something, it will at last prove difficult for him to be anything else.
|
|
The calling of almost every man, even of the artist, begins with
|
|
hypocrisy, with an imitation of deportment, with a copying of the
|
|
effective in manner. He who always wears the mask of a friendly man must
|
|
at last gain a power over friendliness of disposition, without which the
|
|
expression itself of friendliness is not to be gained--and finally
|
|
friendliness of disposition gains the ascendancy over him--he _is_
|
|
benevolent.
|
|
|
|
|
|
52
|
|
|
|
=The Point of Honor in Deception.=--In all great deceivers one
|
|
characteristic is prominent, to which they owe their power. In the very
|
|
act of deception, amid all the accompaniments, the agitation in the
|
|
voice, the expression, the bearing, in the crisis of the scene, there
|
|
comes over them a belief in themselves; this it is that acts so
|
|
effectively and irresistibly upon the beholders. Founders of religions
|
|
differ from such great deceivers in that they never come out of this
|
|
state of self deception, or else they have, very rarely, a few moments
|
|
of enlightenment in which they are overcome by doubt; generally,
|
|
however, they soothe themselves by ascribing such moments of
|
|
enlightenment to the evil adversary. Self deception must exist that both
|
|
classes of deceivers may attain far reaching results. For men believe in
|
|
the truth of all that is manifestly believed with due implicitness by
|
|
others.
|
|
|
|
|
|
53
|
|
|
|
=Presumed Degrees of Truth.=--One of the most usual errors of deduction
|
|
is: because someone truly and openly is against us, therefore he speaks
|
|
the truth. Hence the child has faith in the judgments of its elders, the
|
|
Christian in the assertions of the founder of the church. So, too, it
|
|
will not be admitted that all for which men sacrificed life and
|
|
happiness in former centuries was nothing but delusion: perhaps it is
|
|
alleged these things were degrees of truth. But what is really meant is
|
|
that, if a person sincerely believes a thing and has fought and died for
|
|
his faith, it would be too _unjust_ if only delusion had inspired him.
|
|
Such a state of affairs seems to contradict eternal justice. For that
|
|
reason the heart of a sensitive man pronounces against his head the
|
|
judgment: between moral conduct and intellectual insight there must
|
|
always exist an inherent connection. It is, unfortunately, otherwise:
|
|
for there is no eternal justice.
|
|
|
|
|
|
54
|
|
|
|
=Falsehood.=--Why do men, as a rule, speak the truth in the ordinary
|
|
affairs of life? Certainly not for the reason that a god has forbidden
|
|
lying. But because first: it is more convenient, as falsehood entails
|
|
invention, make-believe and recollection (wherefore Swift says that
|
|
whoever invents a lie seldom realises the heavy burden he takes up: he
|
|
must, namely, for every lie that he tells, insert twenty more).
|
|
Therefore, because in plain ordinary relations of life it is expedient
|
|
to say without circumlocution: I want this, I have done this, and the
|
|
like; therefore, because the way of freedom and certainty is surer than
|
|
that of ruse.--But if it happens that a child is brought up in sinister
|
|
domestic circumstances, it will then indulge in falsehood as matter of
|
|
course, and involuntarily say anything its own interests may prompt: an
|
|
inclination for truth, an aversion to falsehood, is quite foreign and
|
|
uncongenial to it, and hence it lies in all innocence.
|
|
|
|
|
|
55
|
|
|
|
=Ethic Discredited for Faith's Sake.=--No power can sustain itself when
|
|
it is represented by mere humbugs: the Catholic Church may possess ever
|
|
so many "worldly" sources of strength, but its true might is comprised
|
|
in those still numberless priestly natures who make their lives stern
|
|
and strenuous and whose looks and emaciated bodies are eloquent of night
|
|
vigils, fasts, ardent prayer, perhaps even of whip lashes: these things
|
|
make men tremble and cause them anxiety: what, if it be really
|
|
imperative to live thus? This is the dreadful question which their
|
|
aspect occasions. As they spread this doubt, they lay anew the prop of
|
|
their power: even the free thinkers dare not oppose such
|
|
disinterestedness with severe truth and cry: "Thou deceived one,
|
|
deceive not!"--Only the difference of standpoint separates them from
|
|
him: no difference in goodness or badness. But things we cannot
|
|
accomplish ourselves, we are apt to criticise unfairly. Thus we are told
|
|
of the cunning and perverted acts of the Jesuits, but we overlook the
|
|
self mastery that each Jesuit imposes upon himself and also the fact
|
|
that the easy life which the Jesuit manuals advocate is for the benefit,
|
|
not of the Jesuits but the laity. Indeed, it may be questioned whether
|
|
we enlightened ones would become equally competent workers as the result
|
|
of similar tactics and organization, and equally worthy of admiration as
|
|
the result of self mastery, indefatigable industry and devotion.
|
|
|
|
|
|
56
|
|
|
|
=Victory of Knowledge over Radical Evil.=--It proves a material gain to
|
|
him who would attain knowledge to have had during a considerable period
|
|
the idea that mankind is a radically bad and perverted thing: it is a
|
|
false idea, as is its opposite, but it long held sway and its roots have
|
|
reached down even to ourselves and our present world. In order to
|
|
understand _ourselves_ we must understand _it_; but in order to attain a
|
|
loftier height we must step above it. We then perceive that there is no
|
|
such thing as sin in the metaphysical sense: but also, in the same
|
|
sense, no such thing as virtue; that this whole domain of ethical
|
|
notions is one of constant variation; that there are higher and deeper
|
|
conceptions of good and evil, moral and immoral. Whoever desires no more
|
|
of things than knowledge of them attains speedily to peace of mind and
|
|
will at most err through lack of knowledge, but scarcely through
|
|
eagerness for knowledge (or through sin, as the world calls it). He will
|
|
not ask that eagerness for knowledge be interdicted and rooted out; but
|
|
his single, all powerful ambition to _know_ as thoroughly and as fully
|
|
as possible, will soothe him and moderate all that is strenuous in his
|
|
circumstances. Moreover, he is now rid of a number of disturbing
|
|
notions; he is no longer beguiled by such words as hell-pain,
|
|
sinfulness, unworthiness: he sees in them merely the flitting shadow
|
|
pictures of false views of life and of the world.
|
|
|
|
|
|
57
|
|
|
|
=Ethic as Man's Self-Analysis.=--A good author, whose heart is really in
|
|
his work, wishes that someone would arise and wholly refute him if only
|
|
thereby his subject be wholly clarified and made plain. The maid in love
|
|
wishes that she could attest the fidelity of her own passion through
|
|
the faithlessness of her beloved. The soldier wishes to sacrifice his
|
|
life on the field of his fatherland's victory: for in the victory of his
|
|
fatherland his highest end is attained. The mother gives her child what
|
|
she deprives herself of--sleep, the best nourishment and, in certain
|
|
circumstances, her health, her self.--But are all these acts unegoistic?
|
|
Are these moral deeds miracles because they are, in Schopenhauer's
|
|
phrase "impossible and yet accomplished"? Is it not evident that in all
|
|
four cases man loves one part of himself, (a thought, a longing, an
|
|
experience) more than he loves another part of himself? that he thus
|
|
analyses his being and sacrifices one part of it to another part? Is
|
|
this essentially different from the behavior of the obstinate man who
|
|
says "I would rather be shot than go a step out of my way for this
|
|
fellow"?--Preference for something (wish, impulse, longing) is present
|
|
in all four instances: to yield to it, with all its consequences, is not
|
|
"unegoistic."--In the domain of the ethical man conducts himself not as
|
|
individuum but as dividuum.
|
|
|
|
|
|
58
|
|
|
|
=What Can be Promised.=--Actions can be promised, but not feelings, for
|
|
these are involuntary. Whoever promises somebody to love him always, or
|
|
to hate him always, or to be ever true to him, promises something that
|
|
it is out of his power to bestow. But he really can promise such courses
|
|
of conduct as are the ordinary accompaniments of love, of hate, of
|
|
fidelity, but which may also have their source in motives quite
|
|
different: for various ways and motives lead to the same conduct. The
|
|
promise to love someone always, means, consequently: as long as I love
|
|
you, I will manifest the deportment of love; but if I cease to love you
|
|
my deportment, although from some other motive, will be just the same,
|
|
so that to the people about us it will seem as if my love remained
|
|
unchanged.--Hence it is the continuance of the deportment of love that
|
|
is promised in every instance in which eternal love (provided no element
|
|
of self deception be involved) is sworn.
|
|
|
|
|
|
59
|
|
|
|
=Intellect and Ethic.=--One must have a good memory to be able to keep
|
|
the promises one makes. One must have a strong imagination in order to
|
|
feel sympathy. So closely is ethics connected with intellectual
|
|
capacity.
|
|
|
|
|
|
60
|
|
|
|
=Desire for Vengeance and Vengeance Itself.=--To meditate revenge and
|
|
attain it is tantamount to an attack of fever, that passes away: but to
|
|
meditate revenge without possessing the strength or courage to attain it
|
|
is tantamount to suffering from a chronic malady, or poisoning of body
|
|
and soul. Ethics, which takes only the motive into account, rates both
|
|
cases alike: people generally estimate the first case as the worst
|
|
(because of the consequences which the deed of vengeance may entail).
|
|
Both views are short sighted.
|
|
|
|
|
|
61
|
|
|
|
=Ability to Wait.=--Ability to wait is so hard to acquire that great
|
|
poets have not disdained to make inability to wait the central motive of
|
|
their poems. So Shakespeare in Othello, Sophocles in Ajax, whose suicide
|
|
would not have seemed to him so imperative had he only been able to cool
|
|
his ardor for a day, as the oracle foreboded: apparently he would then
|
|
have repulsed somewhat the fearful whispers of distracted thought and
|
|
have said to himself: Who has not already, in my situation, mistaken a
|
|
sheep for a hero? is it so extraordinary a thing? On the contrary it is
|
|
something universally human: Ajax should thus have soothed himself.
|
|
Passion will not wait: the tragic element in the lives of great men does
|
|
not generally consist in their conflict with time and the inferiority
|
|
of their fellowmen but in their inability to put off their work a year
|
|
or two: they cannot wait.--In all duels, the friends who advise have but
|
|
to ascertain if the principals can wait: if this be not possible, a duel
|
|
is rational inasmuch as each of the combatants may say: "either I
|
|
continue to live and the other dies instantly, or vice versa." To wait
|
|
in such circumstances would be equivalent to the frightful martyrdom of
|
|
enduring dishonor in the presence of him responsible for the dishonor:
|
|
and this can easily cost more anguish than life is worth.
|
|
|
|
|
|
62
|
|
|
|
=Glutting Revenge.=--Coarse men, who feel a sense of injury, are in the
|
|
habit of rating the extent of their injury as high as possible and of
|
|
stating the occasion of it in greatly exaggerated language, in order to
|
|
be able to feast themselves on the sentiments of hatred and revenge thus
|
|
aroused.
|
|
|
|
|
|
63
|
|
|
|
=Value of Disparagement.=--Not a few, perhaps the majority of men, find
|
|
it necessary, in order to retain their self esteem and a certain
|
|
uprightness in conduct, to mentally disparage and belittle all the
|
|
people they know. But as the inferior natures are in the majority and as
|
|
a great deal depends upon whether they retain or lose this uprightness,
|
|
so--
|
|
|
|
|
|
64
|
|
|
|
=The Man in a Rage.=--We should be on our guard against the man who is
|
|
enraged against us, as against one who has attempted our life, for the
|
|
fact that we still live consists solely in the inability to kill: were
|
|
looks sufficient, it would have been all up with us long since. To
|
|
reduce anyone to silence by physical manifestations of savagery or by a
|
|
terrorizing process is a relic of under civilization. So, too, that cold
|
|
look which great personages cast upon their servitors is a remnant of
|
|
the caste distinction between man and man; a specimen of rude antiquity:
|
|
women, the conservers of the old, have maintained this survival, too,
|
|
more perfectly than men.
|
|
|
|
|
|
65
|
|
|
|
=Whither Honesty May Lead.=--Someone once had the bad habit of
|
|
expressing himself upon occasion, and with perfect honesty, on the
|
|
subject of the motives of his conduct, which were as good or as bad as
|
|
the motives of all men. He aroused first disfavor, then suspicion,
|
|
became gradually of ill repute and was pronounced a person of whom
|
|
society should beware, until at last the law took note of such a
|
|
perverted being for reasons which usually have no weight with it or to
|
|
which it closes its eyes. Lack of taciturnity concerning what is
|
|
universally held secret, and an irresponsible predisposition to see what
|
|
no one wants to see--oneself--brought him to prison and to early death.
|
|
|
|
|
|
66
|
|
|
|
=Punishable, not Punished.=--Our crime against criminals consists in the
|
|
fact that we treat them as rascals.
|
|
|
|
|
|
67
|
|
|
|
=Sancta simplicitas of Virtue.=--Every virtue has its privilege: for
|
|
example, that of contributing its own little bundle of wood to the
|
|
funeral pyre of one condemned.
|
|
|
|
|
|
68
|
|
|
|
=Morality and Consequence.=--Not alone the beholders of an act generally
|
|
estimate the ethical or unethical element in it by the result: no, the
|
|
one who performed the act does the same. For the motives and the
|
|
intentions are seldom sufficiently apparent, and amid them the memory
|
|
itself seems to become clouded by the results of the act, so that a man
|
|
often ascribes the wrong motives to his acts or regards the remote
|
|
motives as the direct ones. Success often imparts to an action all the
|
|
brilliance and honor of good intention, while failure throws the shadow
|
|
of conscience over the most estimable deeds. Hence arises the familiar
|
|
maxim of the politician: "Give me only success: with it I can win all
|
|
the noble souls over to my side--and make myself noble even in my own
|
|
eyes."--In like manner will success prove an excellent substitute for a
|
|
better argument. To this very day many well educated men think the
|
|
triumph of Christianity over Greek philosophy is a proof of the superior
|
|
truth of the former--although in this case it was simply the coarser and
|
|
more powerful that triumphed over the more delicate and intellectual. As
|
|
regards superiority of truth, it is evident that because of it the
|
|
reviving sciences have connected themselves, point for point, with the
|
|
philosophy of Epicurus, while Christianity has, point for point,
|
|
recoiled from it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
69
|
|
|
|
=Love and Justice.=--Why is love so highly prized at the expense of
|
|
justice and why are such beautiful things spoken of the former as if it
|
|
were a far higher entity than the latter? Is the former not palpably a
|
|
far more stupid thing than the latter?--Certainly, and on that very
|
|
account so much the more agreeable to everybody: it is blind and has a
|
|
rich horn of plenty out of which it distributes its gifts to everyone,
|
|
even when they are unmerited, even when no thanks are returned. It is
|
|
impartial like the rain, which according to the bible and experience,
|
|
wets not alone the unjust but, in certain circumstances, the just as
|
|
well, and to their skins at that.
|
|
|
|
|
|
70
|
|
|
|
=Execution.=--How comes it that every execution causes us more pain than
|
|
a murder? It is the coolness of the executioner, the painful
|
|
preparation, the perception that here a man is being used as an
|
|
instrument for the intimidation of others. For the guilt is not punished
|
|
even if there be any: this is ascribable to the teachers, the parents,
|
|
the environment, in ourselves, not in the murderer--I mean the
|
|
predisposing circumstances.
|
|
|
|
|
|
71
|
|
|
|
=Hope.=--Pandora brought the box containing evils and opened it. It was
|
|
the gift of the gods to men, a gift of most enticing appearance
|
|
externally and called the "box of happiness." Thereupon all the evils,
|
|
(living, moving things) flew out: from that time to the present they fly
|
|
about and do ill to men by day and night. One evil only did not fly out
|
|
of the box: Pandora shut the lid at the behest of Zeus and it remained
|
|
inside. Now man has this box of happiness perpetually in the house and
|
|
congratulates himself upon the treasure inside of it; it is at his
|
|
service: he grasps it whenever he is so disposed, for he knows not that
|
|
the box which Pandora brought was a box of evils. Hence he looks upon
|
|
the one evil still remaining as the greatest source of happiness--it is
|
|
hope.--Zeus intended that man, notwithstanding the evils oppressing him,
|
|
should continue to live and not rid himself of life, but keep on making
|
|
himself miserable. For this purpose he bestowed hope upon man: it is, in
|
|
truth, the greatest of evils for it lengthens the ordeal of man.
|
|
|
|
|
|
72
|
|
|
|
=Degree of Moral Susceptibility Unknown.=--The fact that one has or has
|
|
not had certain profoundly moving impressions and insights into
|
|
things--for example, an unjustly executed, slain or martyred father, a
|
|
faithless wife, a shattering, serious accident,--is the factor upon
|
|
which the excitation of our passions to white heat principally depends,
|
|
as well as the course of our whole lives. No one knows to what lengths
|
|
circumstances (sympathy, emotion) may lead him. He does not know the
|
|
full extent of his own susceptibility. Wretched environment makes him
|
|
wretched. It is as a rule not the quality of our experience but its
|
|
quantity upon which depends the development of our superiority or
|
|
inferiority, from the point of view of good and evil.
|
|
|
|
|
|
73
|
|
|
|
=The Martyr Against His Will.=--In a certain movement there was a man
|
|
who was too cowardly and vacillating ever to contradict his comrades. He
|
|
was made use of in each emergency, every sacrifice was demanded of him
|
|
because he feared the disfavor of his comrades more than he feared
|
|
death: he was a petty, abject spirit. They perceived this and upon the
|
|
foundation of the qualities just mentioned they elevated him to the
|
|
altitude of a hero, and finally even of a martyr. Although the cowardly
|
|
creature always inwardly said No, he always said Yes with his lips, even
|
|
upon the scaffold, where he died for the tenets of his party: for beside
|
|
him stood one of his old associates who so domineered him with look and
|
|
word that he actually went to his death with the utmost fortitude and
|
|
has ever since been celebrated as a martyr and exalted character.
|
|
|
|
|
|
74
|
|
|
|
=General Standard.=--One will rarely err if extreme actions be ascribed
|
|
to vanity, ordinary actions to habit and mean actions to fear.
|
|
|
|
|
|
75
|
|
|
|
=Misunderstanding of Virtue.=--Whoever has obtained his experience of
|
|
vice in connection with pleasure as in the case of one with a youth of
|
|
wild oats behind him, comes to the conclusion that virtue must be
|
|
connected with self denial. Whoever, on the other hand, has been very
|
|
much plagued by his passions and vices, longs to find in virtue the rest
|
|
and peace of the soul. That is why it is possible for two virtuous
|
|
people to misunderstand one another wholly.
|
|
|
|
|
|
76
|
|
|
|
=The Ascetic.=--The ascetic makes out of virtue a slavery.
|
|
|
|
|
|
77
|
|
|
|
=Honor Transferred from Persons to Things.=--Actions prompted by love or
|
|
by the spirit of self sacrifice for others are universally honored
|
|
wherever they are manifest. Hence is magnified the value set upon
|
|
whatever things may be loved or whatever things conduce to self
|
|
sacrifice: although in themselves they may be worth nothing much. A
|
|
valiant army is evidence of the value of the thing it fights for.
|
|
|
|
|
|
78
|
|
|
|
=Ambition a Substitute for Moral Feeling.=--Moral feeling should never
|
|
become extinct in natures that are destitute of ambition. The ambitious
|
|
can get along without moral feeling just as well as with it.--Hence the
|
|
sons of retired, ambitionless families, generally become by a series of
|
|
rapid gradations, when they lose moral feeling, the most absolute
|
|
lunkheads.
|
|
|
|
|
|
79
|
|
|
|
=Vanity Enriches.=--How poor the human mind would be without vanity! As
|
|
it is, it resembles a well stacked and ever renewed ware-emporium that
|
|
attracts buyers of every class: they can find almost everything, have
|
|
almost everything, provided they bring with them the right kind of
|
|
money--admiration.
|
|
|
|
|
|
80
|
|
|
|
=Senility and Death.=--Apart from the demands made by religion, it may
|
|
well be asked why it is more honorable in an aged man, who feels the
|
|
decline of his powers, to await slow extinction than to fix a term to
|
|
his existence himself? Suicide in such a case is a quite natural and due
|
|
proceeding that ought to command respect as a triumph of reason: and did
|
|
in fact command respect during the times of the masters of Greek
|
|
philosophy and the bravest Roman patriots, who usually died by their own
|
|
hand. Eagerness, on the other hand, to keep alive from day to day with
|
|
the anxious counsel of physicians, without capacity to attain any nearer
|
|
to one's ideal of life, is far less worthy of respect.--Religions are
|
|
very rich in refuges from the mandate of suicide: hence they ingratiate
|
|
themselves with those who cling to life.
|
|
|
|
|
|
81
|
|
|
|
=Delusions Regarding Victim and Regarding Evil Doer.=--When the rich man
|
|
takes a possession away from the poor man (for example, a prince who
|
|
deprives a plebeian of his beloved) there arises in the mind of the poor
|
|
man a delusion: he thinks the rich man must be wholly perverted to take
|
|
from him the little that he has. But the rich man appreciates the value
|
|
of a single possession much less because he is accustomed to many
|
|
possessions, so that he cannot put himself in the place of the poor man
|
|
and does not act by any means as ill as the latter supposes. Both have a
|
|
totally false idea of each other. The iniquities of the mighty which
|
|
bulk most largely in history are not nearly so monstrous as they seem.
|
|
The hereditary consciousness of being a superior being with superior
|
|
environment renders one very callous and lulls the conscience to rest.
|
|
We all feel, when the difference between ourselves and some other being
|
|
is exceedingly great, that no element of injustice can be involved, and
|
|
we kill a fly with no qualms of conscience whatever. So, too, it is no
|
|
indication of wickedness in Xerxes (whom even the Greeks represent as
|
|
exceptionally noble) that he deprived a father of his son and had him
|
|
drawn and quartered because the latter had manifested a troublesome,
|
|
ominous distrust of an entire expedition: the individual was in this
|
|
case brushed aside as a pestiferous insect. He was too low and mean to
|
|
justify continued sentiments of compunction in the ruler of the world.
|
|
Indeed no cruel man is ever as cruel, in the main, as his victim thinks.
|
|
The idea of pain is never the same as the sensation. The rule is
|
|
precisely analogous in the case of the unjust judge, and of the
|
|
journalist who by means of devious rhetorical methods, leads public
|
|
opinion astray. Cause and effect are in all these instances entwined
|
|
with totally different series of feeling and thoughts, whereas it is
|
|
unconsciously assumed that principal and victim feel and think exactly
|
|
alike, and because of this assumption the guilt of the one is based upon
|
|
the pain of the other.
|
|
|
|
|
|
82
|
|
|
|
=The Soul's Skin.=--As the bones, flesh, entrails and blood vessels are
|
|
enclosed by a skin that renders the aspect of men endurable, so the
|
|
impulses and passions of the soul are enclosed by vanity: it is the skin
|
|
of the soul.
|
|
|
|
|
|
83
|
|
|
|
=Sleep of Virtue.=--If virtue goes to sleep, it will be more vigorous
|
|
when it awakes.
|
|
|
|
|
|
84
|
|
|
|
=Subtlety of Shame.=--Men are not ashamed of obscene thoughts, but they
|
|
are ashamed when they suspect that obscene thoughts are attributed to
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
|
|
85
|
|
|
|
=Naughtiness Is Rare.=--Most people are too much absorbed in themselves
|
|
to be bad.
|
|
|
|
|
|
86
|
|
|
|
=The Mite in the Balance.=--We are praised or blamed, as the one or the
|
|
other may be expedient, for displaying to advantage our power of
|
|
discernment.
|
|
|
|
|
|
87
|
|
|
|
=Luke 18:14 Improved.=--He that humbleth himself wisheth to be exalted.
|
|
|
|
|
|
88
|
|
|
|
=Prevention of Suicide.=--There is a justice according to which we may
|
|
deprive a man of life, but none that permits us to deprive him of death:
|
|
this is merely cruelty.
|
|
|
|
|
|
89
|
|
|
|
=Vanity.=--We set store by the good opinion of men, first because it is
|
|
of use to us and next because we wish to give them pleasure (children
|
|
their parents, pupils their teacher, and well disposed persons all
|
|
others generally). Only when the good opinion of men is important to
|
|
somebody, apart from personal advantage or the desire to give pleasure,
|
|
do we speak of vanity. In this last case, a man wants to give himself
|
|
pleasure, but at the expense of his fellow creatures, inasmuch as he
|
|
inspires them with a false opinion of himself or else inspires "good
|
|
opinion" in such a way that it is a source of pain to others (by
|
|
arousing envy). The individual generally seeks, through the opinion of
|
|
others, to attest and fortify the opinion he has of himself; but the
|
|
potent influence of authority--an influence as old as man himself--leads
|
|
many, also, to strengthen their own opinion of themselves by means of
|
|
authority, that is, to borrow from others the expedient of relying more
|
|
upon the judgment of their fellow men than upon their own.--Interest in
|
|
oneself, the wish to please oneself attains, with the vain man, such
|
|
proportions that he first misleads others into a false, unduly exalted
|
|
estimate of himself and then relies upon the authority of others for his
|
|
self estimate; he thus creates the delusion that he pins his faith
|
|
to.--It must, however, be admitted that the vain man does not desire to
|
|
please others so much as himself and he will often go so far, on this
|
|
account, as to overlook his own interests: for he often inspires his
|
|
fellow creatures with malicious envy and renders them ill disposed in
|
|
order that he may thus increase his own delight in himself.
|
|
|
|
|
|
90
|
|
|
|
=Limits of the Love of Mankind.=--Every man who has declared that some
|
|
other man is an ass or a scoundrel, gets angry when the other man
|
|
conclusively shows that the assertion was erroneous.
|
|
|
|
|
|
91
|
|
|
|
=Weeping Morality.=--How much delight morality occasions! Think of the
|
|
ocean of pleasing tears that has flowed from the narration of noble,
|
|
great-hearted deeds!--This charm of life would disappear if the belief
|
|
in complete irresponsibility gained the upper hand.
|
|
|
|
|
|
92
|
|
|
|
=Origin of Justice.=--Justice (reasonableness) has its origin among
|
|
approximate equals in power, as Thucydides (in the dreadful conferences
|
|
of the Athenian and Melian envoys) has rightly conceived. Thus, where
|
|
there exists no demonstrable supremacy and a struggle leads but to
|
|
mutual, useless damage, the reflection arises that an understanding
|
|
would best be arrived at and some compromise entered into. The
|
|
reciprocal nature is hence the first nature of justice. Each party makes
|
|
the other content inasmuch as each receives what it prizes more highly
|
|
than the other. Each surrenders to the other what the other wants and
|
|
receives in return its own desire. Justice is therefore reprisal and
|
|
exchange upon the basis of an approximate equality of power. Thus
|
|
revenge pertains originally to the domain of justice as it is a sort of
|
|
reciprocity. Equally so, gratitude.--Justice reverts naturally to the
|
|
standpoint of self preservation, therefore to the egoism of this
|
|
consideration: "why should I injure myself to no purpose and perhaps
|
|
never attain my end?"--So much for the origin of justice. Only because
|
|
men, through mental habits, have forgotten the original motive of so
|
|
called just and rational acts, and also because for thousands of years
|
|
children have been brought to admire and imitate such acts, have they
|
|
gradually assumed the appearance of being unegotistical. Upon this
|
|
appearance is founded the high estimate of them, which, moreover, like
|
|
all estimates, is continually developing, for whatever is highly
|
|
esteemed is striven for, imitated, made the object of self sacrifice,
|
|
while the merit of the pain and emulation thus expended is, by each
|
|
individual, ascribed to the thing esteemed.--How slightly moral would
|
|
the world appear without forgetfulness! A poet could say that God had
|
|
posted forgetfulness as a sentinel at the portal of the temple of human
|
|
merit!
|
|
|
|
|
|
93
|
|
|
|
=Concerning the Law of the Weaker.=--Whenever any party, for instance, a
|
|
besieged city, yields to a stronger party, under stipulated conditions,
|
|
the counter stipulation is that there be a reduction to insignificance,
|
|
a burning and destruction of the city and thus a great damage inflicted
|
|
upon the stronger party. Thus arises a sort of equalization principle
|
|
upon the basis of which a law can be established. The enemy has an
|
|
advantage to gain by its maintenance.--To this extent there is also a
|
|
law between slaves and masters, limited only by the extent to which the
|
|
slave may be useful to his master. The law goes originally only so far
|
|
as the one party may appear to the other potent, invincible, stable, and
|
|
the like. To such an extent, then, the weaker has rights, but very
|
|
limited ones. Hence the famous dictum that each has as much law on his
|
|
side as his power extends (or more accurately, as his power is believed
|
|
to extend).
|
|
|
|
|
|
94
|
|
|
|
=The Three Phases of Morality Hitherto.=--It is the first evidence that
|
|
the animal has become human when his conduct ceases to be based upon the
|
|
immediately expedient, but upon the permanently useful; when he has,
|
|
therefore, grown utilitarian, capable of purpose. Thus is manifested the
|
|
first rule of reason. A still higher stage is attained when he regulates
|
|
his conduct upon the basis of honor, by means of which he gains mastery
|
|
of himself and surrenders his desires to principles; this lifts him far
|
|
above the phase in which he was actuated only by considerations of
|
|
personal advantage as he understood it. He respects and wishes to be
|
|
respected. This means that he comprehends utility as a thing dependent
|
|
upon what his opinion of others is and their opinion of him. Finally he
|
|
regulates his conduct (the highest phase of morality hitherto attained)
|
|
by his own standard of men and things. He himself decides, for himself
|
|
and for others, what is honorable and what is useful. He has become a
|
|
law giver to opinion, upon the basis of his ever higher developing
|
|
conception of the utilitarian and the honorable. Knowledge makes him
|
|
capable of placing the highest utility, (that is, the universal,
|
|
enduring utility) before merely personal utility,--of placing ennobling
|
|
recognition of the enduring and universal before the merely temporary:
|
|
he lives and acts as a collective individuality.
|
|
|
|
|
|
95
|
|
|
|
=Ethic of the Developed Individual.=--Hitherto the altruistic has been
|
|
looked upon as the distinctive characteristic of moral conduct, and it
|
|
is manifest that it was the consideration of universal utility that
|
|
prompted praise and recognition of altruistic conduct. Must not a
|
|
radical departure from this point of view be imminent, now that it is
|
|
being ever more clearly perceived that in the most personal
|
|
considerations the most general welfare is attained: so that conduct
|
|
inspired by the most personal considerations of advantage is just the
|
|
sort which has its origin in the present conception of morality (as a
|
|
universal utilitarianism)? To contemplate oneself as a complete
|
|
personality and bear the welfare of that personality in mind in all that
|
|
one does--this is productive of better results than any sympathetic
|
|
susceptibility and conduct in behalf of others. Indeed we all suffer
|
|
from such disparagement of our own personalities, which are at present
|
|
made to deteriorate from neglect. Capacity is, in fact, divorced from
|
|
our personality in most cases, and sacrificed to the state, to science,
|
|
to the needy, as if it were the bad which deserved to be made a
|
|
sacrifice. Now, we are willing to labor for our fellowmen but only to
|
|
the extent that we find our own highest advantage in so doing, no more,
|
|
no less. The whole matter depends upon what may be understood as one's
|
|
advantage: the crude, undeveloped, rough individualities will be the
|
|
very ones to estimate it most inadequately.
|
|
|
|
|
|
96
|
|
|
|
=Usage and Ethic.=--To be moral, virtuous, praiseworthy means to yield
|
|
obedience to ancient law and hereditary usage. Whether this obedience be
|
|
rendered readily or with difficulty is long immaterial. Enough that it
|
|
be rendered. "Good" finally comes to mean him who acts in the
|
|
traditional manner, as a result of heredity or natural disposition, that
|
|
is to say does what is customary with scarcely an effort, whatever that
|
|
may be (for example revenges injuries when revenge, as with the ancient
|
|
Greeks, was part of good morals). He is called good because he is good
|
|
"to some purpose," and as benevolence, sympathy, considerateness,
|
|
moderation and the like come, in the general course of conduct, to be
|
|
finally recognized as "good to some purpose" (as utilitarian) the
|
|
benevolent man, the helpful man, is duly styled "good". (At first other
|
|
and more important kinds of utilitarian qualities stand in the
|
|
foreground.) Bad is "not habitual" (unusual), to do things not in
|
|
accordance with usage, to oppose the traditional, however rational or
|
|
the reverse the traditional may be. To do injury to one's social group
|
|
or community (and to one's neighbor as thus understood) is looked upon,
|
|
through all the variations of moral laws, in different ages, as the
|
|
peculiarly "immoral" act, so that to-day we associate the word "bad"
|
|
with deliberate injury to one's neighbor or community. "Egoistic" and
|
|
"non-egoistic" do not constitute the fundamental opposites that have
|
|
brought mankind to make a distinction between moral and immoral, good
|
|
and bad; but adherence to traditional custom, and emancipation from it.
|
|
How the traditional had its origin is quite immaterial; in any event it
|
|
had no reference to good and bad or any categorical imperative but to
|
|
the all important end of maintaining and sustaining the community, the
|
|
race, the confederation, the nation. Every superstitious custom that
|
|
originated in a misinterpreted event or casualty entailed some
|
|
tradition, to adhere to which is moral. To break loose from it is
|
|
dangerous, more prejudicial to the community than to the individual
|
|
(because divinity visits the consequences of impiety and sacrilege upon
|
|
the community rather than upon the individual). Now every tradition
|
|
grows ever more venerable--the more remote is its origin, the more
|
|
confused that origin is. The reverence due to it increases from
|
|
generation to generation. The tradition finally becomes holy and
|
|
inspires awe. Thus it is that the precept of piety is a far loftier
|
|
morality than that inculcated by altruistic conduct.
|
|
|
|
|
|
97
|
|
|
|
=Delight in the Moral.=--A potent species of joy (and thereby the source
|
|
of morality) is custom. The customary is done more easily, better,
|
|
therefore preferably. A pleasure is felt in it and experience thus shows
|
|
that since this practice has held its own it must be good. A manner or
|
|
moral that lives and lets live is thus demonstrated advantageous,
|
|
necessary, in contradistinction to all new and not yet adopted
|
|
practices. The custom is therefore the blending of the agreeable and the
|
|
useful. Moreover it does not require deliberation. As soon as man can
|
|
exercise compulsion, he exercises it to enforce and establish his
|
|
customs, for they are to him attested lifewisdom. So, too, a community
|
|
of individuals constrains each one of their number to adopt the same
|
|
moral or custom. The error herein is this: Because a certain custom has
|
|
been agreeable to the feelings or at least because it proves a means of
|
|
maintenance, this custom must be imperative, for it is regarded as the
|
|
only thing that can possibly be consistent with well being. The well
|
|
being of life seems to spring from it alone. This conception of the
|
|
customary as a condition of existence is carried into the slightest
|
|
detail of morality. Inasmuch as insight into true causation is quite
|
|
restricted in all inferior peoples, a superstitious anxiety is felt that
|
|
everything be done in due routine. Even when a custom is exceedingly
|
|
burdensome it is preserved because of its supposed vital utility. It is
|
|
not known that the same degree of satisfaction can be experienced
|
|
through some other custom and even higher degrees of satisfaction, too.
|
|
But it is fully appreciated that all customs do become more agreeable
|
|
with the lapse of time, no matter how difficult they may have been found
|
|
in the beginning, and that even the severest way of life may be rendered
|
|
a matter of habit and therefore a pleasure.
|
|
|
|
|
|
98
|
|
|
|
=Pleasure and Social Instinct.=--Through his relations with other men,
|
|
man derives a new species of delight in those pleasurable emotions which
|
|
his own personality affords him; whereby the domain of pleasurable
|
|
emotions is made infinitely more comprehensive. No doubt he has
|
|
inherited many of these feelings from the brutes, which palpably feel
|
|
delight when they sport with one another, as mothers with their young.
|
|
So, too, the sexual relations must be taken into account: they make
|
|
every young woman interesting to every young man from the standpoint of
|
|
pleasure, and conversely. The feeling of pleasure originating in human
|
|
relationships makes men in general better. The delight in common, the
|
|
pleasures enjoyed together heighten one another. The individual feels a
|
|
sense of security. He becomes better natured. Distrust and malice
|
|
dissolve. For the man feels the sense of benefit and observes the same
|
|
feeling in others. Mutual manifestations of pleasure inspire mutual
|
|
sympathy, the sentiment of homogeneity. The same effect is felt also at
|
|
mutual sufferings, in a common danger, in stormy weather. Upon such a
|
|
foundation are built the earliest alliances: the object of which is the
|
|
mutual protection and safety from threatening misfortunes, and the
|
|
welfare of each individual. And thus the social instinct develops from
|
|
pleasure.
|
|
|
|
|
|
99
|
|
|
|
=The Guiltless Nature of So-Called Bad Acts.=--All "bad" acts are
|
|
inspired by the impulse to self preservation or, more accurately, by
|
|
the desire for pleasure and for the avoidance of pain in the individual.
|
|
Thus are they occasioned, but they are not, therefore, bad. "Pain self
|
|
prepared" does not exist, except in the brains of the philosophers, any
|
|
more than "pleasure self prepared" (sympathy in the Schopenhauer sense).
|
|
In the condition anterior to the state we kill the creature, be it man
|
|
or ape, that attempts to pluck the fruit of a tree before we pluck it
|
|
ourselves should we happen to be hungry at the time and making for that
|
|
tree: as we would do to-day, so far as the brute is concerned, if we
|
|
were wandering in savage regions.--The bad acts which most disturb us at
|
|
present do so because of the erroneous supposition that the one who is
|
|
guilty of them towards us has a free will in the matter and that it was
|
|
within his discretion not to have done these evil things. This belief in
|
|
discretionary power inspires hate, thirst for revenge, malice, the
|
|
entire perversion of the mental processes, whereas we would feel in no
|
|
way incensed against the brute, as we hold it irresponsible. To inflict
|
|
pain not from the instinct of self preservation but in requital--this is
|
|
the consequence of false judgment and is equally a guiltless course of
|
|
conduct. The individual can, in that condition which is anterior to the
|
|
state, act with fierceness and violence for the intimidation of another
|
|
creature, in order to render his own power more secure as a result of
|
|
such acts of intimidation. Thus acts the powerful, the superior, the
|
|
original state founder, who subjugates the weaker. He has the right to
|
|
do so, as the state nowadays assumes the same right, or, to be more
|
|
accurate, there is no right that can conflict with this. A foundation
|
|
for all morality can first be laid only when a stronger individuality or
|
|
a collective individuality, for example society, the state, subjects the
|
|
single personalities, hence builds upon their unification and
|
|
establishes a bond of union. Morality results from compulsion, it is
|
|
indeed itself one long compulsion to which obedience is rendered in
|
|
order that pain may be avoided. At first it is but custom, later free
|
|
obedience and finally almost instinct. At last it is (like everything
|
|
habitual and natural) associated with pleasure--and is then called
|
|
virtue.
|
|
|
|
|
|
100
|
|
|
|
=Shame.=--Shame exists wherever a "mystery" exists: but this is a
|
|
religious notion which in the earlier period of human civilization had
|
|
great vogue. Everywhere there were circumscribed spots to which access
|
|
was denied on account of some divine law, except in special
|
|
circumstances. At first these spots were quite extensive, inasmuch as
|
|
stipulated areas could not be trod by the uninitiated, who, when near
|
|
them, felt tremors and anxieties. This sentiment was frequently
|
|
transferred to other relationships, for example to sexual relations,
|
|
which, as the privilege and gateway of mature age, must be withdrawn
|
|
from the contemplation of youth for its own advantage: relations which
|
|
many divinities were busy in preserving and sanctifying, images of which
|
|
divinities were duly placed in marital chambers as guardians. (In
|
|
Turkish such an apartment is termed a harem or holy thing, the same word
|
|
also designating the vestibule of a mosque). So, too, Kingship is
|
|
regarded as a centre from which power and brilliance stream forth, as a
|
|
mystery to the subjects, impregnated with secrecy and shame, sentiments
|
|
still quite operative among peoples who in other respects are without
|
|
any shame at all. So, too, is the whole world of inward states, the
|
|
so-called "soul," even now, for all non-philosophical persons, a
|
|
"mystery," and during countless ages it was looked upon as a something
|
|
of divine origin, in direct communion with deity. It is, therefore, an
|
|
adytum and occasions shame.
|
|
|
|
|
|
101
|
|
|
|
=Judge Not.=--Care must be taken, in the contemplation of earlier ages,
|
|
that there be no falling into unjust scornfulness. The injustice in
|
|
slavery, the cruelty in the subjugation of persons and peoples must not
|
|
be estimated by our standard. For in that period the instinct of justice
|
|
was not so highly developed. Who dare reproach the Genoese Calvin for
|
|
burning the physician Servetus at the stake? It was a proceeding growing
|
|
out of his convictions. And the Inquisition, too, had its justification.
|
|
The only thing is that the prevailing views were false and led to those
|
|
proceedings which seem so cruel to us, simply because such views have
|
|
become foreign to us. Besides, what is the burning alive of one
|
|
individual compared with eternal hell pains for everybody else? And yet
|
|
this idea then had hold of all the world without in the least vitiating,
|
|
with its frightfulness, the other idea of a god. Even we nowadays are
|
|
hard and merciless to political revolutionists, but that is because we
|
|
are in the habit of believing the state a necessity, and hence the
|
|
cruelty of the proceeding is not so much understood as in the other
|
|
cases where the points of view are repudiated. The cruelty to animals
|
|
shown by children and Italians is due to the same misunderstanding. The
|
|
animal, owing to the exigencies of the church catechism, is placed too
|
|
far below the level of mankind.--Much, too, that is frightful and
|
|
inhuman in history, and which is almost incredible, is rendered less
|
|
atrocious by the reflection that the one who commands and the one who
|
|
executes are different persons. The former does not witness the
|
|
performance and hence it makes no strong impression on him. The latter
|
|
obeys a superior and hence feels no responsibility. Most princes and
|
|
military chieftains appear, through lack of true perception, cruel and
|
|
hard without really being so.--Egoism is not bad because the idea of the
|
|
"neighbor"--the word is of Christian origin and does not correspond to
|
|
truth--is very weak in us, and we feel ourselves, in regard to him, as
|
|
free from responsibility as if plants and stones were involved. That
|
|
another is in suffering must be learned and it can never be wholly
|
|
learned.
|
|
|
|
|
|
102
|
|
|
|
"=Man Always Does Right.="--We do not blame nature when she sends a
|
|
thunder storm and makes us wet: why then do we term the man who inflicts
|
|
injury immoral? Because in the latter case we assume a voluntary,
|
|
ruling, free will, and in the former necessity. But this distinction is
|
|
a delusion. Moreover, even the intentional infliction of injury is not,
|
|
in all circumstances termed immoral. Thus, we kill a fly intentionally
|
|
without thinking very much about it, simply because its buzzing about is
|
|
disagreeable; and we punish a criminal and inflict pain upon him in
|
|
order to protect ourselves and society. In the first case it is the
|
|
individual who, for the sake of preserving himself or in order to spare
|
|
himself pain, does injury with design: in the second case, it is the
|
|
state. All ethic deems intentional infliction of injury justified by
|
|
necessity; that is when it is a matter of self preservation. But these
|
|
two points of view are sufficient to explain all bad acts done by man to
|
|
men. It is desired to obtain pleasure or avoid pain. In any sense, it is
|
|
a question, always, of self preservation. Socrates and Plato are right:
|
|
whatever man does he always does right: that is, does what seems to him
|
|
good (advantageous) according to the degree of advancement his intellect
|
|
has attained, which is always the measure of his rational capacity.
|
|
|
|
|
|
103
|
|
|
|
=The Inoffensive in Badness.=--Badness has not for its object the
|
|
infliction of pain upon others but simply our own satisfaction as, for
|
|
instance, in the case of thirst for vengeance or of nerve excitation.
|
|
Every act of teasing shows what pleasure is caused by the display of
|
|
our power over others and what feelings of delight are experienced in
|
|
the sense of domination. Is there, then, anything immoral in feeling
|
|
pleasure in the pain of others? Is malicious joy devilish, as
|
|
Schopenhauer says? In the realm of nature we feel joy in breaking
|
|
boughs, shattering rocks, fighting with wild beasts, simply to attest
|
|
our strength thereby. Should not the knowledge that another suffers on
|
|
our account here, in this case, make the same kind of act, (which, by
|
|
the way, arouses no qualms of conscience in us) immoral also? But if we
|
|
had not this knowledge there would be no pleasure in one's own
|
|
superiority or power, for this pleasure is experienced only in the
|
|
suffering of another, as in the case of teasing. All pleasure is, in
|
|
itself, neither good nor bad. Whence comes the conviction that one
|
|
should not cause pain in others in order to feel pleasure oneself?
|
|
Simply from the standpoint of utility, that is, in consideration of the
|
|
consequences, of ultimate pain, since the injured party or state will
|
|
demand satisfaction and revenge. This consideration alone can have led
|
|
to the determination to renounce such pleasure.--Sympathy has the
|
|
satisfaction of others in view no more than, as already stated, badness
|
|
has the pain of others in view. For there are at least two (perhaps many
|
|
more) elementary ingredients in personal gratification which enter
|
|
largely into our self satisfaction: one of them being the pleasure of
|
|
the emotion, of which species is sympathy with tragedy, and another,
|
|
when the impulse is to action, being the pleasure of exercising one's
|
|
power. Should a sufferer be very dear to us, we divest ourselves of pain
|
|
by the performance of acts of sympathy.--With the exception of some few
|
|
philosophers, men have placed sympathy very low in the rank of moral
|
|
feelings: and rightly.
|
|
|
|
|
|
104
|
|
|
|
=Self Defence.=--If self defence is in general held a valid
|
|
justification, then nearly every manifestation of so called immoral
|
|
egoism must be justified, too. Pain is inflicted, robbery or killing
|
|
done in order to maintain life or to protect oneself and ward off harm.
|
|
A man lies when cunning and delusion are valid means of self
|
|
preservation. To injure intentionally when our safety and our existence
|
|
are involved, or the continuance of our well being, is conceded to be
|
|
moral. The state itself injures from this motive when it hangs
|
|
criminals. In unintentional injury the immoral, of course, can not be
|
|
present, as accident alone is involved. But is there any sort of
|
|
intentional injury in which our existence and the maintenance of our
|
|
well being be not involved? Is there such a thing as injuring from
|
|
absolute badness, for example, in the case of cruelty? If a man does not
|
|
know what pain an act occasions, that act is not one of wickedness. Thus
|
|
the child is not bad to the animal, not evil. It disturbs and rends it
|
|
as if it were one of its playthings. Does a man ever fully know how much
|
|
pain an act may cause another? As far as our nervous system extends, we
|
|
shield ourselves from pain. If it extended further, that is, to our
|
|
fellow men, we would never cause anyone else any pain (except in such
|
|
cases as we cause it to ourselves, when we cut ourselves, surgically, to
|
|
heal our ills, or strive and trouble ourselves to gain health). We
|
|
conclude from analogy that something pains somebody and can in
|
|
consequence, through recollection and the power of imagination, feel
|
|
pain also. But what a difference there always is between the tooth ache
|
|
and the pain (sympathy) that the spectacle of tooth ache occasions!
|
|
Therefore when injury is inflicted from so called badness the degree of
|
|
pain thereby experienced is always unknown to us: in so far, however, as
|
|
pleasure is felt in the act (a sense of one's own power, of one's own
|
|
excitation) the act is committed to maintain the well being of the
|
|
individual and hence comes under the purview of self defence and lying
|
|
for self preservation. Without pleasure, there is no life; the struggle
|
|
for pleasure is the struggle for life. Whether the individual shall
|
|
carry on this struggle in such a way that he be called good or in such a
|
|
way that he be called bad is something that the standard and the
|
|
capacity of his own intellect must determine for him.
|
|
|
|
|
|
105
|
|
|
|
=Justice that Rewards.=--Whoever has fully understood the doctrine of
|
|
absolute irresponsibility can no longer include the so called rewarding
|
|
and punishing justice in the idea of justice, if the latter be taken to
|
|
mean that to each be given his due. For he who is punished does not
|
|
deserve the punishment. He is used simply as a means to intimidate
|
|
others from certain acts. Equally, he who is rewarded does not merit the
|
|
reward. He could not act any differently than he did act. Hence the
|
|
reward has only the significance of an encouragement to him and others
|
|
as a motive for subsequent acts. The praise is called out only to him
|
|
who is running in the race and not to him who has arrived at the goal.
|
|
Something that comes to someone as his own is neither a punishment nor a
|
|
reward. It is given to him from utiliarian considerations, without his
|
|
having any claim to it in justice. Hence one must say "the wise man
|
|
praises not because a good act has been done" precisely as was once
|
|
said: "the wise man punishes not because a bad act has been done but in
|
|
order that a bad act may not be done." If punishment and reward ceased,
|
|
there would cease with them the most powerful incentives to certain acts
|
|
and away from other acts. The purposes of men demand their continuance
|
|
[of punishment and reward] and inasmuch as punishment and reward, blame
|
|
and praise operate most potently upon vanity, these same purposes of men
|
|
imperatively require the continuance of vanity.
|
|
|
|
|
|
106
|
|
|
|
=The Water Fall.=--At the sight of a water fall we may opine that in the
|
|
countless curves, spirations and dashes of the waves we behold freedom
|
|
of the will and of the impulses. But everything is compulsory,
|
|
everything can be mathematically calculated. Thus it is, too, with human
|
|
acts. We would be able to calculate in advance every single action if we
|
|
were all knowing, as well as every advance in knowledge, every delusion,
|
|
every bad deed. The acting individual himself is held fast in the
|
|
illusion of volition. If, on a sudden, the entire movement of the world
|
|
stopped short, and an all knowing and reasoning intelligence were there
|
|
to take advantage of this pause, he could foretell the future of every
|
|
being to the remotest ages and indicate the path that would be taken in
|
|
the world's further course. The deception of the acting individual as
|
|
regards himself, the assumption of the freedom of the will, is a part of
|
|
this computable mechanism.
|
|
|
|
|
|
107
|
|
|
|
=Non-Responsibility and Non-Guilt.=--The absolute irresponsibility of
|
|
man for his acts and his nature is the bitterest drop in the cup of him
|
|
who has knowledge, if he be accustomed to behold in responsibility and
|
|
duty the patent of nobility of his human nature. All his estimates,
|
|
preferences, dislikes are thus made worthless and false. His deepest
|
|
sentiment, with which he honored the sufferer, the hero, sprang from an
|
|
error. He may no longer praise, no longer blame, for it is irrational to
|
|
blame and praise nature and necessity. Just as he cherishes the
|
|
beautiful work of art, but does not praise it (as it is incapable of
|
|
doing anything for itself), just as he stands in the presence of plants,
|
|
he must stand in the presence of human conduct, his own included. He may
|
|
admire strength, beauty, capacity, therein, but he can discern no merit.
|
|
The chemical process and the conflict of the elements, the ordeal of
|
|
the invalid who strives for convalescence, are no more merits than the
|
|
soul-struggles and extremities in which one is torn this way and that by
|
|
contending motives until one finally decides in favor of the
|
|
strongest--as the phrase has it, although, in fact, it is the strongest
|
|
motive that decides for us. All these motives, however, whatever fine
|
|
names we may give them, have grown from the same roots in which we
|
|
believe the baneful poisons lurk. Between good and bad actions there is
|
|
no difference in kind but, at most, in degree. Good acts are sublimated
|
|
evil. Bad acts are degraded, imbruted good. The very longing of the
|
|
individual for self gratification (together with the fear of being
|
|
deprived of it) obtains satisfaction in all circumstances, let the
|
|
individual act as he may, that is, as he must: be it in deeds of vanity,
|
|
revenge, pleasure, utility, badness, cunning, be it in deeds of self
|
|
sacrifice, sympathy or knowledge. The degrees of rational capacity
|
|
determine the direction in which this longing impels: every society,
|
|
every individual has constantly present a comparative classification of
|
|
benefits in accordance with which conduct is determined and others are
|
|
judged. But this standard perpetually changes. Many acts are called bad
|
|
that are only stupid, because the degree of intelligence that decided
|
|
for them was low. Indeed, in a certain sense, all acts now are stupid,
|
|
for the highest degree of human intelligence that has yet been attained
|
|
will in time most certainly be surpassed and then, in retrospection, all
|
|
our present conduct and opinion will appear as narrow and petty as we
|
|
now deem the conduct and opinion of savage peoples and ages.--To
|
|
perceive all these things may occasion profound pain but there is,
|
|
nevertheless, a consolation. Such pains are birth pains. The butterfly
|
|
insists upon breaking through the cocoon, he presses through it, tears
|
|
it to pieces, only to be blinded and confused by the strange light, by
|
|
the realm of liberty. By such men as are capable of this sadness--how
|
|
few there are!--will the first attempt be made to see if humanity may
|
|
convert itself from a thing of morality to a thing of wisdom. The sun of
|
|
a new gospel sheds its first ray upon the loftiest height in the souls
|
|
of those few: but the clouds are massed there, too, thicker than ever,
|
|
and not far apart are the brightest sunlight and the deepest gloom.
|
|
Everything is necessity--so says the new knowledge: and this knowledge
|
|
is itself necessity. All is guiltlessness, and knowledge is the way to
|
|
insight into this guiltlessness. If pleasure, egoism, vanity be
|
|
necessary to attest the moral phenomena and their richest blooms, the
|
|
instinct for truth and accuracy of knowledge; if delusion and confusion
|
|
of the imagination were the only means whereby mankind could gradually
|
|
lift itself up to this degree of self enlightenment and self
|
|
emancipation--who would venture to disparage the means? Who would have
|
|
the right to feel sad if made aware of the goal to which those paths
|
|
lead? Everything in the domain of ethic is evolved, changeable,
|
|
tottering; all things flow, it is true--but all things are also in the
|
|
stream: to their goal. Though within us the hereditary habit of
|
|
erroneous judgment, love, hate, may be ever dominant, yet under the
|
|
influence of awaking knowledge it will ever become weaker: a new habit,
|
|
that of understanding, not-loving, not-hating, looking from above, grows
|
|
up within us gradually and in the same soil, and may, perhaps, in
|
|
thousands of years be powerful enough to endow mankind with capacity to
|
|
develop the wise, guiltless man (conscious of guiltlessness) as
|
|
unfailingly as it now developes the unwise, irrational, guilt-conscious
|
|
man--that is to say, the necessary higher step, not the opposite of it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE RELIGIOUS LIFE.
|
|
|
|
|
|
108
|
|
|
|
=The Double Contest Against Evil.=--If an evil afflicts us we can either
|
|
so deal with it as to remove its cause or else so deal with it that its
|
|
effect upon our feeling is changed: hence look upon the evil as a
|
|
benefit of which the uses will perhaps first become evident in some
|
|
subsequent period. Religion and art (and also the metaphysical
|
|
philosophy) strive to effect an alteration of the feeling, partly by an
|
|
alteration of our judgment respecting the experience (for example, with
|
|
the aid of the dictum "whom God loves, he chastizes") partly by the
|
|
awakening of a joy in pain, in emotion especially (whence the art of
|
|
tragedy had its origin). The more one is disposed to interpret away and
|
|
justify, the less likely he is to look directly at the causes of evil
|
|
and eliminate them. An instant alleviation and narcotizing of pain, as
|
|
is usual in the case of tooth ache, is sufficient for him even in the
|
|
severest suffering. The more the domination of religions and of all
|
|
narcotic arts declines, the more searchingly do men look to the
|
|
elimination of evil itself, which is a rather bad thing for the tragic
|
|
poets--for there is ever less and less material for tragedy, since the
|
|
domain of unsparing, immutable destiny grows constantly more
|
|
circumscribed--and a still worse thing for the priests, for these last
|
|
have lived heretofore upon the narcoticizing of human ill.
|
|
|
|
|
|
109
|
|
|
|
=Sorrow is Knowledge.=--How willingly would not one exchange the false
|
|
assertions of the homines religiosi that there is a god who commands us
|
|
to be good, who is the sentinel and witness of every act, every moment,
|
|
every thought, who loves us, who plans our welfare in every
|
|
misfortune--how willingly would not one exchange these for truths as
|
|
healing, beneficial and grateful as those delusions! But there are no
|
|
such truths. Philosophy can at most set up in opposition to them other
|
|
metaphysical plausibilities (fundamental untruths as well). The tragedy
|
|
of it all is that, although one cannot believe these dogmas of religion
|
|
and metaphysics if one adopts in heart and head the potent methods of
|
|
truth, one has yet become, through human evolution, so tender,
|
|
susceptible, sensitive, as to stand in need of the most effective means
|
|
of rest and consolation. From this state of things arises the danger
|
|
that, through the perception of truth or, more accurately, seeing
|
|
through delusion, one may bleed to death. Byron has put this into
|
|
deathless verse:
|
|
|
|
"Sorrow is knowledge: they who know the most
|
|
Must mourn the deepest o'er the fatal truth,
|
|
The tree of knowledge is not that of life."
|
|
|
|
Against such cares there is no better protective than the light fancy of
|
|
Horace, (at any rate during the darkest hours and sun eclipses of the
|
|
soul) expressed in the words
|
|
|
|
"quid aeternis minorem
|
|
consiliis animum fatigas?
|
|
cur non sub alta vel platano vel hac
|
|
pinu jacentes."[22]
|
|
|
|
[22] Then wherefore should you, who are mortal, outwear
|
|
Your soul with a profitless burden of care
|
|
Say, why should we not, flung at ease neath this pine,
|
|
Or a plane-tree's broad umbrage, quaff gaily our wine?
|
|
(Translation of Sir Theodore Martin.)
|
|
|
|
At any rate, light fancy or heavy heartedness of any degree must be
|
|
better than a romantic retrogression and desertion of one's flag, an
|
|
approach to Christianity in any form: for with it, in the present state
|
|
of knowledge, one can have nothing to do without hopelessly defiling
|
|
one's intellectual integrity and surrendering it unconditionally. These
|
|
woes may be painful enough, but without pain one cannot become a leader
|
|
and guide of humanity: and woe to him who would be such and lacks this
|
|
pure integrity of the intellect!
|
|
|
|
|
|
110
|
|
|
|
=The Truth in Religion.=--In the ages of enlightenment justice was not
|
|
done to the importance of religion, of this there can be no doubt. It is
|
|
also equally certain that in the ensuing reaction of enlightenment, the
|
|
demands of justice were far exceeded inasmuch as religion was treated
|
|
with love, even with infatuation and proclaimed as a profound, indeed
|
|
the most profound knowledge of the world, which science had but to
|
|
divest of its dogmatic garb in order to possess "truth" in its
|
|
unmythical form. Religions must therefore--this was the contention of
|
|
all foes of enlightenment--sensu allegorico, with regard for the
|
|
comprehension of the masses, give expression to that ancient truth which
|
|
is wisdom in itself, inasmuch as all science of modern times has led up
|
|
to it instead of away from it. So that between the most ancient wisdom
|
|
of man and all later wisdom there prevails harmony, even similarity of
|
|
viewpoint; and the advancement of knowledge--if one be disposed to
|
|
concede such a thing--has to do not with its nature but with its
|
|
propagation. This whole conception of religion and science is through
|
|
and through erroneous, and none would to-day be hardy enough to
|
|
countenance it had not Schopenhauer's rhetoric taken it under
|
|
protection, this high sounding rhetoric which now gains auditors after
|
|
the lapse of a generation. Much as may be gained from Schopenhauer's
|
|
religio-ethical human and cosmical oracle as regards the comprehension
|
|
of Christianity and other religions, it is nevertheless certain that he
|
|
erred regarding the value of religion to knowledge. He himself was in
|
|
this but a servile pupil of the scientific teachers of his time who had
|
|
all taken romanticism under their protection and renounced the spirit of
|
|
enlightenment. Had he been born in our own time it would have been
|
|
impossible for him to have spoken of the sensus allegoricus of religion.
|
|
He would instead have done truth the justice to say: never has a
|
|
religion, directly or indirectly, either as dogma or as allegory,
|
|
contained a truth. For all religions grew out of dread or necessity, and
|
|
came into existence through an error of the reason. They have, perhaps,
|
|
in times of danger from science, incorporated some philosophical
|
|
doctrine or other into their systems in order to make it possible to
|
|
continue one's existence within them. But this is but a theological work
|
|
of art dating from the time in which a religion began to doubt of
|
|
itself. These theological feats of art, which are most common in
|
|
Christianity as the religion of a learned age, impregnated with
|
|
philosophy, have led to this superstition of the sensus allegoricus, as
|
|
has, even more, the habit of the philosophers (namely those
|
|
half-natures, the poetical philosophers and the philosophising artists)
|
|
of dealing with their own feelings as if they constituted the
|
|
fundamental nature of humanity and hence of giving their own religious
|
|
feelings a predominant influence over the structure of their systems. As
|
|
the philosophers mostly philosophised under the influence of hereditary
|
|
religious habits, or at least under the traditional influence of this
|
|
"metaphysical necessity," they naturally arrived at conclusions
|
|
closely resembling the Judaic or Christian or Indian religious
|
|
tenets--resembling, in the way that children are apt to look like their
|
|
mothers: only in this case the fathers were not certain as to the
|
|
maternity, as easily happens--but in the innocence of their admiration,
|
|
they fabled regarding the family likeness of all religion and science.
|
|
In reality, there exists between religion and true science neither
|
|
relationship nor friendship, not even enmity: they dwell in different
|
|
spheres. Every philosophy that lets the religious comet gleam through
|
|
the darkness of its last outposts renders everything within it that
|
|
purports to be science, suspicious. It is all probably religion,
|
|
although it may assume the guise of science.--Moreover, though all the
|
|
peoples agree concerning certain religious things, for example, the
|
|
existence of a god (which, by the way, as regards this point, is not
|
|
the case) this fact would constitute an argument against the thing
|
|
agreed upon, for example the very existence of a god. The consensus
|
|
gentium and especially hominum can probably amount only to an absurdity.
|
|
Against it there is no consensus omnium sapientium whatever, on any
|
|
point, with the exception of which Goethe's verse speaks:
|
|
|
|
"All greatest sages to all latest ages
|
|
Will smile, wink and slily agree
|
|
'Tis folly to wait till a fool's empty pate
|
|
Has learned to be knowing and free.
|
|
So children of wisdom must look upon fools
|
|
As creatures who're never the better for schools."
|
|
|
|
Stated without rhyme or metre and adapted to our case: the consensus
|
|
sapientium is to the effect that the consensus gentium amounts to an
|
|
absurdity.
|
|
|
|
|
|
111
|
|
|
|
=Origin of Religious Worship.=--Let us transport ourselves back to the
|
|
times in which religious life flourished most vigorously and we will
|
|
find a fundamental conviction prevalent which we no longer share and
|
|
which has resulted in the closing of the door to religious life once for
|
|
all so far as we are concerned: this conviction has to do with nature
|
|
and intercourse with her. In those times nothing is yet known of
|
|
nature's laws. Neither for earth nor for heaven is there a must. A
|
|
season, sunshine, rain can come or stay away as it pleases. There is
|
|
wanting, in particular, all idea of natural causation. If a man rows, it
|
|
is not the oar that moves the boat, but rowing is a magical ceremony
|
|
whereby a demon is constrained to move the boat. All illness, death
|
|
itself, is a consequence of magical influences. In sickness and death
|
|
nothing natural is conceived. The whole idea of "natural course" is
|
|
wanting. The idea dawns first upon the ancient Greeks, that is to say in
|
|
a very late period of humanity, in the conception of a Moira [fate]
|
|
ruling over the gods. If any person shoots off a bow, there is always an
|
|
irrational strength and agency in the act. If the wells suddenly run
|
|
dry, the first thought is of subterranean demons and their pranks. It
|
|
must have been the dart of a god beneath whose invisible influence a
|
|
human being suddenly collapses. In India, the carpenter (according to
|
|
Lubbock) is in the habit of making devout offerings to his hammer and
|
|
hatchet. A Brahmin treats the plume with which he writes, a soldier the
|
|
weapon that he takes into the field, a mason his trowel, a laborer his
|
|
plow, in the same way. All nature is, in the opinion of religious
|
|
people, a sum total of the doings of conscious and willing beings, an
|
|
immense mass of complex volitions. In regard to all that takes place
|
|
outside of us no conclusion is permissible that anything will result
|
|
thus and so, must result thus and so, that we are comparatively
|
|
calculable and certain in our experiences, that man is the rule, nature
|
|
the ruleless. This view forms the fundamental conviction that dominates
|
|
crude, religion-producing, early civilizations. We contemporary men feel
|
|
exactly the opposite: the richer man now feels himself inwardly, the
|
|
more polyphone the music and the sounding of his soul, the more
|
|
powerfully does the uniformity of nature impress him. We all, with
|
|
Goethe, recognize in nature the great means of repose for the soul. We
|
|
listen to the pendulum stroke of this great clock with longing for rest,
|
|
for absolute calm and quiescence, as if we could drink in the uniformity
|
|
of nature and thereby arrive first at an enjoyment of oneself. Formerly
|
|
it was the reverse: if we carry ourselves back to the periods of crude
|
|
civilization, or if we contemplate contemporary savages, we will find
|
|
them most strongly influenced by rule, by tradition. The individual is
|
|
almost automatically bound to rule and tradition and moves with the
|
|
uniformity of a pendulum. To him nature--the uncomprehended, fearful,
|
|
mysterious nature--must seem the domain of freedom, of volition, of
|
|
higher power, indeed as an ultra-human degree of destiny, as god. Every
|
|
individual in such periods and circumstances feels that his existence,
|
|
his happiness, the existence and happiness of the family, the state,
|
|
the success or failure of every undertaking, must depend upon these
|
|
dispositions of nature. Certain natural events must occur at the proper
|
|
time and certain others must not occur. How can influence be exercised
|
|
over this fearful unknown, how can this domain of freedom be brought
|
|
under subjection? thus he asks himself, thus he worries: Is there no
|
|
means to render these powers of nature as subject to rule and tradition
|
|
as you are yourself?--The cogitation of the superstitious and
|
|
magic-deluded man is upon the theme of imposing a law upon nature: and
|
|
to put it briefly, religious worship is the result of such cogitation.
|
|
The problem which is present to every man is closely connected with this
|
|
one: how can the weaker party dictate laws to the stronger, control its
|
|
acts in reference to the weaker? At first the most harmless form of
|
|
influence is recollected, that influence which is acquired when the
|
|
partiality of anyone has been won. Through beseeching and prayer,
|
|
through abject humiliation, through obligations to regular gifts and
|
|
propitiations, through flattering homages, it is possible, therefore, to
|
|
impose some guidance upon the forces of nature, to the extent that their
|
|
partiality be won: love binds and is bound. Then agreements can be
|
|
entered into by means of which certain courses of conduct are mutually
|
|
concluded, vows are made and authorities prescribed. But far more potent
|
|
is that species of power exercised by means of magic and incantation. As
|
|
a man is able to injure a powerful enemy by means of the magician and
|
|
render him helpless with fear, as the love potion operates at a
|
|
distance, so can the mighty forces of nature, in the opinion of weaker
|
|
mankind, be controlled by similar means. The principal means of
|
|
effecting incantations is to acquire control of something belonging to
|
|
the party to be influenced, hair, finger nails, food from his table,
|
|
even his picture or his name. With such apparatus it is possible to act
|
|
by means of magic, for the basic principle is that to everything
|
|
spiritual corresponds something corporeal. With the aid of this
|
|
corporeal element the spirit may be bound, injured or destroyed. The
|
|
corporeal affords the handle by which the spiritual can be laid hold of.
|
|
In the same way that man influences mankind does he influences some
|
|
spirit of nature, for this latter has also its corporeal element that
|
|
can be grasped. The tree, and on the same basis, the seed from which it
|
|
grew: this puzzling sequence seems to demonstrate that in both forms the
|
|
same spirit is embodied, now large, now small. A stone that suddenly
|
|
rolls, is the body in which the spirit works. Does a huge boulder lie in
|
|
a lonely moor? It is impossible to think of mortal power having placed
|
|
it there. The stone must have moved itself there. That is to say some
|
|
spirit must dominate it. Everything that has a body is subject to magic,
|
|
including, therefore, the spirits of nature. If a god is directly
|
|
connected with his portrait, a direct influence (by refraining from
|
|
devout offerings, by whippings, chainings and the like) can be brought
|
|
to bear upon him. The lower classes in China tie cords around the
|
|
picture of their god in order to defy his departing favor, when he has
|
|
left them in the lurch, and tear the picture to pieces, drag it through
|
|
the streets into dung heaps and gutters, crying: "You dog of a spirit,
|
|
we housed you in a beautiful temple, we gilded you prettily, we fed you
|
|
well, we brought you offerings, and yet how ungrateful you are!" Similar
|
|
displays of resentment have been made against pictures of the mother of
|
|
god and pictures of saints in Catholic countries during the present
|
|
century when such pictures would not do their duty during times of
|
|
pestilence and drought.
|
|
|
|
Through all these magical relationships to nature countless ceremonies
|
|
are occasioned, and finally, when their complexity and confusion grow
|
|
too great, pains are taken to systematize them, to arrange them so that
|
|
the favorable course of nature's progress, namely the great yearly
|
|
circle of the seasons, may be brought about by a corresponding course of
|
|
the ceremonial progress. The aim of religious worship is to influence
|
|
nature to human advantage, and hence to instil a subjection to law into
|
|
her that originally she has not, whereas at present man desires to find
|
|
out the subjection to law of nature in order to guide himself thereby.
|
|
In brief, the system of religious worship rests upon the idea of magic
|
|
between man and man, and the magician is older than the priest. But it
|
|
rests equally upon other and higher ideas. It brings into prominence the
|
|
sympathetic relation of man to man, the existence of benevolence,
|
|
gratitude, prayer, of truces between enemies, of loans upon security, of
|
|
arrangements for the protection of property. Man, even in very inferior
|
|
degrees of civilization, does not stand in the presence of nature as a
|
|
helpless slave, he is not willy-nilly the absolute servant of nature. In
|
|
the Greek development of religion, especially in the relationship to the
|
|
Olympian gods, it becomes possible to entertain the idea of an existence
|
|
side by side of two castes, a higher, more powerful, and a lower, less
|
|
powerful: but both are bound together in some way, on account of their
|
|
origin and are one species. They need not be ashamed of one another.
|
|
This is the element of distinction in Greek religion.
|
|
|
|
|
|
112
|
|
|
|
=At the Contemplation of Certain Ancient Sacrificial Proceedings.=--How
|
|
many sentiments are lost to us is manifest in the union of the farcical,
|
|
even of the obscene, with the religious feeling. The feeling that this
|
|
mixture is possible is becoming extinct. We realize the mixture only
|
|
historically, in the mysteries of Demeter and Dionysos and in the
|
|
Christian Easter festivals and religious mysteries. But we still
|
|
perceive the sublime in connection with the ridiculous, and the like,
|
|
the emotional with the absurd. Perhaps a later age will be unable to
|
|
understand even these combinations.
|
|
|
|
|
|
113
|
|
|
|
=Christianity as Antiquity.=--When on a Sunday morning we hear the old
|
|
bells ringing, we ask ourselves: Is it possible? All this for a Jew
|
|
crucified two thousand years ago who said he was God's son? The proof of
|
|
such an assertion is lacking.--Certainly, the Christian religion
|
|
constitutes in our time a protruding bit of antiquity from very remote
|
|
ages and that its assertions are still generally believed--although men
|
|
have become so keen in the scrutiny of claims--constitutes the oldest
|
|
relic of this inheritance. A god who begets children by a mortal woman;
|
|
a sage who demands that no more work be done, that no more justice be
|
|
administered but that the signs of the approaching end of the world be
|
|
heeded; a system of justice that accepts an innocent as a vicarious
|
|
sacrifice in the place of the guilty; a person who bids his disciples
|
|
drink his blood; prayers for miracles; sins against a god expiated upon
|
|
a god; fear of a hereafter to which death is the portal; the figure of
|
|
the cross as a symbol in an age that no longer knows the purpose and the
|
|
ignominy of the cross--how ghostly all these things flit before us out
|
|
of the grave of their primitive antiquity! Is one to believe that such
|
|
things can still be believed?
|
|
|
|
|
|
114
|
|
|
|
=The Un-Greek in Christianity.=--The Greeks did not look upon the
|
|
Homeric gods above them as lords nor upon themselves beneath as
|
|
servants, after the fashion of the Jews. They saw but the counterpart as
|
|
in a mirror of the most perfect specimens of their own caste, hence an
|
|
ideal, but no contradiction of their own nature. There was a feeling of
|
|
mutual relationship, resulting in a mutual interest, a sort of alliance.
|
|
Man thinks well of himself when he gives himself such gods and places
|
|
himself in a relationship akin to that of the lower nobility with the
|
|
higher; whereas the Italian races have a decidedly vulgar religion,
|
|
involving perpetual anxiety because of bad and mischievous powers and
|
|
soul disturbers. Wherever the Olympian gods receded into the background,
|
|
there even Greek life became gloomier and more perturbed.--Christianity,
|
|
on the other hand, oppressed and degraded humanity completely and sank
|
|
it into deepest mire: into the feeling of utter abasement it suddenly
|
|
flashed the gleam of divine compassion, so that the amazed and
|
|
grace-dazzled stupefied one gave a cry of delight and for a moment
|
|
believed that the whole of heaven was within him. Upon this unhealthy
|
|
excess of feeling, upon the accompanying corruption of heart and head,
|
|
Christianity attains all its psychological effects. It wants to
|
|
annihilate, debase, stupefy, amaze, bedazzle. There is but one thing
|
|
that it does not want: measure, standard (das Maas) and therefore is it
|
|
in the worst sense barbarous, asiatic, vulgar, un-Greek.
|
|
|
|
|
|
115
|
|
|
|
=Being Religious to Some Purpose.=--There are certain insipid,
|
|
traffic-virtuous people to whom religion is pinned like the hem of some
|
|
garb of a higher humanity. These people do well to remain religious: it
|
|
adorns them. All who are not versed in some professional
|
|
weapon--including tongue and pen as weapons--are servile: to all such
|
|
the Christian religion is very useful, for then their servility assumes
|
|
the aspect of Christian virtue and is amazingly adorned.--People whose
|
|
daily lives are empty and colorless are readily religious. This is
|
|
comprehensible and pardonable, but they have no right to demand that
|
|
others, whose daily lives are not empty and colorless, should be
|
|
religious also.
|
|
|
|
|
|
116
|
|
|
|
=The Everyday Christian.=--If Christianity, with its allegations of an
|
|
avenging God, universal sinfulness, choice of grace, and the danger of
|
|
eternal damnation, were true, it would be an indication of weakness of
|
|
mind and character not to be a priest or an apostle or a hermit, and
|
|
toil for one's own salvation. It would be irrational to lose sight of
|
|
one's eternal well being in comparison with temporary advantage:
|
|
Assuming these dogmas to be generally believed, the every day Christian
|
|
is a pitiable figure, a man who really cannot count as far as three, and
|
|
who, for the rest, just because of his intellectual incapacity, does not
|
|
deserve to be as hard punished as Christianity promises he shall be.
|
|
|
|
|
|
117
|
|
|
|
=Concerning the Cleverness of Christianity.=--It is a master stroke of
|
|
Christianity to so emphasize the unworthiness, sinfulness and
|
|
degradation of men in general that contempt of one's fellow creatures
|
|
becomes impossible. "He may sin as much as he pleases, he is not by
|
|
nature different from me. It is I who in every way am unworthy and
|
|
contemptible." So says the Christian to himself. But even this feeling
|
|
has lost its keenest sting for the Christian does not believe in his
|
|
individual degradation. He is bad in his general human capacity and he
|
|
soothes himself a little with the assertion that we are all alike.
|
|
|
|
|
|
118
|
|
|
|
=Personal Change.=--As soon as a religion rules, it has for its
|
|
opponents those who were its first disciples.
|
|
|
|
|
|
119
|
|
|
|
=Fate of Christianity.=--Christianity arose to lighten the heart, but
|
|
now it must first make the heart heavy in order to be able to lighten it
|
|
afterwards. Christianity will consequently go down.
|
|
|
|
|
|
120
|
|
|
|
=The Testimony of Pleasure.=--The agreeable opinion is accepted as true.
|
|
This is the testimony of pleasure (or as the church says, the evidence
|
|
of strength) of which all religions are so proud, although they should
|
|
all be ashamed of it. If a belief did not make blessed it would not be
|
|
believed. How little it would be worth, then!
|
|
|
|
|
|
121
|
|
|
|
=Dangerous Play.=--Whoever gives religious feeling room, must then also
|
|
let it grow. He can do nothing else. Then his being gradually changes.
|
|
The religious element brings with it affinities and kinships. The whole
|
|
circle of his judgment and feeling is clouded and draped in religious
|
|
shadows. Feeling cannot stand still. One should be on one's guard.
|
|
|
|
|
|
122
|
|
|
|
=The Blind Pupil.=--As long as one knows very well the strength and the
|
|
weakness of one's dogma, one's art, one's religion, its strength is
|
|
still low. The pupil and apostle who has no eye for the weaknesses of a
|
|
dogma, a religion and so on, dazzled by the aspect of the master and by
|
|
his own reverence for him, has, on that very account, generally more
|
|
power than the master. Without blind pupils the influence of a man and
|
|
his work has never become great. To give victory to knowledge, often
|
|
amounts to no more than so allying it with stupidity that the brute
|
|
force of the latter forces triumph for the former.
|
|
|
|
|
|
123
|
|
|
|
=The Breaking off of Churches.=--There is not sufficient religion in the
|
|
world merely to put an end to the number of religions.
|
|
|
|
|
|
124
|
|
|
|
=Sinlessness of Men.=--If one have understood how "Sin came into the
|
|
world," namely through errors of the reason, through which men in their
|
|
intercourse with one another and even individual men looked upon
|
|
themselves as much blacker and wickeder than was really the case, one's
|
|
whole feeling is much lightened and man and the world appear together in
|
|
such a halo of harmlessness that a sentiment of well being is instilled
|
|
into one's whole nature. Man in the midst of nature is as a child left
|
|
to its own devices. This child indeed dreams a heavy, anxious dream. But
|
|
when it opens its eyes it finds itself always in paradise.
|
|
|
|
|
|
125
|
|
|
|
=Irreligiousness of Artists.=--Homer is so much at home among his gods
|
|
and is as a poet so good natured to them that he must have been
|
|
profoundly irreligious. That which was brought to him by the popular
|
|
faith--a mean, crude and partially repulsive superstition--he dealt with
|
|
as freely as the Sculptor with his clay, therefore with the same freedom
|
|
that Æschylus and Aristophanes evinced and with which in later times the
|
|
great artists of the renaissance, and also Shakespeare and Goethe, drew
|
|
their pictures.
|
|
|
|
|
|
126
|
|
|
|
=Art and Strength of False Interpretation.=--All the visions, fears,
|
|
exhaustions and delights of the saint are well known symptoms of
|
|
sickness, which in him, owing to deep rooted religious and psychological
|
|
delusions, are explained quite differently, that is not as symptoms of
|
|
sickness.--So, too, perhaps, the demon of Socrates was nothing but a
|
|
malady of the ear that he explained, in view of his predominant moral
|
|
theory, in a manner different from what would be thought rational
|
|
to-day. Nor is the case different with the frenzy and the frenzied
|
|
speeches of the prophets and of the priests of the oracles. It is always
|
|
the degree of wisdom, imagination, capacity and morality in the heart
|
|
and mind of the interpreters that got so much out of them. It is among
|
|
the greatest feats of the men who are called geniuses and saints that
|
|
they made interpreters for themselves who, fortunately for mankind, did
|
|
not understand them.
|
|
|
|
|
|
127
|
|
|
|
=Reverence for Madness.=--Because it was perceived that an excitement of
|
|
some kind often made the head clearer and occasioned fortunate
|
|
inspirations, it was concluded that the utmost excitement would occasion
|
|
the most fortunate inspirations. Hence the frenzied being was revered as
|
|
a sage and an oracle giver. A false conclusion lies at the bottom of all
|
|
this.
|
|
|
|
|
|
128
|
|
|
|
=Promises of Wisdom.=--Modern science has as its object as little pain
|
|
as possible, as long a life as possible--hence a sort of eternal
|
|
blessedness, but of a very limited kind in comparison with the promises
|
|
of religion.
|
|
|
|
|
|
129
|
|
|
|
=Forbidden Generosity.=--There is not enough of love and goodness in the
|
|
world to throw any of it away on conceited people.
|
|
|
|
|
|
130
|
|
|
|
=Survival of Religious Training in the Disposition.=--The Catholic
|
|
Church, and before it all ancient education, controlled the whole domain
|
|
of means through which man was put into certain unordinary moods and
|
|
withdrawn from the cold calculation of personal advantage and from calm,
|
|
rational reflection. A church vibrating with deep tones; gloomy,
|
|
regular, restraining exhortations from a priestly band, who
|
|
involuntarily communicate their own tension to their congregation and
|
|
lead them to listen almost with anxiety as if some miracle were in
|
|
course of preparation; the awesome pile of architecture which, as the
|
|
house of a god, rears itself vastly into the vague and in all its
|
|
shadowy nooks inspires fear of its nerve-exciting power--who would care
|
|
to reduce men to the level of these things if the ideas upon which they
|
|
rest became extinct? But the results of all these things are
|
|
nevertheless not thrown away: the inner world of exalted, emotional,
|
|
prophetic, profoundly repentant, hope-blessed moods has become inborn in
|
|
man largely through cultivation. What still exists in his soul was
|
|
formerly, as he germinated, grew and bloomed, thoroughly disciplined.
|
|
|
|
|
|
131
|
|
|
|
=Religious After-Pains.=--Though one believe oneself absolutely weaned
|
|
away from religion, the process has yet not been so thorough as to make
|
|
impossible a feeling of joy at the presence of religious feelings and
|
|
dispositions without intelligible content, as, for example, in music;
|
|
and if a philosophy alleges to us the validity of metaphysical hopes,
|
|
through the peace of soul therein attainable, and also speaks of "the
|
|
whole true gospel in the look of Raphael's Madonna," we greet such
|
|
declarations and innuendoes with a welcome smile. The philosopher has
|
|
here a matter easy of demonstration. He responds with that which he is
|
|
glad to give, namely a heart that is glad to accept. Hence it is
|
|
observable how the less reflective free spirits collide only with dogmas
|
|
but yield readily to the magic of religious feelings; it is a source of
|
|
pain to them to let the latter go simply on account of the
|
|
former.--Scientific philosophy must be very much on its guard lest on
|
|
account of this necessity--an evolved and hence, also, a transitory
|
|
necessity--delusions are smuggled in. Even logicians speak of
|
|
"presentiments" of truth in ethics and in art (for example of the
|
|
presentiment that the essence of things is unity) a thing which,
|
|
nevertheless, ought to be prohibited. Between carefully deduced truths
|
|
and such "foreboded" things there lies the abysmal distinction that the
|
|
former are products of the intellect and the latter of the necessity.
|
|
Hunger is no evidence that there is food at hand to appease it. Hunger
|
|
merely craves food. "Presentiment" does not denote that the existence of
|
|
a thing is known in any way whatever. It denotes merely that it is
|
|
deemed possible to the extent that it is desired or feared. The
|
|
"presentiment" is not one step forward in the domain of certainty.--It
|
|
is involuntarily believed that the religious tinted sections of a
|
|
philosophy are better attested than the others, but the case is at
|
|
bottom just the opposite: there is simply the inner wish that it may be
|
|
so, that the thing which beautifies may also be true. This wish leads us
|
|
to accept bad grounds as good.
|
|
|
|
|
|
132
|
|
|
|
=Of the Christian Need of Salvation.=--Careful consideration must render
|
|
it possible to propound some explanation of that process in the soul of
|
|
a Christian which is termed need of salvation, and to propound an
|
|
explanation, too, free from mythology: hence one purely psychological.
|
|
Heretofore psychological explanations of religious conditions and
|
|
processes have really been in disrepute, inasmuch as a theology calling
|
|
itself free gave vent to its unprofitable nature in this domain; for its
|
|
principal aim, so far as may be judged from the spirit of its creator,
|
|
Schleier-macher, was the preservation of the Christian religion and the
|
|
maintenance of the Christian theology. It appeared that in the
|
|
psychological analysis of religious "facts" a new anchorage and above
|
|
all a new calling were to be gained. Undisturbed by such predecessors,
|
|
we venture the following exposition of the phenomena alluded to. Man is
|
|
conscious of certain acts which are very firmly implanted in the general
|
|
course of conduct: indeed he discovers in himself a predisposition to
|
|
such acts that seems to him to be as unalterable as his very being. How
|
|
gladly he would essay some other kind of acts which in the general
|
|
estimate of conduct are rated the best and highest, how gladly he would
|
|
welcome the consciousness of well doing which ought to follow unselfish
|
|
motive! Unfortunately, however, it goes no further than this longing:
|
|
the discontent consequent upon being unable to satisfy it is added to
|
|
all other kinds of discontent which result from his life destiny in
|
|
particular or which may be due to so called bad acts; so that a deep
|
|
depression ensues accompanied by a desire for some physician to remove
|
|
it and all its causes.--This condition would not be found so bitter if
|
|
the individual but compared himself freely with other men: for then he
|
|
would have no reason to be discontented with himself in particular as he
|
|
is merely bearing his share of the general burden of human discontent
|
|
and incompleteness. But he compares himself with a being who alone must
|
|
be capable of the conduct that is called unegoistic and of an enduring
|
|
consciousness of unselfish motive, with God. It is because he gazes into
|
|
this clear mirror, that his own self seems so extraordinarily distracted
|
|
and so troubled. Thereupon the thought of that being, in so far as it
|
|
flits before his fancy as retributive justice, occasions him anxiety. In
|
|
every conceivable small and great experience he believes he sees the
|
|
anger of the being, his threats, the very implements and manacles of his
|
|
judge and prison. What succors him in this danger, which, in the
|
|
prospect of an eternal duration of punishment, transcends in hideousness
|
|
all the horrors that can be presented to the imagination?
|
|
|
|
|
|
133
|
|
|
|
Before we consider this condition in its further effects, we would admit
|
|
to ourselves that man is betrayed into this condition not through his
|
|
"fault" and "sin" but through a series of delusions of the reason; that
|
|
it was the fault of the mirror if his own self appeared to him in the
|
|
highest degree dark and hateful, and that that mirror was his own work,
|
|
the very imperfect work of human imagination and judgment. In the first
|
|
place a being capable of absolutely unegoistic conduct is as fabulous as
|
|
the phoenix. Such a being is not even thinkable for the very reason that
|
|
the whole notion of "unegoistic conduct," when closely examined,
|
|
vanishes into air. Never yet has a man done anything solely for others
|
|
and entirely without reference to a personal motive; indeed how could he
|
|
possibly do anything that had no reference to himself, that is without
|
|
inward compulsion (which must always have its basis in a personal need)?
|
|
How could the ego act without ego?--A god, who, on the other hand, is
|
|
all love, as he is usually represented, would not be capable of a
|
|
solitary unegoistic act: whence one is reminded of a reflection of
|
|
Lichtenberg's which is, in truth, taken from a lower sphere: "We cannot
|
|
possibly feel for others, as the expression goes; we feel only for
|
|
ourselves. The assertion sounds hard, but it is not, if rightly
|
|
understood. A man loves neither his father nor his mother nor his wife
|
|
nor his child, but simply the feelings which they inspire." Or, as La
|
|
Rochefoucauld says: "If you think you love your mistress for the mere
|
|
love of her, you are very much mistaken." Why acts of love are more
|
|
highly prized than others, namely not on account of their nature, but on
|
|
account of their utility, has already been explained in the section on
|
|
the origin of moral feelings. But if a man should wish to be all love
|
|
like the god aforesaid, and want to do all things for others and nothing
|
|
for himself, the procedure would be fundamentally impossible because he
|
|
_must_ do a great deal for himself before there would be any possibility
|
|
of doing anything for the love of others. It is also essential that
|
|
others be sufficiently egoistic to accept always and at all times this
|
|
self sacrifice and living for others, so that the men of love and self
|
|
sacrifice have an interest in the survival of unloving and selfish
|
|
egoists, while the highest morality, in order to maintain itself must
|
|
formally enforce the existence of immorality (wherein it would be really
|
|
destroying itself.)--Further: the idea of a god perturbs and discourages
|
|
as long as it is accepted but as to how it originated can no longer, in
|
|
the present state of comparative ethnological science, be a matter of
|
|
doubt, and with the insight into the origin of this belief all faith
|
|
collapses. What happens to the Christian who compares his nature with
|
|
that of God is exactly what happened to Don Quixote, who depreciated his
|
|
own prowess because his head was filled with the wondrous deeds of the
|
|
heroes of chivalrous romance. The standard of measurement which both
|
|
employ belongs to the domain of fable.--But if the idea of God
|
|
collapses, so too, does the feeling of "sin" as a violation of divine
|
|
rescript, as a stain upon a god-like creation. There still apparently
|
|
remains that discouragement which is closely allied with fear of the
|
|
punishment of worldly justice or of the contempt of one's fellow men.
|
|
The keenest thorn in the sentiment of sin is dulled when it is perceived
|
|
that one's acts have contravened human tradition, human rules and human
|
|
laws without having thereby endangered the "eternal salvation of the
|
|
soul" and its relations with deity. If finally men attain to the
|
|
conviction of the absolute necessity of all acts and of their utter
|
|
irresponsibility and then absorb it into their flesh and blood, every
|
|
relic of conscience pangs will disappear.
|
|
|
|
|
|
134
|
|
|
|
If now, as stated, the Christian, through certain delusive feelings, is
|
|
betrayed into self contempt, that is by a false and unscientific view of
|
|
his acts and feelings, he must, nevertheless, perceive with the utmost
|
|
amazement that this state of self contempt, of conscience pangs, of
|
|
despair in particular, does not last, that there are hours during which
|
|
all these things are wafted away from the soul and he feels himself once
|
|
more free and courageous. The truth is that joy in his own being, the
|
|
fulness of his own powers in connection with the inevitable decline of
|
|
his profound excitation with the lapse of time, bore off the palm of
|
|
victory. The man loves himself once more, he feels it--but this very new
|
|
love, this new self esteem seems to him incredible. He can see in it
|
|
only the wholly unmerited stream of the light of grace shed down upon
|
|
him. If he formerly saw in every event merely warnings, threats,
|
|
punishments and every kind of indication of divine anger, he now reads
|
|
into his experiences the grace of god. The latter circumstance seems to
|
|
him full of love, the former as a helpful pointing of the way, and his
|
|
entirely joyful frame of mind now seems to him to be an absolute proof
|
|
of the goodness of God. As formerly in his states of discouragement he
|
|
interpreted his conduct falsely so now he does the same with his
|
|
experiences. His state of consolation is now regarded as the effect
|
|
produced by some external power. The love with which, at bottom, he
|
|
loves himself, seems to be the divine love. That which he calls grace
|
|
and the preliminary of salvation is in reality self-grace,
|
|
self-salvation.
|
|
|
|
|
|
135
|
|
|
|
Therefore a certain false psychology, a certain kind of imaginativeness
|
|
in the interpretation of motives and experiences is the essential
|
|
preliminary to being a Christian and to experiencing the need of
|
|
salvation. Upon gaining an insight into this wandering of the reason and
|
|
the imagination, one ceases to be a Christian.
|
|
|
|
|
|
136
|
|
|
|
=Of Christian Asceticism and Sanctity.=--Much as some thinkers have
|
|
exerted themselves to impart an air of the miraculous to those singular
|
|
phenomena known as asceticism and sanctity, to question which or to
|
|
account for which upon a rational basis would be wickedness and
|
|
sacrilege, the temptation to this wickedness is none the less great. A
|
|
powerful impulse of nature has in every age led to protest against such
|
|
phenomena. At any rate science, inasmuch as it is the imitation of
|
|
nature, permits the casting of doubts upon the inexplicable character
|
|
and the supernal degree of such phenomena. It is true that heretofore
|
|
science has not succeeded in its attempts at explanation. The phenomena
|
|
remain unexplained still, to the great satisfaction of those who revere
|
|
moral miracles. For, speaking generally, the unexplained must rank as
|
|
the inexplicable, the inexplicable as the non-natural, supernatural,
|
|
miraculous--so runs the demand in the souls of all the religious and all
|
|
the metaphysicians (even the artists if they happen to be thinkers),
|
|
whereas the scientific man sees in this demand the "evil
|
|
principle."--The universal, first, apparent truth that is encountered in
|
|
the contemplation of sanctity and asceticism is that their nature is
|
|
complicated; for nearly always, within the physical world as well as in
|
|
the moral, the apparently miraculous may be traced successfully to the
|
|
complex, the obscure, the multi-conditioned. Let us venture then to
|
|
isolate a few impulses in the soul of the saint and the ascetic, to
|
|
consider them separately and then view them as a synthetic development.
|
|
|
|
|
|
137
|
|
|
|
There is an obstinacy against oneself, certain sublimated forms of which
|
|
are included in asceticism. Certain kinds of men are under such a strong
|
|
necessity of exercising their power and dominating impulses that, if
|
|
other objects are lacking or if they have not succeeded with other
|
|
objects they will actually tyrannize over some portions of their own
|
|
nature or over sections and stages of their own personality. Thus do
|
|
many thinkers bring themselves to views which are far from likely to
|
|
increase or improve their fame. Many deliberately bring down the
|
|
contempt of others upon themselves although they could easily have
|
|
retained consideration by silence. Others contradict earlier opinions
|
|
and do not shrink from the ordeal of being deemed inconsistent. On the
|
|
contrary they strive for this and act like eager riders who enjoy
|
|
horseback exercise most when the horse is skittish. Thus will men in
|
|
dangerous paths ascend to the highest steeps in order to laugh to scorn
|
|
their own fear and their own trembling limbs. Thus will the philosopher
|
|
embrace the dogmas of asceticism, humility, sanctity, in the light of
|
|
which his own image appears in its most hideous aspect. This crushing of
|
|
self, this mockery of one's own nature, this spernere se sperni out of
|
|
which religions have made so much is in reality but a very high
|
|
development of vanity. The whole ethic of the sermon on the mount
|
|
belongs in this category: man has a true delight in mastering himself
|
|
through exaggerated pretensions or excessive expedients and later
|
|
deifying this tyrannically exacting something within him. In every
|
|
scheme of ascetic ethics, man prays to one part of himself as if it were
|
|
god and hence it is necessary for him to treat the rest of himself as
|
|
devil.
|
|
|
|
|
|
138
|
|
|
|
=Man is Not at All Hours Equally Moral=; this is established. If one's
|
|
morality be judged according to one's capacity for great, self
|
|
sacrificing resolutions and abnegations (which when continual, and made
|
|
a habit are known as sanctity) one is, in affection, or disposition, the
|
|
most moral: while higher excitement supplies wholly new impulses which,
|
|
were one calm and cool as ordinarily, one would not deem oneself even
|
|
capable of. How comes this? Apparently from the propinquity of all great
|
|
and lofty emotional states. If a man is brought to an extraordinary
|
|
pitch of feeling he can resolve upon a fearful revenge or upon a fearful
|
|
renunciation of his thirst for vengeance indifferently. He craves, under
|
|
the influences of powerful emotion, the great, the powerful, the
|
|
immense, and if he chances to perceive that the sacrifice of himself
|
|
will afford him as much satisfaction as the sacrifice of another, or
|
|
will afford him more, he will choose self sacrifice. What concerns him
|
|
particularly is simply the unloading of his emotion. Hence he readily,
|
|
to relieve his tension, grasps the darts of the enemy and buries them in
|
|
his own breast. That in self abnegation and not in revenge the element
|
|
of greatness consisted must have been brought home to mankind only after
|
|
long habituation. A god who sacrifices himself would be the most
|
|
powerful and most effective symbol of this sort of greatness. As the
|
|
conquest of the most hardly conquered enemy, the sudden mastering of a
|
|
passion--thus does such abnegation _appear_: hence it passes for the
|
|
summit of morality. In reality all that is involved is the exchange of
|
|
one idea for another whilst the temperament remained at a like altitude,
|
|
a like tidal state. Men when coming out of the spell, or resting from
|
|
such passionate excitation, no longer understand the morality of such
|
|
instants, but the admiration of all who participated in the occasion
|
|
sustains them. Pride is their support if the passion and the
|
|
comprehension of their act weaken. Therefore, at bottom even such acts
|
|
of self-abnegation are not moral inasmuch as they are not done with a
|
|
strict regard for others. Rather do others afford the high strung
|
|
temperament an opportunity to lighten itself through such abnegation.
|
|
|
|
|
|
139
|
|
|
|
=Even the Ascetic Seeks to Make Life Easier=, and generally by means of
|
|
absolute subjection to another will or to an all inclusive rule and
|
|
ritual, pretty much as the Brahmin leaves absolutely nothing to his own
|
|
volition but is guided in every moment of his life by some holy
|
|
injunction or other. This subjection is a potent means of acquiring
|
|
dominion over oneself. One is occupied, hence time does not bang heavy
|
|
and there is no incitement of the personal will and of the individual
|
|
passion. The deed once done there is no feeling of responsibility nor
|
|
the sting of regret. One has given up one's own will once for all and
|
|
this is easier than to give it up occasionally, as it is also easier
|
|
wholly to renounce a desire than to yield to it in measured degree. When
|
|
we consider the present relation of man to the state we perceive
|
|
unconditional obedience is easier than conditional. The holy person also
|
|
makes his lot easier through the complete surrender of his life
|
|
personality and it is all delusion to admire such a phenomenon as the
|
|
loftiest heroism of morality. It is always more difficult to assert
|
|
one's personality without shrinking and without hesitation than to give
|
|
it up altogether in the manner indicated, and it requires moreover more
|
|
intellect and thought.
|
|
|
|
|
|
140
|
|
|
|
After having discovered in many of the less comprehensible actions mere
|
|
manifestations of pleasure in emotion for its own sake, I fancy I can
|
|
detect in the self contempt which characterises holy persons, and also
|
|
in their acts of self torture (through hunger and scourgings,
|
|
distortions and chaining of the limbs, acts of madness) simply a means
|
|
whereby such natures may resist the general exhaustion of their will to
|
|
live (their nerves). They employ the most painful expedients to escape
|
|
if only for a time from the heaviness and weariness in which they are
|
|
steeped by their great mental indolence and their subjection to a will
|
|
other than their own.
|
|
|
|
|
|
141
|
|
|
|
=The Most Usual Means= by which the ascetic and the sanctified
|
|
individual seeks to make life more endurable comprises certain combats
|
|
of an inner nature involving alternations of victory and prostration.
|
|
For this purpose an enemy is necessary and he is found in the so called
|
|
"inner enemy." That is, the holy individual makes use of his tendency to
|
|
vanity, domineering and pride, and of his mental longings in order to
|
|
contemplate his life as a sort of continuous battle and himself as a
|
|
battlefield, in which good and evil spirits wage war with varying
|
|
fortune. It is an established fact that the imagination is restrained
|
|
through the regularity and adequacy of sexual intercourse while on the
|
|
other hand abstention from or great irregularity in sexual intercourse
|
|
will cause the imagination to run riot. The imaginations of many of the
|
|
Christian saints were obscene to a degree; and because of the theory
|
|
that sexual desires were in reality demons that raged within them, the
|
|
saints did not feel wholly responsible for them. It is to this
|
|
conviction that we are indebted for the highly instructive sincerity of
|
|
their evidence against themselves. It was to their interest that this
|
|
contest should always be kept up in some fashion because by means of
|
|
this contest, as already stated, their empty lives gained distraction.
|
|
In order that the contest might seem sufficiently great to inspire
|
|
sympathy and admiration in the unsanctified, it was essential that
|
|
sexual capacity be ever more and more damned and denounced. Indeed the
|
|
danger of eternal damnation was so closely allied to this capacity that
|
|
for whole generations Christians showed their children with actual
|
|
conscience pangs. What evil may not have been done to humanity through
|
|
this! And yet here the truth is just upside down: an exceedingly
|
|
unseemly attitude for the truth. Christianity, it is true, had said that
|
|
every man is conceived and born in sin, and in the intolerable and
|
|
excessive Christianity of Calderon this thought is again perverted and
|
|
entangled into the most distorted paradox extant in the well known lines
|
|
|
|
The greatest sin of man
|
|
Is the sin of being born.
|
|
|
|
In all pessimistic religions the act of procreation is looked upon as
|
|
evil in itself. This is far from being the general human opinion. It is
|
|
not even the opinion of all pessimists. Empedocles, for example, knows
|
|
nothing of anything shameful, devilish and sinful in it. He sees rather
|
|
in the great field of bliss of unholiness simply a healthful and hopeful
|
|
phenomenon, Aphrodite. She is to him an evidence that strife does not
|
|
always rage but that some time a gentle demon is to wield the sceptre.
|
|
The Christian pessimists of practice, had, as stated, a direct interest
|
|
in the prevalence of an opposite belief. They needed in the loneliness
|
|
and the spiritual wilderness of their lives an ever living enemy, and a
|
|
universally known enemy through whose conquest they might appear to the
|
|
unsanctified as utterly incomprehensible and half unnatural beings. When
|
|
this enemy at last, as a result of their mode of life and their
|
|
shattered health, took flight forever, they were able immediately to
|
|
people their inner selves with new demons. The rise and fall of the
|
|
balance of cheerfulness and despair maintained their addled brains in a
|
|
totally new fluctuation of longing and peace of soul. And in that period
|
|
psychology served not only to cast suspicion on everything human but to
|
|
wound and scourge it, to crucify it. Man wanted to find himself as base
|
|
and evil as possible. Man sought to become anxious about the state of
|
|
his soul, he wished to be doubtful of his own capacity. Everything
|
|
natural with which man connects the idea of badness and sinfulness (as,
|
|
for instance, is still customary in regard to the erotic) injures and
|
|
degrades the imagination, occasions a shamed aspect, leads man to war
|
|
upon himself and makes him uncertain, distrustful of himself. Even his
|
|
dreams acquire a tincture of the unclean conscience. And yet this
|
|
suffering because of the natural element in certain things is wholly
|
|
superfluous. It is simply the result of opinions regarding the things.
|
|
It is easy to understand why men become worse than they are if they are
|
|
brought to look upon the unavoidably natural as bad and later to feel it
|
|
as of evil origin. It is the master stroke of religions and metaphysics
|
|
that wish to make man out bad and sinful by nature, to render nature
|
|
suspicious in his eyes and to so make himself evil, for he learns to
|
|
feel himself evil when he cannot divest himself of nature. He gradually
|
|
comes to look upon himself, after a long life lived naturally, so
|
|
oppressed by a weight of sin that supernatural powers become necessary
|
|
to relieve him of the burden; and with this notion comes the so called
|
|
need of salvation, which is the result not of a real but of an imaginary
|
|
sinfulness. Go through the separate moral expositions in the vouchers of
|
|
christianity and it will always be found that the demands are excessive
|
|
in order that it may be impossible for man to satisfy them. The object
|
|
is not that he may become moral but that he may feel as sinful as
|
|
possible. If this feeling had not been rendered agreeable to man--why
|
|
should he have improvised such an ideal and clung to it so long? As in
|
|
the ancient world an incalculable strength of intellect and capacity for
|
|
feeling was squandered in order to increase the joy of living through
|
|
feastful systems of worship, so in the era of christianity an equally
|
|
incalculable quantity of intellectual capacity has been sacrificed in
|
|
another endeavor: that man should in every way feel himself sinful and
|
|
thereby be moved, inspired, inspirited. To move, to inspire, to inspirit
|
|
at any cost--is not this the freedom cry of an exhausted, over-ripe,
|
|
over cultivated age? The circle of all the natural sensations had been
|
|
gone through a hundred times: the soul had grown weary. Then the saints
|
|
and the ascetics found a new order of ecstacies. They set themselves
|
|
before the eyes of all not alone as models for imitation to many, but as
|
|
fearful and yet delightful spectacles on the boundary line between this
|
|
world and the next world, where in that period everyone thought he saw
|
|
at one time rays of heavenly light, at another fearful, threatening
|
|
tongues of flame. The eye of the saint, directed upon the fearful
|
|
significance of the shortness of earthly life, upon the imminence of the
|
|
last judgment, upon eternal life hereafter; this glowering eye in an
|
|
emaciated body caused men, in the old time world, to tremble to the
|
|
depths of their being. To look, to look away and shudder, to feel anew
|
|
the fascination of the spectacle, to yield to it, sate oneself upon it
|
|
until the soul trembled with ardor and fever--that was the last pleasure
|
|
left to classical antiquity when its sensibilities had been blunted by
|
|
the arena and the gladiatorial show.
|
|
|
|
|
|
142
|
|
|
|
=To Sum Up All That Has Been Said=: that condition of soul at which the
|
|
saint or expectant saint is rejoiced is a combination of elements which
|
|
we are all familiar with, except that under other influences than those
|
|
of mere religious ideation they customarily arouse the censure of men in
|
|
the same way that when combined with religion itself and regarded as the
|
|
supreme attainment of sanctity, they are object of admiration and even
|
|
of prayer--at least in more simple times. Very soon the saint turns upon
|
|
himself that severity that is so closely allied to the instinct of
|
|
domination at any price and which inspire even in the most solitary
|
|
individual the sense of power. Soon his swollen sensitiveness of feeling
|
|
breaks forth from the longing to restrain his passions within it and is
|
|
transformed into a longing to master them as if they were wild steeds,
|
|
the master impulse being ever that of a proud spirit; next he craves a
|
|
complete cessation of all perturbing, fascinating feelings, a waking
|
|
sleep, an enduring repose in the lap of a dull, animal, plant-like
|
|
indolence. Next he seeks the battle and extinguishes it within himself
|
|
because weariness and boredom confront him. He binds his
|
|
self-deification with self-contempt. He delights in the wild tumult of
|
|
his desires and the sharp pain of sin, in the very idea of being lost.
|
|
He is able to play his very passions, for instance the desire to
|
|
domineer, a trick so that he goes to the other extreme of abject
|
|
humiliation and subjection, so that his overwrought soul is without any
|
|
restraint through this antithesis. And, finally, when indulgence in
|
|
visions, in talks with the dead or with divine beings overcomes him,
|
|
this is really but a form of gratification that he craves, perhaps a
|
|
form of gratification in which all other gratifications are blended.
|
|
Novalis, one of the authorities in matters of sanctity, because of his
|
|
experience and instinct, betrays the whole secret with the utmost
|
|
simplicity when he says: "It is remarkable that the close connection of
|
|
gratification, religion and cruelty has not long ago made men aware of
|
|
their inner relationship and common tendency."
|
|
|
|
|
|
143
|
|
|
|
=Not What the Saint is but what he was in= the eyes of the
|
|
non-sanctified gives him his historical importance. Because there
|
|
existed a delusion respecting the saint, his soul states being falsely
|
|
viewed and his personality being sundered as much as possible from
|
|
humanity as a something incomparable and supernatural, because of these
|
|
things he attained the extraordinary with which he swayed the
|
|
imaginations of whole nations and whole ages. Even he knew himself not
|
|
for even he regarded his dispositions, passions and actions in
|
|
accordance with a system of interpretation as artificial and exaggerated
|
|
as the pneumatic interpretation of the bible. The distorted and diseased
|
|
in his own nature with its blending of spiritual poverty, defective
|
|
knowledge, ruined health, overwrought nerves, remained as hidden from
|
|
his view as from the view of his beholders. He was neither a
|
|
particularly good man nor a particularly bad man but he stood for
|
|
something that was far above the human standard in wisdom and goodness.
|
|
Faith in him sustained faith in the divine and miraculous, in a
|
|
religious significance of all existence, in an impending day of
|
|
judgment. In the last rays of the setting sun of the ancient world,
|
|
which fell upon the christian peoples, the shadowy form of the saint
|
|
attained enormous proportions--to such enormous proportions, indeed,
|
|
that down even to our own age, which no longer believes in god, there
|
|
are thinkers who believe in the saints.
|
|
|
|
|
|
144
|
|
|
|
It stands to reason that this sketch of the saint, made upon the model
|
|
of the whole species, can be confronted with many opposing sketches that
|
|
would create a more agreeable impression. There are certain exceptions
|
|
among the species who distinguish themselves either by especial
|
|
gentleness or especial humanity, and perhaps by the strength of their
|
|
own personality. Others are in the highest degree fascinating because
|
|
certain of their delusions shed a particular glow over their whole
|
|
being, as is the case with the founder of christianity who took himself
|
|
for the only begotten son of God and hence felt himself sinless; so that
|
|
through his imagination--that should not be too harshly judged since the
|
|
whole of antiquity swarmed with sons of god--he attained the same goal,
|
|
the sense of complete sinlessness, complete irresponsibility, that can
|
|
now be attained by every individual through science.--In the same manner
|
|
I have viewed the saints of India who occupy an intermediate station
|
|
between the christian saints and the Greek philosophers and hence are
|
|
not to be regarded as a pure type. Knowledge and science--as far as they
|
|
existed--and superiority to the rest of mankind by logical discipline
|
|
and training of the intellectual powers were insisted upon by the
|
|
Buddhists as essential to sanctity, just as they were denounced by the
|
|
christian world as the indications of sinfulness. |